The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter II
Section II
Sub-Section III
The Child in Greece
Thus much for Egypt. Coming into Greece, not only do we find evidence there
to the same effect, but increase of that evidence. The god worshipped as a
child in the arms of the great Mother in Greece, under the names of Dionysus,
or Bacchus, or Iacchus, is, by ancient inquirers, expressly identified with the
Egyptian Osiris. This is the case with Herodotus, who had prosecuted his inquiries
in Egypt itself, who ever speaks of Osiris as Bacchus. To the same purpose is
the testimony of Diodorus Siculus. ”Orpheus,” says he, ”introduced from Egypt
the greatest part of the mystical ceremonies, the orgies that celebrate the
wanderings of Ceres, and the whole fable of the shades below. The rites of
Osiris and Bacchus are the same; those of Isis and Ceres exactly resemble each
other, except in name.” Now, as if to identify Bacchus with Nimrod, ”the
Leopard-tamer,” leopards were employed to draw his car; he himself was
represented as clothed with a leopard’s skin; his priests were attired in the
same manner, or when a leopard’s skin was dispensed with, the spotted skin of a
fawn was used as a priestly robe in its stead. This very custom of wearing the
spotted fawn-skin seems to have been imported into Greece originally from
Assyria, where a spotted fawn was a sacred emblem, as we learn from the Nineveh
sculptures; for there we find a divinity bearing a spotted fawn or spotted
fallow-deer, in his arm, as a symbol of some mysterious import. The origin of
the importance attached to the spotted fawn and its skin had evidently come
thus: When Nimrod, as ”the Leopard-tamer,” began to be clothed in the
leopard-skin, as the trophy of his skill, his spotted dress and appearance must
have impressed the imaginations of those who saw him; and he came to be called
not only the ”Subduer of the Spotted one” (for such is the precise meaning of
Nimr–the name of the leopard), but to be called ”The spotted one” himself. We
have distinct evidence to this effect borne by Damascius, who tells us that the
Babylonians called ”the only son” of the great goddess-mother ”Momis, or
Moumis.” Now, Momis, or Moumis, in Chaldee, like Nimr, signified ”The spotted
one.” Thus, then, it became easy to represent Nimrod by the symbol of the
”spotted fawn,” and especially in Greece, and wherever a pronunciation akin to
that of Greece prevailed. The name of Nimrod, as known to the Greeks, was
Nebrod. * The name of the fawn, as ”the spotted one,” in Greece was Nebros; **
and thus nothing could be more natural than that Nebros, the ”spotted fawn,”
should become a synonym for Nebrod himself. When, therefore, the Bacchus of
Greece was symbolised by the Nebros, or ”spotted fawn,” as we shall find he was
symbolised, what could be the design but just covertly to identify him with
Nimrod?
* In the Greek Septuagint, translated in Egypt, the name of Nimrod is
”Nebrod.”
** Nebros, the name of the fawn, signifies ”the spotted one.” Nmr, in
Egypt, would also become Nbr; for Bunsen shows that m and b in that land were
often convertible.
We have evidence that this god, whose emblem was the Nebros, was known as
having the very lineage of Nimrod. From Anacreon, we find that a title of
Bacchus was Aithiopais–i.e., ”the son of Aethiops.” But who was Aethiops? As
the Aethiopians were Cushites, so Aethiops was Cush. ”Chus,” says Eusebius,
”was he from whom came the Aethiopians.” The testimony of Josephus is to the
same effect. As the father of the Aethiopians, Cush was Aethiops, by way of
eminence. Therefore Epiphanius, referring to the extraction of Nimrod, thus
speaks: ”Nimrod, the son of Cush, the Aethiop.” Now, as Bacchus was the son of
Aethiops, or Cush, so to the eye he was represented in that character. As Nin ”the
Son,” he was portrayed as a youth or child; and that youth or child was
generally depicted with a cup in his hand. That cup, to the multitude,
exhibited him as the god of drunken revelry; and of such revelry in his orgies,
no doubt there was abundance; but yet, after all, the cup was mainly a
hieroglyphic, and that of the name of the god. The name of a cup, in the sacred
language, was khus, and thus the cup in the hand of the youthful Bacchus, the
son of Aethiops, showed that he was the young Chus, or the son of Chus. In a
woodcut, the cup in the right hand of Bacchus is held up in so significant a
way, as naturally to suggest that it must be a symbol; and as to the branch in
the other hand, we have express testimony that it is a symbol. But it is worthy
of notice that the branch has no leaves to determine what precise kind of a
branch it is. It must, therefore, be a generic emblem for a branch, or a symbol
of a branch in general; and, consequently, it needs the cup as its complement,
to determine specifically what sort of a branch it is. The two symbols, then,
must be read together, and read thus, they are just equivalent to–the ”Branch
of Chus”–i.e., ”the scion or son of Cush.” *
* Everyone knows that Homer’s odzos Areos, or ”Branch of Mars,” is the same
as a ”Son of Mars.” The hieroglyphic above was evidently formed on the same
principle. That the cup alone in the hand of the youthful Bacchus was intended
to designate him ”as the young Chus,” or ”the boy Chus,” we may fairly conclude
from a statement of Pausanias, in which he represents ”the boy Kuathos” as
acting the part of a cup-bearer, and presenting a cup to Hercules (PAUSANIAS
Corinthiaca) Kuathos is the Greek for a ”cup,” and is evidently derived from
the Hebrew Khus, ”a cup,” which, in one of its Chaldee forms, becomes Khuth or
Khuath. Now, it is well known that the name of Cush is often found in the form
of Cuth, and that name, in certain dialects, would be Cuath. The ”boy Kuathos,”
then, is just the Greek form of the ”boy Cush,” or ”the young Cush.”
There is another hieroglyphic connected with Bacchus that goes not a little
to confirm this–that is, the Ivy branch. No emblem was more distinctive of the
worship of Bacchus than this. Wherever the rites of Bacchus were performed,
wherever his orgies were celebrated, the Ivy branch was sure to appear. Ivy, in
some form or other, was essential to these celebrations. The votaries carried
it in their hands, bound it around their heads, or had the Ivy leaf even
indelibly stamped upon their persons. What could be the use, what could be the
meaning of this? A few words will suffice to show it. In the first place, then,
we have evidence that Kissos, the Greek name for Ivy, was one of the names of
Bacchus; and further, that though the name of Cush, in its proper form, was
known to the priests in the Mysteries, yet that the established way in which
the name of his descendants, the Cushites, was ordinarily pronounced in Greece,
was not after the Oriental fashion, but as ”Kissaioi,” or ”Kissioi.” Thus,
Strabo, speaking of the inhabitants of Susa, who were the people of Chusistan,
or the ancient land of Cush, says: ”The Susians are called Kissioi,” * –that is
beyond all question, Cushites.
* STRABO. In Hesychius, the name is Kissaioi. The epithet applied to the
land of Cush in Aeschylus is Kissinos. The above accounts for one of the
unexplained titles of Apollo. ”Kisseus Apollon” is plainly ”The Cushite
Apollo.”
Now, if Kissioi be Cushites, then Kissos is Cush. Then, further, the branch
of Ivy that occupied so conspicuous a place in all Bacchanalian celebrations
was an express symbol of Bacchus himself; for Hesychius assures us that
Bacchus, as represented by his priest, was known in the Mysteries as ”The
branch.” From this, then, it appears how Kissos, the Greek name of Ivy, became
the name of Bacchus. As the son of Cush, and as identified with him, he was
sometimes called by his father’s name–Kissos. His actual relation, however, to
his father was specifically brought out by the Ivy branch, for ”the branch of
Kissos,” which to the profane vulgar was only ”the branch of Ivy,” was to the
initiated ”The branch of Cush.” *
* The chaplet, or head-band of Ivy, had evidently a similar hieroglyphical
meaning to the above, for the Greek ”Zeira Kissou” is either a ”band or circlet
of Ivy,” or ”The seed of Cush.” The formation of the Greek ”Zeira,” a zone or
enclosing band, from the Chaldee Zer, to encompass, shows that Zero ”the seed,”
which was also pronounced Zeraa, would, in like manner, in some Greek dialects,
become Zeira. Kissos, ”Ivy,” in Greek, retains the radical idea of the Chaldee
Khesha or Khesa, ”to cover or hide,” from which there is reason to believe the
name of Cush is derived, for Ivy is characteristically ”The coverer or hider.”
In connection with this, it may be stated that the second person of the
Phoenician trinity was Chursorus (WILKINSON), which evidently is Chus-zoro,
”The seed of Cush.” We have already seen that the Phoenicians derived their
mythology from Assyria.
Now, this god, who was recognised as ”the scion of Cush,” was worshipped
under a name, which, while appropriate to him in his vulgar character as the
god of the vintage, did also describe him as the great Fortifier. That name was
Bassareus, which, in its two-fold meaning, signified at once ”The houser of
grapes, or the vintage gatherer,” and ”The Encompasser with a wall,” * in this
latter sense identifying the Grecian god with the Egyptian Osiris, ”the strong
chief of the buildings,” and with the Assyrian ”Belus, who encompassed Babylon
with a wall.”
* Bassareus is evidently from the Chaldee Batzar, to which both Gesenius
and Parkhurst give the two-fold meaning of ”gathering in grapes,” and
”fortifying.” Batzar is softened into Bazzar in the very same way as
Nebuchadnetzar is pronounced Nebuchadnezzar. In the sense of ”rendering a
defence inaccessible,” Gesenius adduces Jeremiah 51:53, ”Though Babylon should
mount up to heaven, and though she should fortify (tabatzar) the height of her
strength, yet from me shall spoilers come unto her, saith the Lord.” Here is
evident reference to the two great elements in Babylon’s strength, first her
tower; secondly, her massive fortifications, or encompassing walls. In making
the meaning of Batzar to be, ”to render inaccessible,” Gesenius seems to have
missed the proper generic meaning of the term. Batzar is a compound verb, from
Ba, ”in,” and Tzar, ”to compass,” exactly equivalent to our English word
”en-compass.”
Thus from Assyria, Egypt, and Greece, we have cumulative and overwhelming
evidence, all conspiring to demonstrate that the child worshipped in the arms
of the goddess-mother in all these countries in the very character of Ninus or
Nin, ”The Son,” was Nimrod, the son of Cush. A feature here, or an incident
there, may have been borrowed from some succeeding hero; but it seems
impossible to doubt, that of that child Nimrod was the prototype, the grand
original.
The amazing extent of the worship of this man indicates something very
extraordinary in his character; and there is ample reason to believe, that in his
own day he was an object of high popularity. Though by setting up as king,
Nimrod invaded the patriarchal system, and abridged the liberties of mankind,
yet he was held by many to have conferred benefits upon them, that amply
indemnified them for the loss of their liberties, and covered him with glory
and renown. By the time that he appeared, the wild beasts of the forest
multiplying more rapidly than the human race, must have committed great
depredations on the scattered and straggling populations of the earth, and must
have inspired great terror into the minds of men. The danger arising to the
lives of men from such a source as this, when population is scanty, is implied
in the reason given by God Himself for not driving out the doomed Canaanites
before Israel at once, though the measure of their iniquity was full (Exo
23:29,30): ”I will not drive them out from before thee in one year, lest the
land become desolate, and the beast of the field multiply against thee. By
little and little I will drive them out from before thee, until thou be
increased.” The exploits of Nimrod, therefore, in hunting down the wild beasts
of the field, and ridding the world of monsters, must have gained for him the
character of a pre-eminent benefactor of his race. By this means, not less than
by the bands he trained, was his power acquired, when he first began to be
mighty upon the earth; and in the same way, no doubt, was that power
consolidated. Then, over and above, as the first great city-builder after the
flood, by gathering men together in masses, and surrounding them with walls, he
did still more to enable them to pass their days in security, free from the
alarms to which they had been exposed in their scattered life, when no one
could tell but that at any moment he might be called to engage in deadly
conflict with prowling wild beasts, in defence of his own life and of those who
were dear to him. Within the battlements of a fortified city no such danger
from savage animals was to be dreaded; and for the security afforded in this
way, men no doubt looked upon themselves as greatly indebted to Nimrod. No
wonder, therefore, that the name of the ”mighty hunter,” who was at the same
time the prototype of ”the god of fortifications,” should have become a name of
renown. Had Nimrod gained renown only thus, it had been well. But not content
with delivering men from the fear of wild beasts, he set to work also to
emancipate them from that fear of the Lord which is the beginning of wisdom,
and in which alone true happiness can be found. For this very thing, he seems
to have gained, as one of the titles by which men delighted to honour him, the
title of the ”Emancipator,” or ”Deliverer.” The reader may remember a name that
has already come under his notice. That name is the name of Phoroneus. The era
of Phoroneus is exactly the era of Nimrod. He lived about the time when men had
used one speech, when the confusion of tongues began, and when mankind was
scattered abroad. He is said to have been the first that gathered mankind into
communities, the first of mortals that reigned, and the first that offered
idolatrous sacrifices. This character can agree with none but that of Nimrod.
Now the name given to him in connection with his ”gathering men together,” and
offering idolatrous sacrifice, is very significant. Phoroneus, in one of its
meanings, and that one of the most natural, signifies the ”Apostate.” * That
name had very likely been given him by the uninfected portion of the sons of
Noah. But that name had also another meaning, that is, ”to set free”; and
therefore his own adherents adopted it, and glorified the great ”Apostate” from
the primeval faith, though he was the first that abridged the liberties of
mankind, as the grand ”Emancipator!” ** And hence, in one form or other, this
title was handed down to this deified successors as a title of honour. ***
* From Pharo, also pronounced Pharang, or Pharong, ”to cast off, to make
naked, to apostatise, to set free.” These meanings are not commonly given in
this order, but as the sense of ”casting off” explains all the other meanings,
that warrants the conclusion that ”to cast off” is the generic sense of the
word. Now ”apostacy” is very near akin to this sense, and therefore is one of
the most natural.
** The Sabine goddess Feronia had evidently a relation to Phoroneus, as the
”Emancipator.” She was believed to be the ”goddess of liberty,” because at
Terracina (or Anuxur) slaves were emancipated in her temple (Servius, in
Aeneid), and because the freedmen of Rome are recorded on one occasion to have
collected a sum of money for the purpose of offering it in her temple. (SMITH’S
Classical Dictionary, ”Feronia”)
*** Thus we read of ”Zeus Aphesio” (PAUSANIAS, Attica), that is ”Jupiter
Liberator” and of ”Dionysus Eleuthereus” (PAUSANIAS), or ”Bacchus the
Deliverer.” The name of Theseus seems to have had the same origin, from nthes
”to loosen,” and so to set free (the n being omissible). ”The temple of
Theseus” [at Athens] says POTTER ”…was allowed the privilege of being a
Sanctuary for slaves, and all those of mean condition that fled from the
persecution of men in power, in memory that Theseus, while he lived, was an
assister and protector of the distressed.”
All tradition from the earliest times bears testimony to the apostacy of
Nimrod, and to his success in leading men away from the patriarchal faith, and
delivering their minds from that awe of God and fear of the judgments of heaven
that must have rested on them while yet the memory of the flood was recent. And
according to all the principles of depraved human nature, this too, no doubt,
was one grand element in his fame; for men will readily rally around any one
who can give the least appearance of plausibility to any doctrine which will
teach that they can be assured of happiness and heaven at last, though their
hearts and natures are unchanged, and though they live without God in the
world.
How great was the boon conferred by Nimrod on the human race, in the
estimation of ungodly men, by emancipating them from the impressions of true
religion, and putting the authority of heaven to a distance from them, we find
most vividly described in a Polynesian tradition, that carries its own evidence
with it. John Williams, the well known missionary, tells us that, according to
one of the ancient traditions of the islanders of the South Seas, ”the heavens
were originally so close to the earth that men could not walk, but were
compelled to crawl” under them. ”This was found a very serious evil; but at
length an individual conceived the sublime idea of elevating the heavens to a
more convenient height. For this purpose he put forth his utmost energy, and by
the first effort raised them to the top of a tender plant called teve, about
four feet high. There he deposited them until he was refreshed, when, by a second
effort, he lifted them to the height of a tree called Kauariki, which is as
large as the sycamore. By the third attempt he carried them to the summits of
the mountains; and after a long interval of repose, and by a most prodigious
effort, he elevated them to their present situation.” For this, as a mighty
benefactor of mankind, ”this individual was deified; and up to the moment that
Christianity was embraced, the deluded inhabitants worshipped him as the
‘Elevator of the heavens.’” Now, what could more graphically describe the
position of mankind soon after the flood, and the proceedings of Nimrod as
Phoroneus, ”The Emancipator,” * than this Polynesian fable?
* The bearing of this name, Phoroneus, ”The Emancipator,” will be seen in
Chapter III, Section I, ”Christmas,” where it is shown that slaves had a
temporary emancipation at his birthday.
While the awful catastrophe by which God had showed His avenging justice on
the sinners of the old world was yet fresh in the minds of men, and so long as
Noah, and the upright among his descendants, sought with all earnestness to
impress upon all under their control the lessons which that solemn event was so
well fitted to teach, ”heaven,” that is, God, must have seemed very near to
earth. To maintain the union between heaven and earth, and to keep it as close
as possible, must have been the grand aim of all who loved God and the best
interests of the human race. But this implied the restraining and
discountenancing of all vice and all those ”pleasures of sin,” after which the
natural mind, unrenewed and unsanctified, continually pants. This must have
been secretly felt by every unholy mind as a state of insufferable bondage.
”The carnal mind is enmity against God,” is ”not subject to His law,” neither
indeed is ”able to be” so. It says to the Almighty, ”Depart from us, for we
desire not the knowledge of Thy ways.” So long as the influence of the great
father of the new world was in the ascendant, while his maxims were regarded,
and a holy atmosphere surrounded the world, no wonder that those who were
alienated from God and godliness, felt heaven and its influence and authority
to be intolerably near, and that in such circumstances they ”could not walk,”
but only ”crawl,”–that is, that they had no freedom to ”walk after the sight of
their own eyes and the imaginations of their own hearts.” From this bondage
Nimrod emancipated them. By the apostacy he introduced, by the free life he
developed among those who rallied around him, and by separating them from the
holy influences that had previously less or more controlled them, he helped
them to put God and the strict spirituality of His law at a distance, and thus
he became the ”Elevator of the heavens,” making men feel and act as if heaven
were afar off from earth, and as if either the God of heaven ”could not see
through the dark cloud,” or did not regard with displeasure the breakers of His
laws. Then all such would feel that they could breathe freely, and that now
they could walk at liberty. For this, such men could not but regard Nimrod as a
high benefactor.
Now, who could have imagined that a tradition from Tahiti would have
illuminated the story of Atlas? But yet, when Atlas, bearing the heavens on his
shoulders, is brought into juxtaposition with the deified hero of the South
Seas, who blessed the world by heaving up the superincumbent heavens that
pressed so heavily upon it, who does not see that the one story bears a
relation to the other? *
* In the Polynesian story the heavens and earth are said to have been
”bound together with cords,” and the ”severing” of these cords is said to have
been effected by myriads of ”dragon-flies,” which, with their ”wings,” bore an
important share in the great work. (WILLIAMS) Is there not here a reference to
Nimrod’s `63 ”mighties” or ”winged ones”? The deified ”mighty ones” were often
represented as winged serpents. See WILKINSON, vol. iv. p. 232, where the god
Agathodaemon is represented as a ”winged asp.” Among a rude people the memory
of such a representation might very naturally be kept up in connection with the
”dragon-fly”; and as all the mighty or winged ones of Nimrod’s age, the real
golden age of paganism, when ”dead, became daemons” (HESIOD, Works and Days),
they would of course all alike be symbolised in the same way. If any be
stumbled at the thought of such a connection between the mythology of Tahiti
and of Babel, let it not be overlooked that the name of the Tahitian god of war
was Oro (WILLIAMS), while ”Horus (or Orus),” as Wilkinson calls the son of
Osiris, in Egypt, which unquestionably borrowed its system from Babylon,
appeared in that very character. (WILKINSON) Then what could the severing of
the ”cords” that bound heaven and earth together be, but just the breaking of
the bands of the covenant by which God bound the earth to Himself, when on
smelling a sweet savour in Noah’s sacrifice, He renewed His covenant with him
as head of the human race. This covenant did not merely respect the promise to
the earth securing it against another universal deluge, but contained in its
bosom a promise of all spiritual blessings to those who adhere to it. The
smelling of the sweet savour in Noah’s sacrifice had respect to his faith in
Christ. When, therefore, in consequence of smelling that sweet savour, ”God
blessed Noah and his sons” (Gen 9:1), that had reference not merely to temporal
but to spiritual and eternal blessings. Every one, therefore, of the sons of
Noah, who had Noah’s faith, and who walked as Noah walked, was divinely assured
of an interest in ”the everlasting covenant, ordered in all things and sure.”
Blessed were those bands by which God bound the believing children of men to
Himself–by which heaven and earth were so closely joined together. Those, on
the other hand, who joined in the apostacy of Nimrod broke the covenant, and in
casting off the authority of God, did in effect say, ”Let us break His bands
asunder, and cast His cords from us.” To this very act of severing the covenant
connection between earth and heaven there is very distinct allusion, though
veiled, in the Babylonian history of Berosus. There Belus, that is Nimrod,
after having dispelled the primeval darkness, is said to have separated heaven
and earth from one another, and to have orderly arranged the world. (BEROSUS,
in BUNSEN) These words were intended to represent Belus as the ”Former of the
world.” But then it is a new world that he forms; for there are creatures in
existence before his Demiurgic power is exerted. The new world that Belus or
Nimrod formed, was just the new order of things which he introduced when,
setting at nought all Divine appointments, he rebelled against Heaven. The
rebellion of the Giants is represented as peculiarly a rebellion against
Heaven. To this ancient quarrel between the Babylonian potentates and Heaven,
there is plainly an allusion in the words of Daniel to Nebuchadnezzar, when
announcing that sovereign’s humiliation and subsequent restoration, he says
(Dan 4:26), ”Thy kingdom shall be sure unto thee, when thou hast known that the
HEAVENS do rule.”
Thus, then, it appears that Atlas, with the heavens resting on his broad
shoulders, refers to no mere distinction in astronomical knowledge, however
great, as some have supposed, but to a quite different thing, even to that
great apostacy in which the Giants rebelled against Heaven, and in which
apostacy Nimrod, ”the mighty one,” * as the acknowledged ringleader, occupied a
pre-eminent place. **
* In the Greek Septuagint, translated in Egypt, the term ”mighty” as
applied in Genesis 10:8, to Nimrod, is rendered the ordinary name for a
”Giant.”
** IVAN and KALLERY, in their account of Japan, show that a similar story
to that of Atlas was known there, for they say that once a day the Emperor
”sits on his throne upholding the world and the empire.” Now something like
this came to be added to the story of Atlas, for PAUSANIAS shows that Atlas
also was represented as upholding both earth and heaven.
According to the system which Nimrod was the grand instrument in
introducing, men were led to believe that a real spiritual change of heart was
unnecessary, and that so far as change was needful, they could be regenerated
by mere external means. Looking at the subject in the light of the Bacchanalian
orgies, which, as the reader has seen, commemorated the history of Nimrod, it
is evident that he led mankind to seek their chief good in sensual enjoyment,
and showed them how they might enjoy the pleasures of sin, without any fear of
the wrath of a holy God. In his various expeditions he was always accompanied
by troops of women; and by music and song, and games and revelries, and
everything that could please the natural heart, he commended himself to the
good graces of mankind.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter II
Section II
Sub-Section IV
The Death of the Child
How Nimrod died, Scripture is entirely silent. There was an ancient
tradition that he came to a violent end. The circumstances of that end,
however, as antiquity represents them, are clouded with fable. It is said that
tempests of wind sent by God against the Tower of Babel overthrew it, and that
Nimrod perished in its ruins. This could not be true, for we have sufficient
evidence that the Tower of Babel stood long after Nimrod’s day. Then, in regard
to the death of Ninus, profane history speaks darkly and mysteriously, although
one account tells of his having met with a violent death similar to that of Pentheus,
Lycurgus, * and Orpheus, who were said to have been torn in pieces. **
* Lycurgus, who is commonly made the enemy of Bacchus, was, by the
Thracians and Phrygians, identified with Bacchus, who it is well known, was
torn in pieces.
** LUDOVICUS VIVES, Commentary on Augustine. Ninus as referred to by Vives
is called ”King of India.” The word ”India” in classical writers, though not
always, yet commonly means Ethiopia, or the land of Cush. Thus the Choaspes in
the land of the eastern Cushites is called an ”Indian River” (DIONYSIUS AFER.
Periergesis); and the Nile is said by Virgil to come from the ”coloured
Indians” (Georg)–i.e., from the Cushites, or Ethiopians of Africa. Osiris also
is by Diodorus Siculus (Bibliotheca), called ”an Indian by extraction.” There
can be no doubt, then, that ”Ninus, king of India,” is the Cushite or Ethiopian
Ninus.
The identity of Nimrod, however, and the Egyptian Osiris, having been
established, we have thereby light as to Nimrod’s death. Osiris met with a
violent death, and that violent death of Osiris was the central theme of the
whole idolatry of Egypt. If Osiris was Nimrod, as we have seen, that violent
death which the Egyptians so pathetically deplored in their annual festivals
was just the death of Nimrod. The accounts in regard to the death of the god
worshipped in the several mysteries of the different countries are all to the
same effect. A statement of Plato seems to show, that in his day the Egyptian
Osiris was regarded as identical with Tammuz; * and Tammuz is well known to
have been the same as Adonis, the famous HUNTSMAN, for whose death Venus is
fabled to have made such bitter lamentations.
* See WILKINSON’S Egyptians. The statement of Plato amounts to this, that
the famous Thoth was a counsellor of Thamus, king of Egypt. Now Thoth is
universally known as the ”counsellor” of Osiris. Hence it may be concluded that
Thamus and Osiris are the same.
As the women of Egypt wept for Osiris, as the Phoenician and Assyrian women
wept for Tammuz, so in Greece and Rome the women wept for Bacchus, whose name,
as we have seen, means ”The bewailed,” or ”Lamented one.” And now, in
connection with the Bacchanal lamentations, the importance of the relation
established between Nebros, ”The spotted fawn,” and Nebrod, ”The mighty hunter,”
will appear. The Nebros, or ”spotted fawn,” was the symbol of Bacchus, as
representing Nebrod or Nimrod himself. Now, on certain occasions, in the
mystical celebrations, the Nebros, or ”spotted fawn,” was torn in pieces,
expressly, as we learn from Photius, as a commemoration of what happened to
Bacchus, * whom that fawn represented.
* Photius, under the head ”Nebridzion” quotes Demosthenes as saying that
”spotted fawns (or nebroi) were torn in pieces for a certain mystic or
mysterious reason”; and he himself tells us that ”the tearing in pieces of the
nebroi (or spotted fawns) was in imitation of the suffering in the case of
Dionysus” or Bacchus. (PHOTIUS, Lexicon)
The tearing in pieces of Nebros, ”the spotted one,” goes to confirm the
conclusion, that the death of Bacchus, even as the death of Osiris, represented
the death of Nebrod, whom, under the very name of ”The Spotted one,” the
Babylonians worshipped. Though we do not find any account of Mysteries observed
in Greece in memory of Orion, the giant and mighty hunter celebrated by Homer,
under that name, yet he was represented symbolically as having died in a
similar way to that in which Osiris died, and as having then been translated to
heaven. *
* See OVID’S Fasti. Ovid represents Orion as so puffed up with pride on
account of his great strength, as vain-gloriously to boast that no creature on
earth could cope with him, whereupon a scorpion appeared, ”and,” says the poet,
”he was added to the stars.” The name of a scorpion in Chaldee is Akrab; but
Ak-rab, thus divided, signifies ”THE GREAT OPPRESSOR,” and this is the hidden
meaning of the Scorpion as represented in the Zodiac. That sign typifies him
who cut off the Babylonian god, and suppressed the system he set up. It was
while the sun was in Scorpio that Osiris in Egypt ”disappeared” (WILKINSON),
and great lamentations were made for his disappearance. Another subject was
mixed up with the death of the Egyptian god; but it is specially to be noticed
that, as it was in consequence of a conflict with a scorpion that Orion was
”added to the stars,” so it was when the scorpion was in the ascendant that
Osiris ”disappeared.”
From Persian records we are expressly assured that it was Nimrod who was
deified after his death by the name of Orion, and placed among the stars. Here,
then, we have large and consenting evidence, all leading to one conclusion,
that the death of Nimrod, the child worshipped in the arms of the
goddess-mother of Babylon, was a death of violence.
Now, when this mighty hero, in the midst of his career of glory, was
suddenly cut off by a violent death, great seems to have been the shock that
the catastrophe occasioned. When the news spread abroad, the devotees of
pleasure felt as if the best benefactor of mankind were gone, and the gaiety of
nations eclipsed. Loud was the wail that everywhere ascended to heaven among
the apostates from the primeval faith for so dire a catastrophe. Then began
those weepings for Tammuz, in the guilt of which the daughters of Israel
allowed themselves to be implicated, and the existence of which can be traced
not merely in the annals of classical antiquity, but in the literature of the
world from Ultima Thule to Japan.
Of the prevalence of such weepings in China, thus speaks the Rev. W.
Gillespie: ”The dragon-boat festival happens in midsummer, and is a season of
great excitement. About 2000 years ago there lived a young Chinese Mandarin,
Wat-yune, highly respected and beloved by the people. To the grief of all, he
was suddenly drowned in the river. Many boats immediately rushed out in search
of him, but his body was never found. Ever since that time, on the same day of
the month, the dragon-boats go out in search of him.” ”It is something,” adds
the author, ”like the bewailing of Adonis, or the weeping for Tammuz mentioned
in Scripture.” As the great god Buddh is generally represented in China as a
Negro, that may serve to identify the beloved Mandarin whose loss is thus
annually bewailed. The religious system of Japan largely coincides with that of
China. In Iceland, and throughout Scandinavia, there were similar lamentations
for the loss of the god Balder. Balder, through the treachery of the god Loki,
the spirit of evil, according as had been written in the book of destiny, ”was
slain, although the empire of heaven depended on his life.” His father Odin had
”learned the terrible secret from the book of destiny, having conjured one of
the Volar from her infernal abode. All the gods trembled at the knowledge of
this event. Then Frigga [the wife of Odin] called on every object, animate and
inanimate, to take an oath not to destroy or furnish arms against Balder. Fire,
water, rocks, and vegetables were bound by this solemn obligation. One plant
only, the mistletoe, was overlooked. Loki discovered the omission, and made
that contemptible shrub the fatal weapon. Among the warlike pastimes of
Valhalla [the assembly of the gods] one was to throw darts at the invulnerable
deity, who felt a pleasure in presenting his charmed breast to their weapons.
At a tournament of this kind, the evil genius putting a sprig of the mistletoe
into the hands of the blind Hoder, and directing his aim, the dreaded
prediction was accomplished by an unintentional fratricide. The spectators were
struck with speechless wonder; and their misfortune was the greater, that no
one, out of respect to the sacredness of the place, dared to avenge it. With
tears of lamentation they carried the lifeless body to the shore, and laid it
upon a ship, as a funeral pile, with that of Nanna his lovely bride, who had
died of a broken heart. His horse and arms were burnt at the same time, as was
customary at the obsequies of the ancient heroes of the north.” Then Frigga,
his mother, was overwhelmed with distress. ”Inconsolable for the loss of her
beautiful son,” says Dr. Crichton, ”she despatched Hermod (the swift) to the
abode of Hela [the goddess of Hell, or the infernal regions], to offer a ransom
for his release. The gloomy goddess promised that he should be restored,
provided everything on earth were found to weep for him. Then were messengers
sent over the whole world, to see that the order was obeyed, and the effect of
the general sorrow was ‘as when there is a universal thaw.’” There are
considerable variations from the original story in these two legends; but at
bottom the essence of the stories is the same, indicating that they must have
flowed from one fountain.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter II
Section II
Sub-Section V
The Deification of the Child
If there was one who was more deeply concerned in the tragic death of
Nimrod than another, it was his wife Semiramis, who, from an originally humble
position, had been raised to share with him the throne of Babylon. What, in
this emergency shall she do? Shall she quietly forego the pomp and pride to
which she has been raised! No. Though the death of her husband has given a rude
shock to her power, yet her resolution and unbounded ambition were in nowise
checked. On the contrary, her ambition took a still higher flight. In life her
husband had been honoured as a hero; in death she will have him worshipped as a
god, yea, as the woman’s promised Seed, ”Zero-ashta,” * who was destined to
bruise the serpent’s head, and who, in doing so, was to have his own heel
bruised.
* Zero–in Chaldee, ”the seed”–though we have seen reason to conclude that
in Greek it sometimes appeared as Zeira, quite naturally passed also into Zoro,
as may be seen from the change of Zerubbabel in the Greek Septuagint to
Zoro-babel; and hence Zuro-ashta, ”the seed of the woman” became Zoroaster, the
well known name of the head of the fire-worshippers. Zoroaster’s name is also
found as Zeroastes (JOHANNES CLERICUS, De Chaldoeis). The reader who consults
the able and very learned work of Dr. Wilson of Bombay, on the Parsi Religion,
will find that there was a Zoroaster long before that Zoroaster who lived in
the reign of Darius Hystaspes. In general history, the Zoroaster of Bactria is
most frequently referred to; but the voice of antiquity is clear and distinct
to the effect that the first and great Zoroaster was an Assyrian or Chaldean
(SUIDAS), and that he was the founder of the idolatrous system of Babylon, and
therefore Nimrod. It is equally clear also in stating that he perished by a
violent death, even as was the case with Nimrod, Tammuz, or Bacchus. The
identity of Bacchus and Zoroaster is still further proved by the epithet
Pyrisporus, bestowed on Bacchus in the Orphic Hymns. When the primeval promise
of Eden began to be forgotten, the meaning of the name Zero-ashta was lost to
all who knew only the exoteric doctrine of Paganism; and as ”ashta” signified
”fire” in Chaldee, as well as ”the woman,” and the rites of Bacchus had much to
do with fire-worship, ”Zero-ashta” came to be rendered ”the seed of fire”; and
hence the epithet Pyrisporus, or Ignigena, ”fire-born,” as applied to Bacchus.
From this misunderstanding of the meaning of the name Zero-ashta, or rather
from its wilful perversion by the priests, who wished to establish one doctrine
for the initiated, and another for the profane vulgar, came the whole story
about the unborn infant Bacchus having been rescued from the flames that
consumed his mother Semele, when Jupiter came in his glory to visit her. (Note
to OVID’S Metam.)
There was another name by which Zoroaster was known, and which is not a
little instructive, and that is Zar-adas, ”The only seed.” (JOHANNES CLERICUS,
De Chaldoeis) In WILSON’S Parsi Religion the name is given either Zoroadus, or
Zarades. The ancient Pagans, while they recognised supremely one only God, knew
also that there was one only seed, on whom the hopes of the world were founded.
In almost all nations, not only was a great god known under the name of Zero or
Zer, ”the seed,” and a great goddess under the name of Ashta or Isha, ”the
woman”; but the great god Zero is frequently characterised by some epithet
which implies that he is ”The only One.” Now what can account for such names or
epithets? Genesis 3:15 can account for them; nothing else can. The name
Zar-ades, or Zoro-adus, also strikingly illustrates the saying of Paul: ”He
saith not, And to seeds, as of many; but as of one, and to thy seed, which is
Christ.”
It is worthy of notice, that the modern system of Parseeism, which dates
from the reform of the old fire-worship in the time of Darius Hystaspes, having
rejected the worship of the goddess-mother, cast out also from the name of
their Zoroaster the name of the ”woman”; and therefore in the Zend, the sacred
language of the Parsees, the name of their great reformer is Zarathustra–i.e.,
”The Delivering Seed,” the last member of the name coming from Thusht (the root
being–Chaldee–nthsh, which drops the initial n), ”to loosen or set loose,” and
so to free. Thusht is the infinitive, and ra appended to it is, in Sanscrit,
with which the Zend has much affinity, the well known sign of the doer of an
action, just as er is in English. The Zend Zarathushtra, then, seems just the
equivalent of Phoroneus, ”The Emancipator.”
The patriarchs, and the ancient world in general, were perfectly acquainted
with the grand primeval promise of Eden, and they knew right well that the
bruising of the heel of the promised seed implied his death, and that the curse
could be removed from the world only by the death of the grand Deliverer. If
the promise about the bruising of the serpent’s head, recorded in Genesis, as
made to our first parents, was actually made, and if all mankind were descended
from them, then it might be expected that some trace of this promise would be
found in all nations. And such is the fact. There is hardly a people or kindred
on earth in whose mythology it is not shadowed forth. The Greeks represented
their great god Apollo as slaying the serpent Pytho, and Hercules as strangling
serpents while yet in his cradle. In Egypt, in India, in Scandinavia, in
Mexico, we find clear allusions to the same great truth. ”The evil genius,”
says Wilkinson, ”of the adversaries of the Egyptian god Horus is frequently
figured under the form of a snake, whose head he is seen piercing with a spear.
The same fable occurs in the religion of India, where the malignant serpent
Calyia is slain by Vishnu, in his avatar of Crishna; and the Scandinavian deity
Thor was said to have bruised the head of the great serpent with his mace.”
”The origin of this,” he adds, ”may be readily traced to the Bible.” In
reference to a similar belief among the Mexicans, we find Humboldt saying, that
”The serpent crushed by the great spirit Teotl, when he takes the form of one
of the subaltern deities, is the genius of evil–a real Kakodaemon.” Now, in
almost all cases, when the subject is examined to the bottom, it turns out that
the serpent destroying god is represented as enduring hardships and sufferings
that end in his death. Thus the god Thor, while succeeding at last in
destroying the great serpent, is represented as, in the very moment of victory,
perishing from the venomous effluvia of his breath. The same would seem to be
the way in which the Babylonians represented their great serpent-destroyer
among the figures of their ancient sphere. His mysterious suffering is thus
described by the Greek poet Aratus, whose language shows that when he wrote,
the meaning of the representation had been generally lost, although, when
viewed in this light of Scripture, it is surely deeply significant:–
”A human figure, ‘whelmed with
toil, appears;
Yet still with name uncertain he remains;
Nor known the labour that he thus sustains;
But since upon his knees he seems to fall,
Him ignorant mortals Engonasis call;
And while sublime his awful hands are spread,
Beneath him rolls the dragon’s horrid head,
And his right foot unmoved appears to rest,
Fixed on the writhing monster’s burnished crest.”
The constellation thus represented is commonly known by the name of ”The
Kneeler,” from this very description of the Greek poet; but it is plain that,
as ”Eugonasis” came from the Babylonians, it must be interpreted, not in a
Greek, but in a Chaldee sense, and so interpreted, as the action of the figure
itself implies, the title of the mysterious sufferer is just ”The
Serpent-crusher.” Sometimes, however the actual crushing of the serpent was
represented as a much more easy process; yet, even then, death was the ultimate
result; and that death of the serpent-destroyer is so described as to leave no
doubt whence the fable was borrowed. This is particularly the case with the
Indian god Crishna, to whom Wilkinson alludes in the extract already given. In
the legend that concerns him, the whole of the primeval promise in Eden is very
strikingly embodied. First, he is represented in pictures and images with his
foot on the great serpent’s head, and then, after destroying it, he is fabled
to have died in consequence of being shot by an arrow in the foot; and, as in
the case of Tammuz, great lamentations are annually made for his death. Even in
Greece, also, in the classic story of Paris and Achilles, we have a very plain
allusion to that part of the primeval promise, which referred to the bruising
of the conqueror’s ”heel.” Achilles, the only son of a goddess, was
invulnerable in all points except the heel, but there a wound was deadly. At
that his adversary took aim, and death was the result.
Now, if there be such evidence still, that even Pagans knew that it was by
dying that the promised Messiah was to destroy death and him that has the power
of death, that is the Devil, how much more vivid must have been the impression
of mankind in general in regard to this vital truth in the early days of
Semiramis, when they were so much nearer the fountain-head of all Divine
tradition. When, therefore, the name Zoroaster, ”the seed of the woman,” was
given to him who had perished in the midst of a prosperous career of false
worship and apostacy, there can be no doubt of the meaning which that name was
intended to convey. And the fact of the violent death of the hero, who, in the
esteem of his partisans, had done so much to bless mankind, to make life happy,
and to deliver them from the fear of the wrath to come, instead of being fatal
to the bestowal of such a title upon him, favoured rather than otherwise the
daring design. All that was needed to countenance the scheme on the part of
those who wished an excuse for continued apostacy from the true God, was just
to give out that, though the great patron of the apostacy had fallen a prey to
the malice of men, he had freely offered himself for the good of mankind. Now,
this was what was actually done. The Chaldean version of the story of the great
Zoroaster is that he prayed to the supreme God of heaven to take away his life;
that his prayer was heard, and that he expired, assuring his followers that, if
they cherished due regard for his memory, the empire would never depart from
the Babylonians. What Berosus, the Babylonian historian, says of the cutting
off of the head of the great god Belus, is plainly to the same effect. Belus,
says Berosus, commanded one of the gods to cut off his head, that from the
blood thus shed by his own command and with his own consent, when mingled with
the earth, new creatures might be formed, the first creation being represented
as a sort of a failure. Thus the death of Belus, who was Nimrod, like that
attributed to Zoroaster, was represented as entirely voluntary, and as
submitted to for the benefit of the world.
It seems to have been now only when the dead hero was to be deified, that
the secret Mysteries were set up. The previous form of apostacy during the life
of Nimrod appears to have been open and public. Now, it was evidently felt that
publicity was out of the question. The death of the great ringleader of the
apostacy was not the death of a warrior slain in battle, but an act of judicial
rigour, solemnly inflicted. This is well established by the accounts of the
deaths of both Tammuz and Osiris. The following is the account of Tammuz, given
by the celebrated Maimonides, deeply read in all the learning of the Chaldeans:
”When the false prophet named Thammuz preached to a certain king that he should
worship the seven stars and the twelve signs of the Zodiac, that king ordered
him to be put to a terrible death. On the night of his death all the images
assembled from the ends of the earth into the temple of Babylon, to the great
golden image of the Sun, which was suspended between heaven and earth. That
image prostrated itself in the midst of the temple, and so did all the images
around it, while it related to them all that had happened to Thammuz. The images
wept and lamented all the night long, and then in the morning they flew away,
each to his own temple again, to the ends of the earth. And hence arose the
custom every year, on the first day of the month Thammuz, to mourn and to weep
for Thammuz.” There is here, of course, all the extravagance of idolatry, as
found in the Chaldean sacred books that Maimonides had consulted; but there is
no reason to doubt the fact stated either as to the manner or the cause of the
death of Tammuz. In this Chaldean legend, it is stated that it was by the
command of a ”certain king” that this ringleader in apostacy was put to death.
Who could this king be, who was so determinedly opposed to the worship of the
host of heaven? From what is related of the Egyptian Hercules, we get very
valuable light on this subject. It is admitted by Wilkinson that the most
ancient Hercules, and truly primitive one, was he who was known in Egypt as
having, ”by the power of the gods” * (i.e., by the SPIRIT) fought against and
overcome the Giants.
* The name of the true God (Elohim) is plural. Therefore, ”the power of the
gods,” and ”of God,” is expressed by the same term.
Now, no doubt, the title and character of Hercules were afterwards given by
the Pagans to him whom they worshipped as the grand deliverer or Messiah, just
as the adversaries of the Pagan divinities came to be stigmatised as the
”Giants” who rebelled against Heaven. But let the reader only reflect who were
the real Giants that rebelled against Heaven. They were Nimrod and his party; for
the ”Giants” were just the ”Mighty ones,” of whom Nimrod was the leader. Who,
then, was most likely to head the opposition to the apostacy from the primitive
worship? If Shem was at that time alive, as beyond question he was, who so
likely as he? In exact accordance with this deduction, we find that one of the
names of the primitive Hercules in Egypt was ”Sem.”
If ”Sem,” then, was the primitive Hercules, who overcame the Giants, and
that not by mere physical force, but by ”the power of God,” or the influence of
the Holy Spirit, that entirely agrees with his character; and more than that,
it remarkably agrees with the Egyptian account of the death of Osiris. The
Egyptians say, that the grand enemy of their god overcame him, not by open
violence, but that, having entered into a conspiracy with seventy-two of the
leading men of Egypt, he got him into his power, put him to death, and then cut
his dead body into pieces, and sent the different parts to so many different
cities throughout the country. The real meaning of this statement will appear,
if we glance at the judicial institutions of Egypt. Seventy-two was just the
number of the judges, both civil and sacred, who, according to Egyptian law,
were required to determine what was to be the punishment of one guilty of so
high an offence as that of Osiris, supposing this to have become a matter of
judicial inquiry. In determining such a case, there were necessarily two
tribunals concerned. First, there were the ordinary judges, who had power of
life and death, and who amounted to thirty, then there was, over and above, a
tribunal consisting of forty-two judges, who, if Osiris was condemned to die,
had to determine whether his body should be buried or no, for, before burial,
every one after death had to pass the ordeal of this tribunal. *
* DIODORUS. The words of Diodorus, as printed in the ordinary editions,
make the number of the judges simply ”more than forty,” without specifying how
many more. In the Codex Coislianus, the number is stated to be ”two more than forty.”
The earthly judges, who tried the question of burial, are admitted both by
WILKINSON and BUNSEN, to have corresponded in number to the judges of the
infernal regions. Now, these judges, over and above their president, are proved
from the monuments to have been just forty-two. The earthly judges at funerals,
therefore, must equally have been forty-two. In reference to this number as
applying equally to the judges of this world and the world of spirits, Bunsen,
speaking of the judgment on a deceased person in the world unseen, uses these
words in the passage above referred to: ”Forty-two gods (the number composing
the earthly tribunal of the dead) occupy the judgment-seat.” Diodorus himself,
whether he actually wrote ”two more than forty,” or simply ”more than forty,”
gives reason to believe that forty-two was the number he had present to his
mind; for he says, that ”the whole of the fable of the shades below,” as
brought by Orpheus from Egypt, was ”copied from the ceremonies of the Egyptian
funerals,” which he had witnessed at the judgment before the burial of the
dead. If, therefore, there were just forty-two judges in ”the shades below,”
that even, on the showing of Diodorus, whatever reading of his words be
preferred, proves that the number of the judges in the earthly judgment must
have been the same.
As burial was refused him, both tribunals would necessarily be concerned;
and thus there would be exactly seventy-two persons, under Typho the president,
to condemn Osiris to die and to be cut in pieces. What, then, does the
statement account to, in regard to the conspiracy, but just to this, that the
great opponent of the idolatrous system which Osiris introduced, had so
convinced these judges of the enormity of the offence which he had committed,
that they gave up the offender to an awful death, and to ignominy after it, as
a terror to any who might afterwards tread in his steps. The cutting of the
dead body in pieces, and sending the dismembered parts among the different
cities, is paralleled, and its object explained, by what we read in the Bible
of the cutting of the dead body of the Levite’s concubine in pieces (Judges
19:29), and sending one of the parts to each of the twelve tribes of Israel;
and the similar step taken by Saul, when he hewed the two yoke of oxen asunder,
and sent them throughout all the coasts of his kingdom (1 Sam 11:7). It is
admitted by commentators that both the Levite and Saul acted on a patriarchal
custom, according to which summary vengeance would be dealt to those who failed
to come to the gathering that in this solemn way was summoned. This was
declared in so many words by Saul, when the parts of the slaughtered oxen were
sent among the tribes: ”Whosoever cometh not forth after Saul and after Samuel,
so shall it be done to his oxen.” In like manner, when the dismembered parts of
Osiris were sent among the cities by the seventy-two ”conspirators”–in other
words, by the supreme judges of Egypt, it was equivalent to a solemn
declaration in their name, that ”whosoever should do as Osiris had done, so
should it be done to him; so should he also be cut in pieces.”
When irreligion and apostacy again arose into the ascendant, this act, into
which the constituted authorities who had to do with the ringleader of the
apostates were led, for the putting down of the combined system of irreligion
and despotism set up by Osiris or Nimrod, was naturally the object of intense
abhorrence to all his sympathisers; and for his share in it the chief actor was
stigmatised as Typho, or ”The Evil One.” *
* Wilkinson admits that different individuals at different times bore this
hated name in Egypt. One of the most noted names by which Typho, or the Evil
One, was called, was Seth (EPIPHANIUS, Adv. Hoeres). Now Seth and Shem are
synonymous, both alike signifying ”The appointed one.” As Shem was a younger
son of Noah, being ”the brother of Japhet the elder” (Gen 10:21), and as the
pre-eminence was divinely destined to him, the name Shem, ”the appointed one,”
had doubtless been given him by Divine direction, either at his birth or
afterwards, to mark him out as Seth had been previously marked out as the
”child of promise.” Shem, however, seems to have been known in Egypt as Typho,
not only under the name of Seth, but under his own name; for Wilkinson tells us
that Typho was characterised by a name that signified ”to destroy and render
desert.” (Egyptians) Now the name of Shem also in one of its meanings signifies
”to desolate” or lay waste. So Shem, the appointed one, was by his enemies made
Shem, the Desolator or Destroyer–i.e., the Devil.
The influence that this abhorred Typho wielded over the minds of the
so-called ”conspirators,” considering the physical force with which Nimrod was
upheld, must have been wonderful, and goes to show, that though his deed in regard
to Osiris is veiled, and himself branded by a hateful name, he was indeed none
other than that primitive Hercules who overcame the Giants by ”the power of
God,” by the persuasive might of his Holy Spirit.
In connection with this character of Shem, the myth that makes Adonis, who
is identified with Osiris, perish by the tusks of a wild boar, is easily
unravelled. * The tusk of a wild boar was a symbol. In Scripture, a tusk is
called ”a horn”; among many of the Classic Greeks it was regarded in the very
same light. **
* In India, a demon with a ”boar’s face” is said to have gained such power
through his devotion, that he oppressed the ”devotees” or worshippers of the
gods, who had to hide themselves. (MOOR’S Pantheon) Even in Japan there seems
to be a similar myth.
** Pausanian admits that some in his day regarded tusks as teeth; but he
argues strongly, and, I think, conclusively, for their being considered as
”horns.”
When once it is known that a tusk is regarded as a ”horn” according to the
symbolism of idolatry, the meaning of the boar’s tusks, by which Adonis
perished, is not far to seek. The bull’s horns that Nimrod wore were the symbol
of physical power. The boar’s tusks were the symbol of spiritual power. As a
”horn” means power, so a tusk, that is, a horn in the mouth, means ”power in
the mouth”; in other words, the power of persuasion; the very power with which
”Sem,” the primitive Hercules, was so signally endowed. Even from the ancient
traditions of the Gael, we get an item of evidence that at once illustrates
this idea of power in the mouth, and connects it with that great son of Noah,
on whom the blessing of the Highest, as recorded in Scripture, did specially
rest. The Celtic Hercules was called Hercules Ogmius, which, in Chaldee, is
”Hercules the Lamenter.” *
* The Celtic scholars derive the name Ogmius from the Celtic word Ogum,
which is said to denote ”the secret of writing”; but Ogum is much more likely
to be derived from the name of the god, than the name of the god to be derived
from it.
No name could be more appropriate, none more descriptive of the history of
Shem, than this. Except our first parent, Adam, there was, perhaps, never a
mere man that saw so much grief as he. Not only did he see a vast apostacy,
which, with his righteous feelings, and witness as he had been of the awful
catastrophe of the flood, must have deeply grieved him; but he lived to bury
SEVEN GENERATIONS of his descendants. He lived 502 years after the flood, and
as the lives of men were rapidly shortened after that event, no less than SEVEN
generations of his lineal descendants died before him (Gen 11:10-32). How
appropriate a name Ogmius, ”The Lamenter or Mourner,” for one who had such a
history! Now, how is this ”Mourning” Hercules represented as putting down enormities
and redressing wrongs? Not by his club, like the Hercules of the Greeks, but by
the force of persuasion. Multitudes were represented as following him, drawn by
fine chains of gold and amber inserted into their ears, and which chains
proceeded from his mouth. *
* Sir W. BETHAM’S Gael and Cymbri. In connection with this Ogmius, one of
the names of ”Sem,” the great Egyptian Hercules who overcame the Giants, is
worthy of notice. That name is Chon. In the Etymologicum Magnum, apud BRYANT,
we thus read: ”They say that in the Egyptian dialect Hercules is called Chon.”
Compare this with WILKINSON, where Chon is called ”Sem.” Now Khon signifies ”to
lament” in Chaldee, and as Shem was Khon–i.e., ”Priest” of the Most High God,
his character and peculiar circumstances as Khon ”the lamenter” would form an
additional reason why he should be distinguished by that name by which the
Egyptian Hercules was known. And it is not to be overlooked, that on the part
of those who seek to turn sinners from the error of their ways, there is an
eloquence in tears that is very impressive. The tears of Whitefield formed one
great part of his power; and, in like manner, the tears of Khon, ”the
lamenting” Hercules, would aid him mightily in overcoming the Giants.
There is a great difference between the two symbols–the tusks of a boar and
the golden chains issuing from the mouth, that draw willing crowds by the ears;
but both very beautifully illustrate the same idea–the might of that persuasive
power that enabled Shem for a time to withstand the tide of evil that came
rapidly rushing in upon the world.
Now when Shem had so powerfully wrought upon the minds of men as to induce
them to make a terrible example of the great Apostate, and when that Apostate’s
dismembered limbs were sent to the chief cities, where no doubt his system had
been established, it will be readily perceived that, in these circumstances, if
idolatry was to continue–if, above all, it was to take a step in advance, it
was indispensable that it should operate in secret. The terror of an execution,
inflicted on one so mighty as Nimrod, made it needful that, for some time to
come at least, the extreme of caution should be used. In these circumstances,
then, began, there can hardly be a doubt, that system of ”Mystery,” which,
having Babylon for its centre, has spread over the world. In these Mysteries,
under the seal of secrecy and the sanction of an oath, and by means of all the
fertile resources of magic, men were gradually led back to all the idolatry
that had been publicly suppressed, while new features were added to that
idolatry that made it still more blasphemous than before. That magic and
idolatry were twin sisters, and came into the world together, we have abundant
evidence. ”He” (Zoroaster), says Justin the historian, ”was said to be the
first that invented magic arts, and that most diligently studied the motions of
the heavenly bodies.” The Zoroaster spoken of by Justin is the Bactrian
Zoroaster; but this is generally admitted to be a mistake. Stanley, in his
History of Oriental Philosophy, concludes that this mistake had arisen from
similarity of name, and that from this cause that had been attributed to the
Bactrian Zoroaster which properly belonged to the Chaldean, ”since it cannot be
imagined that the Bactrian was the inventor of those arts in which the
Chaldean, who lived contemporary with him, was so much skilled.” Epiphanius had
evidently come to the same substantial conclusion before him. He maintains,
from the evidence open to him in his day, that it was ”Nimrod, that established
the sciences of magic and astronomy, the invention of which was subsequently
attributed to (the Bactrian) Zoroaster.” As we have seen that Nimrod and the
Chaldean Zoroaster are the same, the conclusions of the ancient and the modern inquirers
into Chaldean antiquity entirely harmonise. Now the secret system of the
Mysteries gave vast facilities for imposing on the senses of the initiated by
means of the various tricks and artifices of magic. Notwithstanding all the
care and precautions of those who conducted these initiations, enough has
transpired to give us a very clear insight into their real character.
Everything was so contrived as to wind up the minds of the novices to the
highest pitch of excitement, that, after having surrendered themselves
implicitly to the priests, they might be prepared to receive anything. After
the candidates for initiation had passed through the confessional, and sworn
the required oaths, ”strange and amazing objects,” says Wilkinson, ”presented
themselves. Sometimes the place they were in seemed to shake around them;
sometimes it appeared bright and resplendent with light and radiant fire, and
then again covered with black darkness, sometimes thunder and lightning,
sometimes frightful noises and bellowings, sometimes terrible apparitions
astonished the trembling spectators.” Then, at last, the great god, the central
object of their worship, Osiris, Tammuz, Nimrod or Adonis, was revealed to them
in the way most fitted to soothe their feelings and engage their blind
affections. An account of such a manifestation is thus given by an ancient
Pagan, cautiously indeed, but yet in such a way as shows the nature of the
magic secret by which such an apparent miracle was accomplished: ”In a
manifestation which one must not reveal…there is seen on a wall of the temple a
mass of light, which appears at first at a very great distance. It is
transformed, while unfolding itself, into a visage evidently divine and
supernatural, of an aspect severe, but with a touch of sweetness. Following the
teachings of a mysterious religion, the Alexandrians honour it as Osiris or
Adonis.” From this statement, there can hardly be a doubt that the magical art
here employed was none other than that now made use of in the modern
phantasmagoria. Such or similar means were used in the very earliest periods
for presenting to the view of the living, in the secret Mysteries, those who
were dead. We have statements in ancient history referring to the very time of
Semiramis, which imply that magic rites were practised for this very purpose; *
and as the magic lantern, or something akin to it, was manifestly used in later
times for such an end, it is reasonable to conclude that the same means, or
similar, were employed in the most ancient times, when the same effects were
produced.
* One of the statements to which I refer is contained in the following
words of Moses of Chorene in his Armenian History, referring to the answer made
by Semiramis to the friends of Araeus, who had been slain in battle by her: ”I
have given commands, says Semiramis, to my gods to lick the wounds of Araeus,
and to raise him from the dead. The gods, says she, have licked Araeus, and
recalled him to life.” If Semiramis had really done what she said she had done,
it would have been a miracle. The effects of magic were sham miracles; and
Justin and Epiphanius show that sham miracles came in at the very birth of
idolatry. Now, unless the sham miracle of raising the dead by magical arts had
already been known to be practised in the days of Semiramis, it is not likely
that she would have given such an answer to those whom she wished to
propitiate; for, on the one hand, how could she ever have thought of such an
answer, and on the other, how could she expect that it would have the intended
effect, if there was no current belief in the practice of necromancy? We find
that in Egypt, about the same age, such magic arts must have been practised, if
Manetho is to be believed. ”Manetho says,” according to Josephus, ”that he [the
elder Horus, evidently spoken of as a human and mortal king] was admitted to
the sight of the gods, and that Amenophis desired the same privilege.” This
pretended admission to the right of the gods evidently implied the use of the
magic art referred to in the text.
Now, in the hands of crafty, designing men, this was a powerful means of
imposing upon those who were willing to be imposed upon, who were averse to the
holy spiritual religion of the living God, and who still hankered after the
system that was put down. It was easy for those who controlled the Mysteries,
having discovered secrets that were then unknown to the mass of mankind, and
which they carefully preserved in their own exclusive keeping, to give them
what might seem ocular demonstration, that Tammuz, who had been slain, and for
whom such lamentations had been made, was still alive, and encompassed with
divine and heavenly glory. From the lips of one so gloriously revealed, or what
was practically the same, from the lips of some unseen priest, speaking in his
name from behind the scenes, what could be too wonderful or incredible to be
believed? Thus the whole system of the secret Mysteries of Babylon was intended
to glorify a dead man; and when once the worship of one dead man was
established, the worship of many more was sure to follow. This casts light upon
the language of the 106th Psalm, where the Lord, upbraiding Israel for their
apostacy, says: ”They joined themselves to Baalpeor, and ate the sacrifices of
the dead.” Thus, too, the way was paved for bringing in all the abominations
and crimes of which the Mysteries became the scenes; for, to those who liked
not to retain God in their knowledge, who preferred some visible object of
worship, suited to the sensuous feelings of their carnal minds, nothing could seem
a more cogent reason for faith or practice than to hear with their own ears a
command given forth amid so glorious a manifestation apparently by the very
divinity they adored.
The scheme, thus skilfully formed, took effect. Semiramis gained glory from
her dead and deified husband; and in course of time both of them, under the
names of Rhea and Nin, or ”Goddess-Mother and Son,” were worshipped with an
enthusiasm that was incredible, and their images were everywhere set up and
adored. *
* It would seem that no public idolatry was ventured upon till the reign of
the grandson of Semiramis, Arioch or Arius. (Cedreni Compendium)
Wherever the Negro aspect of Nimrod was found an obstacle to his worship,
this was very easily obviated. According to the Chaldean doctrine of the
transmigration of souls, all that was needful was just to teach that Ninus had
reappeared in the person of a posthumous son, of a fair complexion,
supernaturally borne by his widowed wife after the father had gone to glory. As
the licentious and dissolute life of Semiramis gave her many children, for whom
no ostensible father on earth would be alleged, a plea like this would at once
sanctify sin, and enable her to meet the feelings of those who were disaffected
to the true worship of Jehovah, and yet might have not fancy to bow down before
a Negro divinity. From the light reflected on Babylon by Egypt, as well as from
the form of the extant images of the Babylonian child in the arms of the
goddess-mother, we have every reason to believe that this was actually done. In
Egypt the fair Horus, the son of the black Osiris, who was the favourite object
of worship, in the arms of the goddess Isis, was said to have been miraculously
born in consequence of a connection, on the part of that goddess, with Osiris
after his death, and, in point of fact, to have been a new incarnation of that
god, to avenge his death on his murderers. It is wonderful to find in what
widely-severed countries, and amongst what millions of the human race at this
day, who never saw a Negro, a Negro god is worshipped. But yet, as we shall
afterwards see, among the civilised nations of antiquity, Nimrod almost
everywhere fell into disrepute, and was deposed from his original pre-eminence,
expressly ob deformitatem, ”on account of his ugliness.” Even in Babylon
itself, the posthumous child, as identified with his father, and inheriting all
his father’s glory, yet possessing more of his mother’s complexion, came to be
the favourite type of the Madonna’s divine son.
This son, thus worshipped in his mother’s arms, was looked upon as invested
with all the attributes, and called by almost all the names of the promised
Messiah. As Christ, in the Hebrew of the Old Testament, was called Adonai, The
Lord, so Tammuz was called Adon or Adonis. Under the name of Mithras, he was
worshipped as the ”Mediator.” As Mediator and head of the covenant of grace, he
was styled Baal-berith, Lord of the Covenant (Judges 8:33). In this character
he is represented in Persian monuments as seated on the rainbow, the well known
symbol of the covenant. In India, under the name of Vishnu, the Preserver or
Saviour of men, though a god, he was worshipped as the great ”Victim-Man,” who
before the worlds were, because there was nothing else to offer, offered
himself as a sacrifice. The Hindoo sacred writings teach that this mysterious
offering before all creation is the foundation of all the sacrifices that have
ever been offered since. *
* In the exercise of his office as the Remedial god, Vishnu is said to
”extract the thorns of the three worlds.” (MOOR’S Pantheon) ”Thorns” were a
symbol of the curse–Genesis 3:18.
Do any marvel at such a statement being found in the sacred books of a
Pagan mythology? Why should they? Since sin entered the world there has been
only one way of salvation, and that through the blood of the everlasting
covenant–a way that all mankind once knew, from the days of righteous Abel
downwards. When Abel, ”by faith,” offered unto God his more excellent sacrifice
than that of Cain, it was his faith ”in the blood of the Lamb slain,” in the
purpose of God ”from the foundation of the world,” and in due time to be
actually offered up on Calvary, that gave all the ”excellence” to his offering.
If Abel knew of ”the blood of the Lamb,” why should Hindoos not have known of
it? One little word shows that even in Greece the virtue of ”the blood of God”
had once been known, though that virtue, as exhibited in its poets, was utterly
obscured and degraded. That word is Ichor. Every reader of the bards of classic
Greece knows that Ichor is the term peculiarly appropriated to the blood of a
divinity. Thus Homer refers to it:
”From the clear vein the
immortal Ichor flowed,
Such stream as issues from a wounded god,
Pure emanation, uncorrupted flood,
Unlike our gross, diseased terrestrial blood.”
Now, what is the proper meaning of the term Ichor? In Greek it has no
etymological meaning whatever; but, in Chaldee, Ichor signifies ”The precious
thing.” Such a name, applied to the blood of a divinity, could have only one
origin. It bears its evidence on the very face of it, as coming from that grand
patriarchal tradition, that led Abel to look forward to the ”precious blood” of
Christ, the most ”precious” gift that love Divine could give to a guilty world,
and which, while the blood of the only genuine ”Victim-Man,” is at the same
time, in deed and in truth, ”The blood of God” (Acts 20:28). Even in Greece
itself, though the doctrine was utterly perverted, it was not entirely lost. It
was mingled with falsehood and fable, it was hid from the multitude; but yet,
in the secret mystic system it necessarily occupied an important place. As
Servius tells us that the grand purpose of the Bacchic orgies ”was the
purification of souls,” and as in these orgies there was regularly the tearing asunder
and the shedding of the blood of an animal, in memory of the shedding of the
life’s blood of the great divinity commemorated in them, could this symbolical
shedding of the blood of that divinity have no bearing on the ”purification”
from sin, these mystic rites were intended to effect? We have seen that the
sufferings of the Babylonian Zoroaster and Belus were expressly represented as
voluntary, and as submitted to for the benefit of the world, and that in
connection with crushing the great serpent’s head, which implied the removal of
sin and the curse. If the Grecian Bacchus was just another form of the
Babylonian divinity, then his sufferings and blood-shedding must have been
represented as having been undergone for the same purpose–viz., for the ”purification
of souls.” From this point of view, let the well known name of Bacchus in
Greece be looked at. The name was Dionysus or Dionusos. What is the meaning of
that name? Hitherto it has defied all interpretation. But deal with it as
belonging to the language of that land from which the god himself originally
came, and the meaning is very plain. D’ion-nuso-s signifies ”THE SIN-BEARER,” *
a name entirely appropriate to the character of him whose sufferings were
represented as so mysterious, and who was looked up to as the great ”purifier
of souls.”
* The expression used in Exodus 28:38, for ”bearing iniquity” or in a
vicarious manner is ”nsha eon” (the first letter eon being ayn). A synonym for
eon, ”iniquity,” is aon (the first letter being aleph). In Chaldee the first
letter a becomes i, and therefore aon, ”iniquity,” is ion. Then nsha ”to bear,”
in the participle active is ”nusha.” As the Greeks had no sh, that became nusa.
De, or Da, is the demonstrative pronoun signifying ”That” or ”The great.” And thus
”D’ion-nusa” is exactly ”The great sin-bearer.” That the classic Pagans had the
very idea of the imputation of sin, and of vicarious suffering, is proved by
what Ovid says in regard to Olenos. Olenos is said to have taken upon him and
willingly to have borne the blame of guilt of which he was innocent. Under the
load of this imputed guilt, voluntarily taken upon himself, Olenos is
represented as having suffered such horror as to have perished, being petrified
or turned into stone. As the stone into which Olenos was changed was erected on
the holy mountain of Ida, that shows that Olenos must have been regarded as a
sacred person. The real character of Olenos, as the ”sin-bearer,” can be very
fully established. (see note below)
Now, this Babylonian god, known in Greece as ”The sin-bearer,” and in India
as the ”Victim-Man,” among the Buddhists of the East, the original elements of
whose system are clearly Babylonian, was commonly addressed as the ”Saviour of
the world.” It has been all along well enough known that the Greeks
occasionally worshipped the supreme god under the title of ”Zeus the Saviour”;
but this title was thought to have reference only to deliverance in battle, or some
suck-like temporal deliverance. But when it is known that ”Zeus the Saviour”
was only a title of Dionysus, the ”sin-bearing Bacchus,” his character, as ”The
Saviour,” appears in quite a different light. In Egypt, the Chaldean god was
held up as the great object of love and adoration, as the god through whom
”goodness and truth were revealed to mankind.” He was regarded as the
predestined heir of all things; and, on the day of his birth, it was believed
that a voice was heard to proclaim, ”The Lord of all the earth is born.” In
this character he was styled ”King of kings, and Lord of lords,” it being as a
professed representative of this hero-god that the celebrated Sesostris caused
this very title to be added to his name on the monuments which he erected to
perpetuate the fame of his victories. Not only was he honoured as the great
”World King,” he was regarded as Lord of the invisible world, and ”Judge of the
dead”; and it was taught that, in the world of spirits, all must appear before
his dread tribunal, to have their destiny assigned them. As the true Messiah
was prophesied of under the title of the ”Man whose name was the branch,” he
was celebrated not only as the ”Branch of Cush,” but as the ”Branch of God,”
graciously given to the earth for healing all the ills that flesh is heir to. *
He was worshipped in Babylon under the name of El-Bar, or ”God the Son.” Under
this very name he is introduced by Berosus, the Chaldean historian, as the
second in the list of Babylonian sovereigns. **
* This is the esoteric meaning of Virgil’s ”Golden Branch,” and of the
Mistletoe Branch of the Druids. The proof of this must be reserved to the
Apocalypse of the Past. I may remark, however, in passing, on the wide extent
of the worship of a sacred branch. Not only do the Negroes in Africa in the
worship of the Fetiche, on certain occasions, make use of a sacred branch
(HURD’S Rites and Ceremonies), but even in India there are traces of the same
practice. My brother, S. Hislop, Free Church Missionary at Nagpore, informs me
that the late Rajah of Nagpore used every year, on a certain day, to go in
state to worship the branch of a particular species of tree, called Apta, which
had been planted for the occasion, and which, after receiving divine honours,
was plucked up, and its leaves distributed by the native Prince among his
nobles. In the streets of the city numerous boughs of the same kind of tree
were sold, and the leaves presented to friends under the name of sona, or
”gold.”
** BEROSUS, in BUNSEN’S Egypt. The name ”El-Bar” is given above in the
Hebrew form, as being more familiar to the common reader of the English Bible.
The Chaldee form of the name is Ala-Bar, which in the Greek of Berosus, is
Ala-Par, with the ordinary Greek termination os affixed to it. The change of Bar
into Par in Greek is just on the same principle as Ab, ”father,” in Greek
becomes Appa, and Bard, the ”spotted one,” becomes Pardos, &c. This name,
Ala-Bar, was probably given by Berosus to Ninyas as the legitimate son and
successor of Nimrod. That Ala-Par-os was really intended to designate the
sovereign referred to, as ”God the Son,” or ”the Son of God,” is confirmed by
another reading of the same name as given in Greek. There the name is
Alasparos. Now Pyrsiporus, as applied to Bacchus, means Ignigena, or the ”Seed
of Fire”; and Ala-sporos, the ”Seed of God,” is just a similar expression
formed in the same way, the name being Grecised.
Under this name he has been found in the sculptures of Nineveh by Layard,
the name Bar ”the Son,” having the sign denoting El or ”God” prefixed to it.
Under the same name he has been found by Sir H. Rawlinson, the names ”Beltis”
and the ”Shining Bar” being in immediate juxtaposition. Under the name of Bar
he was worshipped in Egypt in the earliest times, though in later times the god
Bar was degraded in the popular Pantheon, to make way for another more popular
divinity. In Pagan Rome itself, as Ovid testifies, he was worshipped under the
name of the ”Eternal Boy.” * Thus daringly and directly was a mere mortal set
up in Babylon in opposition to the ”Son of the Blessed.”
* To understand the true meaning of the above expression, reference must be
had to a remarkable form of oath among the Romans. In Rome the most sacred form
of an oath was (as we learn from AULUS GELLIUS), ”By Jupiter the STONE.” This,
as it stands, is nonsense. But translate ”lapidem” [stone] back into the sacred
tongue, or Chaldee, and the oath stands, ”By Jove, the Son,” or ”By the son of
Jove.” Ben, which in Hebrew is Son, in Chaldee becomes Eben, which also
signifies a stone, as may be seen in ”Eben-ezer,” ”The stone of help.” Now as
the most learned inquirers into antiquity have admitted that the Roman Jovis,
which was anciently the nominative, is just a form of the Hebrew Jehovah, it is
evident that the oath had originally been, ”by the son of Jehovah.” This
explains how the most solemn and binding oath had been taken in the form above
referred to; and,it shows, also, what was really meant when Bacchus, ”the son
of Jovis,” was called ”the Eternal Boy.” (OVID, Metam.)
Note
Olenos, the Sin-Bearer
In different portions of this work evidence has been brought to show that
Saturn, ”the father of gods and men,” was in one aspect just our first parent
Adam. Now, of Saturn it is said that he devoured all his children. *
* Sometimes he is said to have devoured only his male children; but see
SMITH’S (Larger) Classical Dictionary, ”Hera,” where it will be found that the
female as well as the male were devoured.
In the exoteric story, among those who knew not the actual fact referred
to, this naturally appeared in the myth, in the shape in which we commonly find
it–viz., that he devoured them all as soon as they were born. But that which
was really couched under the statement, in regard to his devouring his
children, was just the Scriptural fact of the Fall–viz., that he destroyed them
by eating–not by eating them, but by eating the forbidden fruit. When this was
the sad and dismal state of matters, the Pagan story goes on to say that the
destruction of the children of the father of gods and men was arrested by means
of his wife, Rhea. Rhea, as we have already seen, had really as much to do with
the devouring of Saturn’s children, as Saturn himself; but, in the progress of
idolatry and apostacy, Rhea, or Eve, came to get glory at Saturn’s expense.
Saturn, or Adam, was represented as a morose divinity; Rhea, or Eve,
exceedingly benignant; and, in her benignity, she presented to her husband a
stone bound in swaddling bands, which he greedily devoured, and henceforth the
children of the cannibal father were safe. The stone bound in swaddling bands
is, in the sacred language, ”Ebn Hatul”; but Ebn-Hat-tul * also signifies ”A
sin-bearing son.”
* Hata, ”sin,” is found also in Chaldee, Hat. Tul is from Ntl, ”to
support.” If the reader will look at Horus with his swathes (BRYANT); Diana
with the bandages round her legs; the symbolic bull of the Persian swathed in
like manner, and even the shapeless log of the Tahitians, used as a god and
bound about with ropes (WILLIAMS); he will see, I think, that there must be
some important mystery in this swathing.
This does not necessarily mean that Eve, or the mother of mankind, herself
actually brought forth the promised seed (although there are many myths also to
that effect), but that, having received the glad tidings herself, and embraced
it, she presented it to her husband, who received it by faith from her, and
that this laid the foundation of his own salvation and that of his posterity.
The devouring on the part of Saturn of the swaddled stone is just the
symbolical expression of the eagerness with which Adam by faith received the
good news of the woman’s seed; for the act of faith, both in the Old Testament
and in the New, is symbolised by eating. Thus Jeremiah says, ”Thy words were
found of me, and I did eat them, and thy word was unto me the joy and rejoicing
of my heart” (Jer 15:16). This also is strongly shown by our Lord Jesus Christ
Himself, who, while setting before the Jews the indispensable necessity of
eating His flesh, and feeding on Him, did at the same time say: ”It is the
Spirit that quickeneth; the flesh profiteth nothing: the words that I speak
unto you, they are spirit, and they are life” (John 6:63). That Adam eagerly
received the good news about the promised seed, and treasured it up in his
heart as the life of his soul, is evident from the name which he gave to his
wife immediately after hearing it: ”And Adam called his wife’s name Eve,
because she was the mother of all living ones” (Gen 3:20).
The story of the swaddled stone does not end with the swallowing of it, and
the arresting of the ruin of the children of Saturn. This swaddled stone was
said to be ”preserved near the temple of Delphi, where care was taken to anoint
it daily with oil, and to cover it with wool” (MAURICE’S Indian Antiquities).
If this stone symbolised the ”sin-bearing son,” it of course symbolised also
the Lamb of God, slain from the foundation of the world, in whose symbolic
covering our first parents were invested when God clothed them in the coats of
skins. Therefore, though represented to the eye as a stone, he must have the
appropriate covering of wool. When represented as a branch, the branch of God,
the branch also was wrapped in wool (POTTER, Religion of Greece). The daily
anointing with oil is very significant. If the stone represented the
”sin-bearing son,” what could the anointing of that ”sin-bearing son” daily
with oil mean, but just to point him out as the ”Lord’s Anointed,” or the
”Messiah,” whom the idolatrous worshipped in opposition to the true Messiah yet
to be revealed?
One of the names by which this swaddled and anointed stone was called is
very strikingly confirmatory of the above conclusion. That name is Baitulos.
This we find from Priscian, who, speaking of ”that stone which Saturn is said
to have devoured for Jupiter,” adds, whom the Greeks called ”Baitulos.” Now,
”B’hai-tuloh” signifies the ”Life-restoring child.” *
* From Tli, Tleh, or Tloh, ”Infans puer” (CLAVIS STOCKII, Chald.), and Hia,
or Haya, ”to live, to restore life.” (GESENIUS) From Hia, ”to live,” with
digamma prefixed, comes the Greek ”life.” That Hia, when adopted into Greek,
was also pronounced Haya, we have evidence in he noun Hiim, ”life,” pronounced
Hayyim, which in Greek is represented by ”blood.” The Mosaic principle, that
”the blood was the life,” is thus proved to have been known by others besides
the Jews. Now Haya, ”to live or restore life,” with the digamma prefixed, becomes
B’haya: and so in Egypt, we find that Bai signified ”soul,” or ”spirit”
(BUNSEN), which is the living principle. B’haitulos, then, is the
”Life-restoring child.” P’haya-n is the same god.
The father of gods and men had destroyed his children by eating; but the
reception of ”the swaddled stone” is said to have ”restored them to life”
(HESIOD, Theogon.). Hence the name Baitulos; and this meaning of the name is
entirely in accordance with what is said in Sanchuniathon about the Baithulia
made by the Phoenician god Ouranos: ”It was the god Ouranos who devised
Baithulia, contriving stones that moved as having life.” If the stone Baitulos
represented the ”life-restoring child,” it was natural that that stone should
be made, if possible, to appear as having ”life” in itself.
Now, there is a great analogy between this swaddled stone that represented
the ”sin-bearing son,” and that Olenos mentioned by Ovid, who took on him guilt
not his own, and in consequence was changed into a stone. We have seen already
that Olenos, when changed into a stone, was set up in Phrygia on the holy
mountain of Ida. We have reason to believe that the stone which was fabled to
have done so much for the children of Saturn, and was set up near the temple of
Delphi, was just a representation of this same Olenos. We find that Olen was
the first prophet at Delphi, who founded the first temple there (PAUSA
Phocica). As the prophets and priests generally bore the names of the gods whom
they represented (Hesychius expressly tells us that the priest who represented
the great god under the name of the branch in the mysteries was himself called
by the name of Bacchus), this indicates one of the ancient names of the god of
Delphi. If, then, there was a sacred stone on Mount Ida called the stone of Olenos,
and a sacred stone in the precincts of the temple of Delphi, which Olen
founded, can there be a doubt that the sacred stone of Delphi represented the
same as was represented by the sacred stone of Ida? The swaddled stone set up
at Delphi is expressly called by Priscian, in the place already cited, ”a god.”
This god, then, that in symbol was divinely anointed, and was celebrated as
having restored to life the children of Saturn, father of gods and men, as
identified with the Idaean Olenos, is proved to have been regarded as occupying
the very place of the Messiah, the great Sin-bearer, who came to bear the sins
of men, and took their place and suffered in their room and stead; for Olenos,
as we have seen, voluntarily took on him guilt of which he was personally free.
While thus we have seen how much of the patriarchal faith was hid under the
mystical symbols of Paganism, there is yet a circumstance to be noted in regard
to the swaddled stone, that shows how the Mystery of Iniquity in Rome has
contrived to import this swaddled stone of Paganism into what is called
Christian symbolism. The Baitulos, or swaddled stone, was a round or globular
stone. This globular stone is frequently represented swathed and bound,
sometimes with more, sometimes with fewer bandages. In BRYANT, where the
goddess Cybele is represented as ”Spes Divina,” or Divine hope, we see the
foundation of this divine hope held out to the world in the representation of
the swaddled stone at her right hand, bound with four different swathes. In DAVID’S
Antiquites Etrusques, we find a goddess represented with Pandora’s box, the
source of all ill, in her extended hand, and the swaddled globe depending from
it; and in this case that globe has only two bandages, the one crossing the
other. And what is this bandage globe of Paganism but just the counterpart of
that globe, with a band around it, and the mystic Tau, or cross, on the top of
it, that is called ”the type of dominion,” and is frequently represented in the
hands of the profane representations of God the Father. The reader does not now
need to be told that the cross is the chosen sign and mark of that very God
whom the swaddled stone represented; and that when that God was born, it was
said, ”The Lord of all the earth is born” (WILKINSON). As the god symbolised by
the swaddled stone not only restored the children of Saturn to life, but
restored the lordship of the earth to Saturn himself, which by transgression he
had lost, it is not to be wondered at that it is said of ”these consecrated
stones,” that while ”some were dedicated to Jupiter, and others to the sun,”
”they were considered in a more particular manner sacred to Saturn,” the Father
of the gods (MAURICE), and that Rome, in consequence, has put the round stone
into the hand of the image, bearing the profaned name of God the Father
attached to it, and that from his source the bandaged globe, surmounted with
the mark of Tammuz, has become the symbol of dominion throughout all Papal
Europe.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter II
Section III
The Mother of the Child
Now while the mother derived her glory in the first instance from the
divine character attributed to the child in her arms, the mother in the
long-run practically eclipsed the son. At first, in all likelihood, there would
be no thought whatever of ascribing divinity to the mother. There was an express
promise that necessarily led mankind to expect that, at some time or other, the
Son of God, in amazing condescension, should appear in this world as the Son of
man. But there was no promise whatever, or the least shadow of a promise, to
lead any one to anticipate that a woman should ever be invested with attributes
that should raise her to a level with Divinity. It is in the last degree
improbable, therefore, that when the mother was first exhibited with the child
in her arms, it should be intended to give divine honours to her. She was
doubtless used chiefly as a pedestal for the upholding of the divine Son, and
holding him forth to the adoration of mankind; and glory enough it would be
counted for her, alone of all the daughters of Eve, to have given birth to the
promised seed, the world’s only hope. But while this, no doubt, was the design,
it is a plain principle in all idolatries that that which most appeals to the
senses must make the most powerful impression. Now the Son, even in his new
incarnation, when Nimrod was believed to have reappeared in a fairer form, was
exhibited merely as a child, without any very particular attraction; while the
mother in whose arms he was, was set off with all the art of painting and
sculpture, as invested with much of that extraordinary beauty which in reality
belonged to her. The beauty of Semiramis is said on one occasion to have
quelled a rising rebellion among her subjects on her sudden appearance among
them; and it is recorded that the memory of the admiration excited in their
minds by her appearance on that occasion was perpetuated by a statue erected in
Babylon, representing her in the guise in which she had fascinated them so
much. *
* VALERIUS MAXIMUS. Valerius Maximus does not mention anything about the
representation of Semiramis with the child in her arms; but as Semiramis was
deified as Rhea, whose distinguishing character was that of goddess Mother, and
as we have evidence that the name, ”Seed of the Woman,” or Zoroaster, goes back
to the earliest times–viz., her own day (CLERICUS, De Chaldoeis), this implies
that if there was any image-worship in these times, that ”Seed of the Woman”
must have occupied a prominent place in it. As over all the world the Mother
and the child appear in some shape or other, and are found on the early
Egyptian monuments, that shows that this worship must have had its roots in the
primeval ages of the world. If, therefore, the mother was represented in so
fascinating a form when singly represented, we may be sure that the same beauty
for which she was celebrated would be given to her when exhibited with the
child in her arms.
This Babylonian queen was not merely in character coincident with the
Aphrodite of Greece and the Venus of Rome, but was, in point of fact, the
historical original of that goddess that by the ancient world was regarded as
the very embodiment of everything attractive in female form, and the perfection
of female beauty; for Sanchuniathon assures us that Aphrodite or Venus was
identical with Astarte, and Astarte being interpreted, is none other than ”The
woman that made towers or encompassing walls”–i.e., Semiramis. The Roman Venus,
as is well known, was the Cyprian Venus, and the Venus of Cyprus is
historically proved to have been derived from Babylon. Now, what in these
circumstances might have been expected actually took place. If the child was to
be adored, much more the mother. The mother, in point of fact, became the
favourite object of worship. *
* How extraordinary, yea, frantic, was the devotion in the minds of the
Babylonians to this goddess queen, is sufficiently proved by the statement of
Herodotus, as to the way in which she required to be propitiated. That a whole
people should ever have consented to such a custom as is there described, shows
the amazing hold her worship must have gained over them. Nonnus, speaking of
the same goddess, calls her ”The hope of the whole world.” (DIONUSIACA in
BRYANT) It was the same goddess, as we have seen, who was worshipped at
Ephesus, whom Demetrius the silversmith characterised as the goddess ”whom all
Asia and the world worshipped” (Acts 19:27). So great was the devotion to this
goddess queen, not of the Babylonians only, but of the ancient world in
general, that the fame of the exploits of Semiramis has, in history, cast the
exploits of her husband Ninus or Nimrod, entirely into the shade.
In regard to the identification of Rhea or Cybele and Venus, see note below.
To justify this worship, the mother was raised to divinity as well as her
son, and she was looked upon as destined to complete that bruising of the
serpent’s head, which it was easy, if such a thing was needed, to find abundant
and plausible reasons for alleging that Ninus or Nimrod, the great Son, in his
mortal life had only begun.
The Roman Church maintains that it was not so much the seed of the woman,
as the woman herself, that was to bruise the head of the serpent. In defiance
of all grammar, she renders the Divine denunciation against the serpent thus:
”She shall bruise thy head, and thou shalt bruise her heel.” The same was held
by the ancient Babylonians, and symbolically represented in their temples. In
the uppermost story of the tower of Babel, or temple of Belus, Diodorus Siculus
tells us there stood three images of the great divinities of Babylon; and one
of these was of a woman grasping a serpent’s head. Among the Greeks the same
thing was symbolised; for Diana, whose real character was originally the same
as that of the great Babylonian goddess, was represented as bearing in one of
her hands a serpent deprived of its head. As time wore away, and the facts of
Semiramis’ history became obscured, her son’s birth was boldly declared to be
miraculous: and therefore she was called ”Alma Mater,” * ”the Virgin Mother.”
* The term Alma is the precise term used by Isaiah in the Hebrew of the Old
Testament, when announcing, 700 years before the event, that Christ should be
born of a Virgin. If the question should be asked, how this Hebrew term Alma
(not in a Roman, but a Hebrew sense) could find its way to Rome, the answer is,
Through Etruria, which had an intimate connection with Assyria. The word
”mater” itself, from which comes our own ”mother,” is originally Hebrew. It
comes from Heb. Msh, ”to draw forth,” in Egyptian Ms, ”to bring forth”
(BUNSEN), which in the Chaldee form becomes Mt, whence the Egyptian Maut,
”mother.” Erh or Er, as in English (and a similar form is found in Sanscrit),
is, ”The doer.” So that Mater or Mother signifies ”The bringer forth.”
It may be thought an objection to the above account of the epithet Alma,
that this term is often applied to Venus, who certainly was no virgin. But this
objection is more apparent than real. On the testimony of Augustine, himself an
eye-witness, we know that the rites of Vesta, emphatically ”the virgin goddess
of Rome,” under the name of Terra, were exactly the same as those of Venus, the
goddess of impurity and licentiousness (AUGUSTINE, De Civitate Dei). Augustine
elsewhere says that Vesta, the virgin goddess, ”was by some called Venus.”
Even in the mythology of our own Scandinavian ancestors, we have a
remarkable evidence that Alma Mater, or the Virgin Mother, had been originally
known to them. One of their gods called Heimdal, who is described in the most
exalted terms, as having such quick perceptions as that he could hear the grass
growing on the ground, or the wool on the sheep’s back, and whose trumpet, when
it blew, could be heard through all the worlds, is called by the paradoxical
name, ”the son of nine virgins.” (MALLET) Now this obviously contains an
enigma. Let the language in which the religion of Odin was originally
delivered–viz., the Chaldee, be brought to bear upon it, and the enigma is
solved at once. In Chaldee ”the son of nine virgins” is Ben-Almut-Teshaah. But
in pronunciation this is identical with ”Ben-Almet-Ishaa,” ”the son of the
virgin of salvation.” That son was everywhere known as the ”saviour seed.”
”Zera-hosha” and his virgin mother consequently claimed to be ”the virgin of
salvation.” Even in the very heavens the God of Providence has constrained His
enemies to inscribe a testimony to the great Scriptural truth proclaimed by the
Hebrew prophet, that a ”virgin should bring forth a son, whose name should be
called Immanuel.” The constellation Virgo, as admitted by the most learned
astronomers, was dedicated to Ceres (Dr. JOHN HILL, in his Urania, and Mr. A.
JAMIESON, in his Celestial Atlas), who is the same as the great goddess of
Babylon, for Ceres was worshipped with the babe at her breast (SOPHOCLES,
Antigone), even as the Babylonian goddess was. Virgo was originally the
Assyrian Venus, the mother of Bacchus or Tammuz. Virgo then, was the Virgin
Mother. Isaiah’s prophecy was carried by the Jewish captives to Babylon, and
hence the new title bestowed upon the Babylonian goddess.
That the birth of the Great Deliverer was to be miraculous, was widely
known long before the Christian era. For centuries, some say for thousands of
years before that event, the Buddhist priests had a tradition that a Virgin was
to bring forth a child to bless the world. That this tradition came from no
Popish or Christian source, is evident from the surprise felt and expressed by
the Jesuit missionaries, when they first entered Thibet and China, and not only
found a mother and a child worshipped as at home, but that mother worshipped
under a character exactly corresponding with that of their own Madonna, ”Virgo
Deipara,” ”The Virgin mother of God,” * and that, too, in regions where they
could not find the least trace of either the name or history of our Lord Jesus
Christ having ever been known.
* See Sir J. F. DAVIS’S China, and LAFITAN, who says that the accounts sent
home by the Popish missionaries bore that the sacred books of the Chinese spoke
not merely of a Holy Mother, but of a Virgin Mother. For further evidence on
this subject, see note below.
The primeval promise that the ”seed of the woman should bruise the
serpent’s head,” naturally suggested the idea of a miraculous birth.
Priestcraft and human presumption set themselves wickedly to anticipate the
fulfilment of that promise; and the Babylonian queen seems to have been the
first to whom that honour was given. The highest titles were accordingly
bestowed upon her. She was called the ”queen of heaven.” (Jer 44:17,18,19,25) *
* When Ashta, or ”the woman,” came to be called the ”queen of heaven,” the
name ”woman” became the highest title of honour applied to a female. This
accounts for what we find so common among the ancient nations of the East, that
queens and the most exalted personages were addressed by the name of ”woman.”
”Woman” is not a complimentary title in our language; but formerly it had been applied
by our ancestors in the very same way as among the Orientals; for our word
”Queen” is derived from Cwino, which in the ancient Gothic just signified a
woman.
In Egypt she was styled Athor–i.e., ”the Habitation of God,” (BUNSEN) to
signify that in her dwelt all the ”fulness of the Godhead.” To point out the
great goddess-mother, in a Pantheistic sense, as at once the Infinite and
Almighty one, and the Virgin mother, this inscription was engraven upon one of
her temples in Egypt: ”I am all that has been, or that is, or that shall be. No
mortal has removed my veil. The fruit which I have brought forth is the Sun.”
(Ibid.) In Greece she had the name of Hesita, and amongst the Romans, Vesta,
which is just a modification of the same name–a name which, though it has been
commonly understood in a different sense, really meant ”The Dwelling-place.” *
* Hestia, in Greek, signifies ”a house” or ”dwelling.” This is usually
thought to be a secondary meaning of the word, its proper meaning being
believed to be ”fire.” But the statements made in regard to Hestia, show that
the name is derived from Hes or Hese, ”to cover, to shelter,” which is the very
idea of a house, which ”covers” or ”shelters” from the inclemency of the
weather. The verb ”Hes” also signifies ”to protect,” to ”show mercy,” and from
this evidently comes the character of Hestia as ”the protectress of
suppliants.” Taking Hestia as derived from Hes, ”to cover,” or ”shelter,” the
following statement of Smith is easily accounted for: ”Hestia was the goddess
of domestic life, and the giver of all domestic happiness; as such she was
believed to dwell in the inner part of every house, and to have invented the
art of building houses.” If ”fire” be supposed to be the original idea of
Hestia, how could ”fire” ever have been supposed to be ”the builder of houses”!
But taking Hestia in the sense of the Habitation or Dwelling-place, though
derived from Hes, ”to shelter,” or ”cover,” it is easy to see how Hestia would
come to be identified with ”fire.” The goddess who was regarded as the
”Habitation of God” was known by the name of Ashta, ”The Woman”; while ”Ashta”
also signified ”The fire”; and thus Hestia or Vesta, as the Babylonian system
was developed, would easily come to be regarded as ”Fire,” or ”the goddess of
fire.” For the reason that suggested the idea of the Goddess-mother being a
Habitation, see note below.
As the Dwelling-place of Deity, thus is Hestia or Vesta addressed in the Orphic
Hymns:
”Daughter of Saturn, venerable
dame,
Who dwell’st amid great fire’s eternal flame,
In thee the gods have fix’d their DWELLING-PLACE,
Strong stable basis of the mortal race.” *
* TAYLOR’S Orphic Hymns: Hymn to Vesta. Though Vesta is here called the
daughter of Saturn, she is also identified in all the Pantheons with Cybele or
Rhea, the wife of Saturn.
Even when Vesta is identified with fire, this same character of Vesta as
”The Dwelling-place” still distinctly appears. Thus Philolaus, speaking of a
fire in the middle of the centre of the world, calls it ”The Vesta of the
universe, The HOUSE of Jupiter, The mother of the gods.” In Babylon, the title
of the goddess-mother as the Dwelling-place of God was Sacca, or in the
emphatic form, Sacta, that is, ”The Tabernacle.” Hence, at this day, the great
goddesses in India, as wielding all the power of the god whom they represent,
are called ”Sacti,” or the ”Tabernacle.” *
* KENNEDY and MOOR. A synonym for Sacca, ”a tabernacle,” is ”Ahel,” which,
with the points, is pronounced ”Ohel.” From the first form of the word, the
name of the wife of the god Buddha seems to be derived, which, in KENNEDY, is
Ahalya, and in MOOR’S Pantheon, Ahilya. From the second form, in like manner,
seems to be derived the name of the wife of the Patriarch of the Peruvians,
”Mama Oello.” (PRESCOTT’S Peru) Mama was by the Peruvians used in the Oriental
sense: Oello, in all likelihood, was used in the same sense.
Now in her, as the Tabernacle or Temple of God, not only all power, but all
grace and goodness were believed to dwell. Every quality of gentleness and
mercy was regarded as centred in her; and when death had closed her career,
while she was fabled to have been deified and changed into a pigeon, * to
express the celestial benignity of her nature, she was called by the name of
”D’Iune,” ** or ”The Dove,” or without the article, ”Juno”–the name of the
Roman ”queen of heaven,” which has the very same meaning; and under the form of
a dove as well as her own, she was worshipped by the Babylonians.
* DIODORUS SIC. In connection with this the classical reader will remember
the title of one of the fables in OVID’S Metamorphoses. ”Semiramis into a
pigeon.”
** Dione, the name of the mother of Venus, and frequently applied to Venus
herself, is evidently the same name as the above. Dione, as meaning Venus, is
clearly applied by Ovid to the Babylonian goddess. (Fasti)
The dove, the chosen symbol of this deified queen, is commonly represented
with an olive branch in her mouth, as she herself in her human form also is
seen bearing the olive branch in her hand; and from this form of representing
her, it is highly probable that she has derived the name by which she is
commonly known, for ”Z’emir-amit” means ”The branch-bearer.” *
* From Ze, ”the” or ”that,” emir, ”branch,” and amit, ”bearer,” in the
feminine. HESYCHIUS says that Semiramis is a name for a ”wild pigeon.” The
above explanation of the original meaning of the name Semiramis, as referring
to Noah’s wild pigeon (for it was evidently a wild one, as the tame one would
not have suited the experiment), may account for its application by the Greeks
to any wild pigeon.
When the goddess was thus represented as the Dove with the olive branch,
there can be no doubt that the symbol had partly reference to the story of the
flood; but there was much more in the symbol than a mere memorial of that great
event. ”A branch,” as has been already proved, was the symbol of the deified
son, and when the deified mother was represented as a Dove, what could the meaning
of this representation be but just to identify her with the Spirit of all
grace, that brooded, dove-like, over the deep at the creation; for in the
sculptures at Nineveh, as we have seen, the wings and tail of the dove
represented the third member of the idolatrous Assyrian trinity. In
confirmation of this view, it must be stated that the Assyrian ”Juno,” or ”The
Virgin Venus,” as she was called, was identified with the air. Thus Julius
Firmicus says: ”The Assyrians and part of the Africans wish the air to have the
supremacy of the elements, for they have consecrated this same [element] under
the name of Juno, or the Virgin Venus.” Why was air thus identified with Juno,
whose symbol was that of the third person of the Assyrian trinity? Why, but
because in Chaldee the same word which signifies the air signifies also the
”Holy Ghost.” The knowledge of this entirely accounts for the statement of
Proclus, that ”Juno imports the generation of soul.” Whence could the soul–the
spirit of man–be supposed to have its origin, but from the Spirit of God. In
accordance with this character of Juno as the incarnation of the Divine Spirit,
the source of life, and also as the goddess of the air, thus is she invoked in
the ”Orphic Hymns”:
”O royal Juno, of majestic
mien,
Aerial formed, divine, Jove’s blessed queen,
Throned in the bosom of caerulean air,
The race of mortals is thy constant care;
The cooling gales, thy power alone inspires,
Which nourish life, which every life desires;
Mother of showers and winds, from thee alone
Producing all things, mortal life is known;
All natures show thy temperament divine,
And universal sway alone is thine,
With sounding blasts of wind, the swelling sea
And rolling rivers roar when shook by thee.” *
* TAYLOR’S Orphic Hymns. Every classical reader must be aware of the
identification of Juno with the air. The following, however, as still further
illustrative of the subject from Proclus, may not be out of place: ”The series
of our sovereign mistress Juno, beginning from on high, pervades the last of
things, and her allotment in the sublunary region is the air; for air is a
symbol of soul, according to which also soul is called a spirit.”
Thus, then, the deified queen, when in all respects regarded as a veritable
woman, was at the same time adored as the incarnation of the Holy Ghost, the
Spirit of peace and love. In the temple of Hierapolis in Syria, there was a
famous statue of the goddess Juno, to which crowds from all quarters flocked to
worship. The image of the goddess was richly habited, on her head was a golden
dove, and she was called by a name peculiar to the country, ”Semeion.” (BRYANT)
What is the meaning of Semeion? It is evidently ”The Habitation”; * and the
”golden dove” on her head shows plainly who it was that was supposed to dwell
in her–even the Spirit of God.
* From Ze, ”that,” or ”the great,” and ”Maaon,” or Maion, ”a habitation,”
which, in the Ionic dialect, in which Lucian, the describer of the goddess,
wrote, would naturally become Meion.
When such transcendent dignity was bestowed on her, when such winning
characters were attributed to her, and when, over and above all, her images
presented her to the eyes of men as Venus Urania, ”the heavenly Venus,” the
queen of beauty, who assured her worshippers of salvation, while giving loose
reins to every unholy passion, and every depraved and sensual appetite–no
wonder that everywhere she was enthusiastically adored. Under the name of the
”Mother of the gods,” the goddess queen of Babylon became an object of almost
universal worship. ”The Mother of the gods,” says Clericus, ”was worshipped by
the Persians, the Syrians, and all the kings of Europe and Asia, with the most
profound religious veneration.” Tacitus gives evidence that the Babylonian
goddess was worshipped in the heart of Germany, and Caesar, when he invaded
Britain, found that the priests of this same goddess, known by the name of
Druids, had been there before him. *
* CAESAR, De Bello Gallico. The name Druid has been thought to be derived
from the Greek Drus, an oak tree, or the Celtic Deru, which has the same
meaning; but this is obviously a mistake. In Ireland, the name for a Druid is
Droi, and in Wales Dryw; and it will be found that the connection of the Druids
with the oak was more from the mere similarity of their name to that of the
oak, than because they derived their name from it. The Druidic system in all
its parts was evidently the Babylonian system. Dionysius informs us, that the
rites of Bacchus were duly celebrated in the British Islands and Strabo cites Artemidorus
to show that, in an island close to Britain, Ceres and Proserpine were
venerated with rites similar to the orgies of Samothrace. It will be seen from
the account of the Druidic Ceridwen and her child, afterwards to be noticed
(see Chapter IV, Section III), that there was a great analogy between her
character and that of the great goddess-mother of Babylon. Such was the system;
and the name Dryw, or Droi, applied to the priests, is in exact accordance with
that system. The name Zero, given in Hebrew or the early Chaldee, to the son of
the great goddess queen, in later Chaldee became ”Dero.” The priest of Dero,
”the seed,” was called, as is the case in almost all religions, by the name of
his god; and hence the familiar name ”Druid” is thus proved to signify the
priest of ”Dero”–the woman’s promised ”seed.” The classical Hamadryads were
evidently in like manner priestesses of ”Hamed-dero,”–”the desired seed”–i.e.,
”the desire of all nations.”
Herodotus, from personal knowledge, testifies, that in Egypt this ”queen of
heaven” was ”the greatest and most worshipped of all the divinities.” Wherever
her worship was introduced, it is amazing what fascinating power it exerted.
Truly, the nations might be said to be ”made drunk” with the wine of her
fornications. So deeply, in particular, did the Jews in the days of Jeremiah
drink of her wine cup, so bewitched were they with her idolatrous worship, that
even after Jerusalem had been burnt, and the land desolated for this very
thing, they could not be prevailed on to give it up. While dwelling in Egypt as
forlorn exiles, instead of being witnesses for God against the heathenism
around them, they were as much devoted to this form of idolatry as the
Egyptians themselves. Jeremiah was sent of God to denounce wrath against them,
if they continued to worship the queen of heaven; but his warnings were in
vain. ”Then,” saith the prophet, ”all the men which knew that their wives had
burnt incense unto other gods, and all the women that stood by, a great
multitude, even all the people that dwelt in the land of Egypt, in Pathros,
answered Jeremiah, saying, As for the word that thou hast spoken unto us in the
name of the Lord, we will not hearken unto thee; but we will certainly do
whatsoever thing goeth forth out of our own mouth, to burn incense unto the
queen of heaven, and to pour out drink-offerings unto her, as we have done, we,
and our fathers, our kings, and our princes, in the cities of Judah, and in the
streets of Jerusalem; for then had we plenty of victuals, and were well, and
saw no evil” (Jer 44:15-17). Thus did the Jews, God’s own peculiar people,
emulate the Egyptians in their devotion to the queen of heaven.
The worship of the goddess-mother with the child in her arms continued to
be observed in Egypt till Christianity entered. If the Gospel had come in power
among the mass of the people, the worship of this goddess-queen would have been
overthrown. With the generality it came only in name. Instead, therefore, of
the Babylonian goddess being cast out, in too many cases her name only was
changed. She was called the Virgin Mary, and, with her child, was worshipped
with the same idolatrous feeling by professing Christians, as formerly by open
and avowed Pagans. The consequence was, that when, in AD 325, the Nicene Council
was summoned to condemn the heresy of Arius, who denied the true divinity of
Christ, that heresy indeed was condemned, but not without the help of men who
gave distinct indications of a desire to put the creature on a level with the
Creator, to set the Virgin-mother side by side with her Son. At the Council of
Nice, says the author of ”Nimrod,” ”The Melchite section”–that is, the
representatives of the so-called Christianity of Egypt–”held that there were
three persons in the Trinity–the Father, the Virgin Mary, and Messiah their
Son.” In reference to this astounding fact, elicited by the Nicene Council,
Father Newman speaks exultingly of these discussions as tending to the
glorification of Mary. ”Thus,” says he, ”the controversy opened a question which
it did not settle. It discovered a new sphere, if we may so speak, in the
realms of light, to which the Church had not yet assigned its inhabitant. Thus,
there was a wonder in Heaven; a throne was seen far above all created powers,
mediatorial, intercessory, a title archetypal, a crown bright as the morning
star, a glory issuing from the eternal throne, robes pure as the heavens, and a
sceptre over all. And who was the predestined heir of that majesty? Who was
that wisdom, and what was her name, the mother of fair love, and far, and holy
hope, exalted like a palm-tree in Engaddi, and a rose-plant in Jericho, created
from the beginning before the world, in God’s counsels, and in Jerusalem was
her power? The vision is found in the Apocalypse ‘a Woman clothed with the sun,
and the moon under her feet, and upon her head a crown of twelve stars.’” *
* NEWMAN’S Development. The intelligent reader will see at a glance the
absurdity of applying this vision of the ”woman” of the Apocalypse to the
Virgin Mary. John expressly declares that what he saw was a ”sign” or ”symbol”
(semeion). If the woman here is a literal woman, the woman that sits on the
seven hills must be the same. ”The woman” in both cases is a ”symbol.” ”The
woman” on the seven hills is the symbol of the false church; the woman clothed
with the sun, of the true church–the Bride, the Lamb’s wife.
”The votaries of Mary,” adds he, ”do not exceed the true faith, unless the
blasphemers of her Son came up to it. The Church of Rome is not idolatrous,
unless Arianism is orthodoxy.” This is the very poetry of blasphemy. It
contains an argument too; but what does that argument amount to? It just
amounts to this, that if Christ be admitted to be truly and properly God, and
worthy of Divine honours, His mother, from whom He derived merely His humanity,
must be admitted to be the same, must be raised far above the level of all
creatures, and be worshipped as a partaker of the Godhead. The divinity of
Christ is made to stand or fall with the divinity of His mother. Such is Popery
in the nineteenth century; yea, such is Popery in England. It was known already
that Popery abroad was bold and unblushing in its blasphemies; that in Lisbon a
church was to be seen with these words engraven on its front, ”To the virgin
goddess of Loretto, the Italian race, devoted to her DIVINITY, have dedicated
this temple.” (Journal of Professor GIBSON, in Scottish Protestant) But when
till now was such language ever heard in Britain before? This, however, is just
the exact reproduction of the doctrine of ancient Babylon in regard to the
great goddess-mother. The Madonna of Rome, then, is just the Madonna of
Babylon. The ”Queen of Heaven” in the one system is the same as the ”Queen of
Heaven” in the other. The goddess worshipped in Babylon and Egypt as the
Tabernacle or Habitation of God, is identical with her who, under the name of
Mary, is called by Rome ”The HOUSE consecrated to God,” ”the awful
Dwelling-place,” * ”the Mansion of God” (Pancarpium Marioe), the ”Tabernacle of
the Holy Ghost” (Garden of the Soul), the ”Temple of the Trinity” (Golden
Manual in Scottish Protestant).
* The Golden Manual in Scottish Protestant. The word here used for
”Dwelling-place” in the Latin of this work is a pure Chaldee word–”Zabulo,” and
is from the same verb as Zebulun (Gen 30:20), the name which was given by Leah
to her son, when she said ”Now will my husband dwell with me.”
Some may possibly be inclined to defend such language, by saying that the
Scripture makes every believer to be a temple of the Holy Ghost, and,
therefore, what harm can there be in speaking of the Virgin Mary, who was
unquestionably a saint of God, under that name, or names of a similar import?
Now, no doubt it is true that Paul says (1 Cor 3:16), ”Know ye not that ye are
the temple of God, and that the Spirit of God dwelleth in you?” It is not only
true, but it is a great truth, and a blessed one–a truth that enhances every
comfort when enjoyed, and takes the sting out of every trouble when it comes,
that every genuine Christian has less or more experience of what is contained
in these words of the same apostle (2 Cor 6:16), ”Ye are the temple of the
living God; as God hath said, I will dwell in them and walk in them, and I will
be their God, and they shall be my people.” It must also be admitted, and
gladly admitted, that this implies the indwelling of all the Persons of the
glorious Godhead; for the Lord Jesus hath said (John 14:23), ”If a man love me,
he will keep my words; and my Father will love him, and WE will come unto him,
and make our abode with him.” But while admitting all this, on examination it
will be found that the Popish and the Scriptural ideas conveyed by these
expressions, however apparently similar, are essentially different. When it is
said that a believer is ”a temple of God,” or a temple of the Holy Ghost, the
meaning is (Eph 3:17) that ”Christ dwells in the heart by faith.” But when Rome
says that Mary is ”The Temple” or ”Tabernacle of God,” the meaning is the exact
Pagan meaning of the term–viz., that the union between her and the Godhead is a
union akin to the hypostatical union between the divine and human nature of
Christ. The human nature of Christ is the ”Tabernacle of God,” inasmuch as the
Divine nature has veiled its glory in such a way, by assuming our nature, that
we can come near without overwhelming dread to the Holy God. To this glorious
truth John refers when he says (John 1:14), ”The Word was made flesh, and dwelt
(literally tabernacled) among us, and we beheld His glory, the glory as of the
only begotten of the Father, full of grace and truth.” In this sense, Christ,
the God-man, is the only ”Tabernacle of God.” Now, it is precisely in this
sense that Rome calls Mary the ”Tabernacle of God,” or of the ”Holy Ghost.”
Thus speaks the author of a Popish work devoted to the exaltation of the
Virgin, in which all the peculiar titles and prerogatives of Christ are given
to Mary: ”Behold the tabernacle of God, the mansion of God, the habitation, the
city of God is with men, and in men and for men, for their salvation, and
exaltation, and eternal glorification…Is it most clear that this is true of the
holy church? and in like manner also equally true of the most holy sacrament of
the Lord’s body? Is it (true) of every one of us in as far as we are truly
Christians? Undoubtedly; but we have to contemplate this mystery (as existing)
in a peculiar manner in the most holy Mother of our Lord.” (Pancarpium Marioe)
Then the author, after endeavouring to show that ”Mary is rightly considered as
the Tabernacle of God with men,” and that in a peculiar sense, a sense
different from that in which all Christians are the ”temple of God,” thus
proceeds with express reference to her in this character of the Tabernacle:
”Great truly is the benefit, singular is the privilege, that the Tabernacle of
God should be with men, IN WHICH men may safely come near to God become man.”
(Ibid.) Here the whole mediatorial glory of Christ, as the God-man in whom
dwelleth all the fullness of the Godhead bodily, is given to Mary, or at least
is shared with her. The above extracts are taken from a work published upwards
of two hundred years ago. Has the Papacy improved since then? Has it repented
of its blasphemies? No, the very reverse. The quotation already given from
Father Newman proves this; but there is still stronger proof. In a recently
published work, the same blasphemous idea is even more clearly unfolded. While
Mary is called ”The HOUSE consecrated to God,” and the ”TEMPLE of the Trinity,”
the following versicle and response will show in what sense she is regarded as
the temple of the Holy Ghost: ”V. The Lord himself created HER in the Holy
Ghost, and POURED HER out among all his works. V. O Lady, hear,” &c. This
astounding language manifestly implies that Mary is identified with the Holy
Ghost, when it speaks of her ”being poured out” on ”all the works of God”; and
that, as we have seen, was just the very way in which the Woman, regarded as
the ”Tabernacle” or House of God by the Pagans, was looked upon. Where is such
language used in regard to the Virgin? Not in Spain; not in Austria; not in the
dark places of Continental Europe; but in London, the seat and centre of the
world’s enlightenment.
The names of blasphemy bestowed by the Papacy on Mary have not one shadow
of foundation in the Bible, but are all to be found in the Babylonian idolatry.
Yea, the very features and complexions of the Roman and Babylonian Madonnas are
the same. Till recent times, when Raphael somewhat departed from the beaten
track, there was nothing either Jewish or even Italian in the Romish Madonnas.
Had these pictures or images of the Virgin Mother been intended to represent
the mother of our Lord, naturally they would have been cast either in the one
mould or the other. But it was not so. In a land of dark-eyed beauties, with
raven locks, the Madonna was always represented with blue eyes and golden hair,
a complexion entirely different form the Jewish complexion, which naturally
would have been supposed to belong to the mother of our Lord, but which
precisely agrees with that which all antiquity attributes to the goddess queen
of Babylon. In almost all lands the great goddess has been described with
golden or yellow hair, showing that there must have been one grand prototype,
to which they were all made to correspond. The ”yellow-haired Ceres,” might not
have been accounted of any weight in this argument if she had stood alone, for
it might have been supposed in that case that the epithet ”yellow-haired” was
borrowed from the corn that was supposed to be under her guardian care. But
many other goddesses have the very same epithet applied to them. Europa, whom
Jupiter carried away in the form of a bull, is called ”The yellow-haired
Europa.” (OVID, Fasti) Minerva is called by Homer ”the blue-eyed Minerva,” and
by Ovid ”the yellow-haired”; the huntress Diana, who is commonly identified
with the moon, is addressed by Anacreon as ”the yellow-haired daughter of
Jupiter,” a title which the pale face of the silver moon could surely never
have suggested. Dione, the mother of Venus, is described by Theocritus as
”yellow-haired.” Venus herself is frequently called ”Aurea Venus,” the ”golden
Venus.” (HOMER’S Iliad) The Indian goddess Lakshmi, the ”Mother of the
Universe,” is described as of ”a golden complexion.” (Asiatic Researches) Ariadne,
the wife of Bacchus, was called ”the yellow-haired Ariadne.” (HESIOD,
Theogonia) Thus does Dryden refer to her golden or yellow hair:
”Where the rude waves in
Dian’s harbour play,
The fair forsaken Ariadne lay;
There, sick with grief and frantic with despair,
Her dress she rent, and tore her golden hair.”
The Gorgon Medusa before her transformation, while celebrated for her
beauty, was equally celebrated for her golden hair:
”Medusa once had charms: to
gain her love
A rival crowd of anxious lovers strove.
They who have seen her, own they ne’er did trace
More moving features in a sweeter face;
But above all, her length of hair they own
In golden ringlets waves, and graceful shone.”
The mermaid that figured so much in the romantic tales of the north, which
was evidently borrowed from the story of Atergatis, the fish goddess of Syria,
who was called the mother of Semiramis, and was sometimes identified with
Semiramis herself, was described with hair of the same kind. ”The Ellewoman,”
such is the Scandinavian name for the mermaid, ”is fair,” says the introduction
to the ”Danish Tales” of Hans Andersen, ”and gold-haired, and plays most
sweetly on a stringed instrument.” ”She is frequently seen sitting on the
surface of the waters, and combing her long golden hair with a golden comb.”
Even when Athor, the Venus of Egypt, was represented as a cow, doubtless to
indicate the complexion of the goddess that cow represented, the cow’s head and
neck were gilded. (HERODOTUS and WILKINSON) When, therefore, it is known that
the most famed pictures of the Virgin Mother in Italy represented her as of a
fair complexion and with golden hair, and when over all Ireland the Virgin is
almost invariably represented at this day in the very same manner, who can
resist the conclusion that she must have been thus represented, only because
she had been copied form the same prototype as the Pagan divinities?
Nor is this agreement in complexion only, but also in features. Jewish
features are everywhere marked, and have a character peculiarly their own. But
the original Madonnas have nothing at all of Jewish form or feature; but are
declared by those who have personally compared both, entirely to agree in this
respect, as well as in complexion, with the Babylonian Madonnas found by Sir Robert
Ker Porter among the ruins of Babylon.
There is yet another remarkable characteristic of these pictures worthy of
notice, and that is the nimbus or peculiar circle of light that frequently
encompasses the head of the Roman Madonna. With this circle the heads of the
so-called figures of Christ are also frequently surrounded. Whence could such a
device have originated? In the case of our Lord, if His head had been merely
surrounded with rays, there might have been some pretence for saying that that
was borrowed from the Evangelic narrative, where it is stated, that on the holy
mount His face became resplendent with light. But where, in the whole compass
of Scripture, do we ever read that His head was surrounded with a disk, or a
circle of light? But what will be searched for in vain in the Word of God, is
found in he artistic representations of the great gods and goddesses of
Babylon. The disk, and particularly the circle, were the well known symbols of
the Sun-divinity, and figured largely in the symbolism of the East. With the
circle or the disk the head of the Sun-divinity was encompassed. The same was
the case in Pagan Rome. Apollo, as the child of the Sun, was often thus
represented. The goddesses that claimed kindred with the Sun were equally
entitled to be adorned with the nimbus or luminous circle. From Pompeii there
is a representation of Circe, ”the daughter of the Sun” with her head
surrounded with a circle, in the very same way as the head of the Roman Madonna
is at this day surrounded. Let any one compare the nimbus around the head of
Circe, with that around the head of the Popish Virgin, and he will see how
exactly they correspond. *
* The explanation of the figure is thus given in Pompeii: ”One of them [the
paintings] is taken from the Odyssey, and represents Ulysses and Circe, at the
moment when the hero, having drunk the charmed cup with impunity, by virtue of
the antidote given him by Mercury [it is well known that Circe had a 'golden
cup,' even as the Venus of Babylon had], draws his sword, and advances to
avenge his companions,” who, having drunk of her cup, had been changed into
swine. The goddess, terrified, makes her submission at once, as described by
Homer; Ulysses himself being the narrator:
”Hence, seek the sty, there
wallow with thy friends,
She spake, I drawing from beside my thigh
My Falchion keen, with death-denouncing looks,
Rushed on her; she, with a shrill scream of fear,
Ran under my raised arm, seized fast my knees,
And in winged accents plaintive, thus began:
‘Say, who art thou,’” &c.–COWPER’S Odyssey
”This picture,” adds the author of Pompeii, ”is remarkable, as teaching us
the origin of that ugly and unmeaning glory by which the heads of saints are
often surrounded…This glory was called nimbus, or aureola, and is defined by Servius
to be ‘the luminous fluid which encircles the heads of the gods.’ It belongs
with peculiar propriety to Circe, as the daughter of the Sun. The emperors,
with their usual modesty, assumed it as the mark of their divinity; and under
this respectable patronage it passed, like many other Pagan superstitions and
customs, into the use of the Church.” The emperors here get rather more than a
fair share of the blame due to them. It was not the emperors that brought
”Pagan superstition” into the Church, so much as the Bishop of Rome. See
Chapter VII, Section II.
Now, could any one possibly believe that all this coincidence could be
accidental. Of course, if the Madonna had ever so exactly resembled the Virgin
Mary, that would never have excused idolatry. But when it is evident that the
goddess enshrined in the Papal Church for the supreme worship of its votaries,
is that very Babylonian queen who set up Nimrod, or Ninus ”the Son,” as the
rival of Christ, and who in her own person was the incarnation of every kind of
licentiousness, how dark a character does that stamp on the Roman idolatry.
What will it avail to mitigate the heinous character of that idolatry, to say
that the child she holds forth to adoration is called by the name of Jesus?
When she was worshipped with her child in Babylon of old, that child was called
by a name as peculiar to Christ, as distinctive of His glorious character, as
the name of Jesus. He was called ”Zoro-ashta,” ”the seed of the woman.” But
that did not hinder the hot anger of God from being directed against those in
the days of old who worshipped that ”image of jealousy, provoking to jealousy.”
*
* Ezekiel 8:3. There have been many speculations about what this ”image of
jealousy” could be. But when it is known that the grand feature of ancient
idolatry was just the worship of the Mother and the child, and that child as
the Son of God incarnate, all is plain. Compare verses 3 and 5 with verse 14,
and it will be seen that the ”women weeping for Tammuz” were weeping close
beside the image of jealousy.
Neither can the giving of the name of Christ to the infant in the arms of
the Romish Madonna, make it less the ”image of jealousy,” less offensive to the
Most High, less fitted to provoke His high displeasure, when it is evident that
that infant is worshipped as the child of her who was adored as Queen of
Heaven, with all the attributes of divinity, and was at the same time the
”Mother of harlots and abominations of the earth.” Image-worship in every case
the Lord abhors; but image-worship of such a kind as this must be peculiarly
abhorrent to His holy soul. Now, if the facts I have adduced be true, is it
wonderful that such dreadful threatenings should be directed in the Word of God
against the Romish apostacy, and that the vials of this tremendous wrath are
destined to be outpoured upon its guilty head? If these things be true (and
gainsay them who can), who will venture now to plead for Papal Rome, or to call
her a Christian Church? Is there one, who fears God, and who reads these lines,
who would not admit that Paganism alone could ever have inspired such a
doctrine as that avowed by the Melchites at the Nicene Council, that the Holy
Trinity consisted of ”the Father, the Virgin Mary, and the Messiah their Son”?
(Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, July, 1852) Is there one who would not shrink
with horror from such a thought? What, then, would the reader say of a Church
that teaches its children to adore such a Trinity as that contained in the
following lines?
”Heart of Jesus, I adore thee;
Heart of Mary, I implore thee;
Heart of Joseph, pure and just;
IN THESE THREE HEARTS I PUT MY TRUST.” *
* What every Christian must Know and Do. By the Rev. J. FURNISS. Published
by James Duffy, Dublin. The edition of this Manual of Popery quoted above,
besides the blasphemy it contains, contains most immoral principles, teaching
distinctly the harmlessness of fraud, if only kept within due bounds. On this
account, a great outcry having been raised against it, I believe this edition
has been withdrawn from general circulation. The genuineness of the passage
above given is, however, beyond all dispute. I received myself from a fried in
Liverpool a copy of the edition containing these words, which is now in my
possession, having previously seen them in a copy in the possession of the Rev.
Richard Smyth of Armagh. It is not in Ireland, however, only, that such a
trinity is exhibited for the worship of Romanists. In a Card, or Fly-leaf,
issued by the Popish priests of Sunderland, now lying before me, with the
heading ”Paschal Duty, St. Mary’s Church, Bishopwearmouth, 1859,” the following
is the 4th admonition given to the ”Dear Christians” to whom it is addressed:
”4. And never forget the acts of a good Christian, recommended to you so
often during the renewal of the Mission.
Blessed be Jesus, Mary, and
Joseph.
Jesus, Mary, and Joseph, I give you my heart, my life, and my soul.
Jesus, Mary, and Joseph, assist me always; and in my last agony,
Jesus, Mary, and Joseph, receive my last breath. Amen.”
To induce the adherents of Rome to perform this ”act of a good Christian,”
a considerable bribe is held out. In p. 30 of Furniss’ Manual above referred
to, under the head ”Rule of Life,” the following passage occurs: ”In the
morning, before you get up, make the sign of the cross, and say, Jesus, Mary,
and Joseph, I give you my heart and my soul. (Each time you say this prayer,
you get an indulgence of 100 days, which you can give to the souls in
Purgatory)!” I must add that the title of Furniss’ book, as given above, is the
title of Mr. Smyth’s copy. The title of the copy in my possession is ”What
every Christian must Know.” London: Richardson & Son, 147 Strand. Both
copies alike have the blasphemous words given in the text, and both have the
”Imprimatur” of ”Paulus Cullen.”
If this is not Paganism, what is there that can be called by such a name?
Yet this is the Trinity which now the Roman Catholics of Ireland from tender
infancy are taught to adore. This is the Trinity which, in the latest books of
catechetical instruction is presented as the grand object of devotion to the
adherents of the Papacy. The manual that contains this blasphemy comes forth
with the express ”Imprimatur” of ”Paulus Cullen,” Popish Archbishop of Dublin.
Will any one after this say that the Roman Catholic Church must still be called
Christian, because it holds the doctrine of the Trinity? So did the Pagan
Babylonians, so did the Egyptians, so do the Hindoos at this hour, in the very
same sense in which Rome does. They all admitted A trinity, but did they worship
THE Triune Jehovah, the King Eternal, Immortal, and Invisible? And will any one
say with such evidence before him, that Rome does so? Away then, with
the deadly delusion that Rome is Christian! There might once have been
some palliation for entertaining such a supposition; but every day the ”Grand
Mystery” is revealing itself more and more in its true character. There is not,
and there cannot be, any safety for the souls of men in ”Babylon.” ”Come out of
her, my people,” is the loud and express command of God. Those who disobey that
command, do it at their peril.
Notes
The Identification of Rhea or
Cybele and Venus
In the exoteric doctrine of Greece and Rome, the characters of Cybele, the
mother of the gods, and of Venus, the goddess of love, are generally very
distinct, insomuch that some minds may perhaps find no slight difficulty in
regard to the identification of these two divinities. But that difficulty will
disappear, if the fundamental principle of the Mysteries be borne in mind–viz.,
that at bottom they recognised only Adad, ”The One God.” Adad being Triune,
this left room, when the Babylonian Mystery of Iniquity took shape, for three
different FORMS of divinity–the father, the mother, and the son; but all the
multiform divinities with which the Pagan world abounded, whatever diversities
there were among them, were resolved substantially into so many manifestations
of one or other of these divine persons, or rather of two, for the first person
was generally in the background. We have distinct evidence that this was the
case. Apuleius tells us, that when he was initiated, the goddess Isis revealed
herself to him as ”The first of the celestials, and the uniform manifestation
of the gods and goddesses…WHOSE ONE SOLE DIVINITY the whole orb of the earth
venerated, and under a manifold form, with different rites, and under a variety
of appellations”; and going over many of these appellations, she declares
herself to be at once ”Pessinuntica, the mother of the gods [i.e. Cybele], and
Paphian Venus.” Now, as this was the case in the later ages of the Mysteries,
so it must have been the case from the very beginning; because they SET OUT,
and necessarily set out, with the doctrine of the UNITY of the Godhead. This,
of course, would give rise to no little absurdity and inconsistency in the very
nature of the case. Both Wilkinson and Bunsen, to get rid of the
inconsistencies they have met with in the Egyptian system, have found it necessary
to have recourse to substantially the same explanation as I have done. Thus we
find Wilkinson saying: ”I have stated that Amun-re and other gods took the form
of different deities, which, though it appears at first sight to present some
difficulty, may readily be accounted for when we consider that each of those
whose figures or emblem were adopted, was only an EMANATION, or deified
attribute of the SAME GREAT BEING to whom they ascribed various characters,
according to the several offices he was supposed to perform.” The statement of
Bunsen is to the same effect, and it is this: ”Upon these premises, we think
ourselves justified in concluding that the two series of gods were originally
identical, and that, in the GREAT PAIR of gods, all those attributes were
concentrated, from the development of which, in various personifications, that
mythological system sprang up which we have been already considering.”
The bearing of all this upon the question of the identification of Cybele
and Astarte, or Venus, is important. Fundamentally, there was but one
goddess–the Holy Spirit, represented as female, when the distinction of sex was
wickedly ascribed to the Godhead, through a perversion of the great Scripture
idea, that all the children of God are at once begotten of the Father, and born
of the Spirit; and under this idea, the Spirit of God, as Mother, was
represented under the form of a dove, in memory of the fact that that Spirit,
at the creation, ”fluttered”–for so, as I have observed, is the exact meaning of
the term in Genesis 1:2–”on the face of the waters.” This goddess, then, was
called Ops, ”the flutterer,” or Juno, ”The Dove,” or Khubele, ”The binder with
cords,” which last title had reference to ”the bands of love, the cords of a
man” (called in Hosea 11:4, ”Khubeli Adam”), with which not only does God @mL3
continually, by His providential goodness, draw men unto Himself, but with
which our first parent Adam, through the Spirit’s indwelling, while the
covenant of Eden was unbroken, was sweetly bound to God. This theme is minutely
dwelt on in Pagan story, and the evidence is very abundant; but I cannot enter
upon it here. Let this only be noticed, however, that the Romans joined the two
terms Juno and Khubele–or, as it is commonly pronounced, Cybele–together; and
on certain occasions invoked their supreme goddess, under the name of Juno
Covella–that is, ”The dove that binds with cords.”
If the reader looks, in Layard, at the triune emblem of the supreme
Assyrian divinity, he will see this very idea visibly embodied. There the wings
and tail of the dove have two bands associated with them instead of feet
(LAYARD’S Nineveh and its Remains).
In reference to events after the Fall, Cybele got a new idea attached to
her name. Khubel signifies not only to ”bind with cords,” but also ”to travail
in birth”; and therefore Cybele appeared as the ”Mother of the gods,” by whom
all God’s children must be born anew or regenerated. But, for this purpose, it
was held indispensable that there should be a union in the first instance with
Rhea, ”The gazer,” the human ”mother of gods and men,” that the ruin she had
introduced might be remedied. Hence the identification of Cybele and Rhea,
which in all the Pantheons are declared to be only two different names of the
same goddess, though, as we have seen, these goddesses were in reality entirely
distinct. This same principle was applied to all the other deified mothers.
They were deified only through the supposed miraculous identification with them
of Juno or Cybele–in other words, of the Holy Spirit of God. Each of these
mothers had her own legend, and had special worship suited thereto; but, as in
all cases, she was held to be an incarnation of the one spirit of God, as the
great Mother of all, the attributes of that one Spirit were always pre-supposed
as belonging to her. This, then, was the case with the goddess recognised as
Astarte or Venus, as well as with Rhea. Though there were points of difference
between Cybele, or Rhea, and Astarte or Mylitta, the Assyrian Venus, Layard shows
that there were also distinct points of contact between them. Cybele or Rhea
was remarkable for her turreted crown. Mylitta, or Astarte, was represented
with a similar crown. Cybele, or Rhea, was drawn by lions; Mylitta, or Astarte,
was represented as standing on a lion. The worship of Mylitta, or Astarte, was
a mass of moral pollution (HERODOTUS). The worship of Cybele, under the name of
Terra, was the same (AUGUSTINE, De Civitate).
The first deified woman was no doubt Semiramis, as the first deified man
was her husband. But it is evident that it was some time after the Mysteries
began that this deification took place; for it was not till after Semiramis was
dead that she was exalted to divinity, and worshipped under the form of a dove.
When, however, the Mysteries were originally concocted, the deeds of Eve, who,
through her connection with the serpent, brought forth death, must necessarily
have occupied a place; for the Mystery of sin and death lies at the very
foundation of all religion, and in the age of Semiramis and Nimrod, and Shem
and Ham, all men must have been well acquainted with the facts of the Fall. At
first the sin of Eve may have been admitted in all its sinfulness (otherwise
men generally would have been shocked, especially when the general conscience
had been quickened through the zeal of Shem); but when a woman was to be
deified, the shape that the mystic story came to assume shows that that sin was
softened, yea, that it changed its very character, and that by a perversion of
the name given to Eve, as ”the mother of all living ones,” that is, all the
regenerate, she was glorified as the authoress of spiritual life, and, under
the very name Rhea, was recognised as the mother of the gods. Now, those who
had the working of the Mystery of Iniquity did not find it very difficult to
show that this name Rhea, originally appropriate to the mother of mankind, was
hardly less appropriate for her who was the actual mother of the gods, that is,
of all the deified mortals. Rhea, in the active sense, signifies ”the Gazing
woman,” but in the passive it signifies ”The woman gazed at,” that is, ”The
beauty,” and thus, under one and the same term, the mother of mankind and the
mother of the Pagan gods, that is, Semiramis, were amalgamated; insomcuh, that now,
as is well known, Rhea is currently recognised as the ”Mother of gods and men”
(HESIOD, Theogon). It is not wonderful, therefore that the name Rhea is found
applied to her, who, by the Assyrians, was worshipped in the very character of
Astarte or Venus.
____________________
The Virgin Mother of Paganism
”Almost all the Tartar princes,” says SALVERTE (Des Sciences Occultes),
”trace their genealogy to a celestial virgin, impregnated by a sun-beam, or
some equally miraculous means.” In India, the mother of Surya, the sun-god, who
was born to destroy the enemies of the gods, is said to have become pregnant in
this way, a beam of the sun having entered her womb, in consequence of which
she brought forth the sun-god. Now the knowledge of this widely diffused myth
casts light on the secret meaning of the name Aurora, given to the wife of
Orion, to whose marriage with that ”mighty hunter” Homer refers (Odyssey).
While the name Aur-ora, in the physical sense, signifies also ”pregnant with
light”; and from ”ohra,” ”to conceive” or be ”pregnant,” we have in Greek, the
word for a wife. As Orion, according to Persian accounts, was Nimrod; and
Nimrod, under the name of Ninus, was worshipped as the son of his wife, when he
came to be deified as the sun-god, that name Aurora, as applied to his wife, is
evidently intended to convey the very same idea as prevails in Tartary and
India. These myths of the Tartars and Hindoos clearly prove that the Pagan idea
of the miraculous conception had not come from any intermixture of Christianity
with that superstition, but directly from the promise of ”the seed of the
woman.” But how, it may be asked, could the idea of being pregnant with a
sunbeam arise? There is reason to believe that it came from one of the natural
names of the sun. From the Chaldean zhr, ”to shine,” comes, in the participle
active, zuhro or zuhre, ”the Shiner”; and hence, no doubt, from zuhro, ”the
Shiner,” under the prompting of a designing priesthood, men would slide into
the idea of zuro, ”the seed,”–”the Shiner” and ”the seed,” according to the
genius of Paganism, being thus identified. This was manifestly the case in
Persia, where the sun as the great divinity; for the ”Persians,” says Maurice,
”called God Sure” (Antiquities).
____________________
The Goddess Mother as a
Habitation
What could ever have induced mankind to think of calling the great Goddess-mother,
or mother of gods and men, a House or Habitation? The answer is evidently to be
found in a statement made in Genesis 2:21, in regard to the formation of the
mother of mankind: ”And the Lord caused a deep sleep to fall upon Adam, and he
slept, and he took one of his ribs, and closed up the flesh instead thereof.
And the rib which the Lord God had taken from man, made (margin, literally
BUILDED) he into a woman.” That this history of the rib was well known to the
Babylonians, is manifest from one of the names given to their primeval goddess,
as found in Berosus. That name is Thalatth. But Thalatth is just the Chaldean
form of the Hebrew Tzalaa, in the feminine,–the very word used in Genesis for
the rib, of which Eve was formed; and the other name which Berosus couples with
Thalatth, does much to confirm this; for that name, which is Omorka, * just
signifies ”The Mother of the world.”
* From ”Am,” ”mother,” and ”arka,” ”earth.” The first letter aleph in both
of these words is often pronounced as o. Thus the pronunciation of a in Am,
”mother,” is seen in the Greek a ”shoulder.” Am, ”mother,” comes from am, ”to
support,” and from am, pronounced om, comes the shoulder that bears burdens.
Hence also the name Oma, as one of the names of Bona Des. Oma is evidently the
”Mother.”
When we have thus deciphered the meaning of the name Thalatth, as applied
to the ”mother of the world,” that leads us at once to the understanding, of
the name Thalasius, applied by the Romans to the god of marriage, the origin of
which name has hitherto been sought in vain. Thalatthi signifies ”belonging to
the rib,” and, with the Roman termination, becomes Thalatthius or ”Thalasius,
the man of the rib.” And what name more appropriate than this for Adam, as the
god of marriage, who, when the rib was brought to him, said, ”This is now bone
of my bones, and flesh of my flesh: she shall be called Woman, because she was
taken out of man.” At first, when Thalatth, the rib, was builded into a woman,
that ”woman” was, in a very important sense, the ”Habitation” or ”Temple of
God”; and had not the Fall intervened, all her children would, in consequence
of mere natural generation, have been the children of God. The entrance of sin
into the world subverted the original constitution of things. Still, when the
promise of a Saviour was given and embraced, the renewed indwelling of the Holy
Spirit was given too, not that she might thereby have any power in herself to
bring forth children unto God, but only that she might duly act the part of a
mother to a spiritually living offspring–to those whom God of his free grace
should quicken, and bring from death unto life. Now, Paganism willingly
overlooked all this; and taught, as soon as its votaries were prepared for
receiving it, that this renewed indwelling of the spirit of God in the woman,
was identification, and so it deified her. Then Rhea, ”the gazer,” the mother
of mankind, was identified with Cybele ”the binder with cords,” or Juno, ”the
Dove,” that is, the Holy Spirit. Then, in the blasphemous Pagan sense, she
became Athor, ”the Habitation of God,” or Sacca, or Sacta, ”the tabernacle” or
”temple,” in whom dwelt ”all the fulness of the Godhead bodily.” Thus she
became Heva, ”The Living One”; not in the sense in which Adam gave that name to
his wife after the Fall, when the hope of life out of the midst of death was so
unexpectedly presented to her as well as to himself; but in the sense of the
communicator of spiritual and eternal life to men; for Rhea was called the
”fountain of the blessed ones.” The agency, then, of this deified woman was
held to be indispensable for the begetting of spiritual children to God, in
this, as it was admitted, fallen world. Looked at from this point of view, the
meaning of the name given to the Babylonian goddess in 2 Kings 17:30, will be
at once apparent. The name Succoth-benoth has very frequently been supposed to
be a plural word, and to refer to booths or tabernacles used in Babylon for
infamous purposes. But, as observed by Clericus (De Chaldoeis), who refers to the
Rabbins as being of the same opinion, the context clearly shows that the name
must be the name of an idol: (vv 29,30), ”Howbeit every nation made gods of
their own, and put them in the houses of the high places which the Samaritans
had made, every nation in their cities wherein they dwelt. And the men of
Babylon made Succoth-benoth.” It is here evidently an idol that is spoken of;
and as the name is feminine, that idol must have been the image of a goddess.
Taken in this sense, then, and in the light of the Chaldean system as now
unfolded, the meaning of ”Succoth-benoth,” as applied to the Babylonian
goddess, is just ”The tabernacle of child-bearing.” *
* That is, the Habitation in which the Spirit of God dwelt, for the purpose
of begetting spiritual children.
When the Babylonian system was developed, Eve was represented as the first
that occupied this place, and the very name Benoth, that signifies
”child-bearing,” explains also how it came about that the Woman, who, as Hestia
or Vesta, was herself called the ”Habitation,” got the credit of ”having
invented the art of building houses” (SMITH, ”Hestia”). Benah, the verb, from
which Benoth comes, signifies at once to ”bring forth children” and ”to build
houses”; the bringing forth of children being metaphorically regarded as the
”building up of the house,” that is, of the family.
While the Pagan system, so far as a Goddess-mother was concerned, was
founded on this identification of the Celestial and Terrestrial mothers of the
”blessed” immortals, each of these two divinities was still celebrated as
having, in some sense, a distinct individuality; and, in consequence, all the
different incarnations of the Saviour-seed were represented as born of two
mothers. It is well known that Bimater, or Two-mothered, is one of the
distinguishing epithets applied to Bacchus. Ovid makes the reason of the
application of this epithet to him to have arisen from the myth, that when in
embryo, he was rescued from the flames in which is mother died, was sewed up in
Jupiter’s thigh, and then brought forth at the due time. Without inquiring into
the secret meaning of this, it is sufficient to state that Bacchus had two
goddess-mothers; for, not only was he conceived by Semele, but he was brought
into the world by the goddess Ippa (PROCLUS in Timoeum). This is the very same
thing, no doubt, that is referred to, when it is said that after his mother
Semele’s death, his aunt Ino acted the part of a mother and nurse unto him. The
same thing appears in the mythology of Egypt, for there we read that Osiris,
under the form of Anubis, having been brought forth by Nepthys, was adopted and
brought up by the goddess Isis as her own son. In consequence of this, the
favourite Triad came everywhere to be the two mothers and the son. In
WILKINSON, the reader will find a divine Triad, consisting of Isis and Nepthys,
and the child of Horus between them. In Babylon, the statement of Diodorus
shows that the Triad there at one period was two goddesses and the son–Hera,
Rhea, and Zeus; and in the Capitol at Rome, in like manner, the Triad was Juno,
Minerva, and Jupiter; while, when Jupiter was worshipped by the Roman matrons
as ”Jupiter puer,” or ”Jupiter the child,” it was in company with Juno and the
goddess Fortuna (CICERO, De Divinatione). This kind of divine Triad seems to be
traced up to very ancient times among the Romans; for it is stated both by
Dionysius Halicarnassius and by Livy, that soon after the expulsion of the
Tarquins, there was at Rome a temple in which were worshipped Ceres, Liber, and
Libera (DION. HALICARN and
LIVY).
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter III
Festivals
Section I. Christmas and Lady-day
If Rome be indeed the Babylon of the Apocalypse, and the Madonna enshrined
in her sanctuaries be the very queen of heaven, for the worshipping of whom the
fierce anger of God was provoked against the Jews in the days of Jeremiah, it
is of the last consequence that the fact should be established beyond all
possibility of doubt; for that being once established, every one who trembles
at the Word of God must shudder at the very thought of giving such a system, either
individually or nationally, the least countenance or support. Something has
been said already that goes far to prove the identity of the Roman and
Babylonian systems; but at every step the evidence becomes still more
overwhelming. That which arises from comparing the different festivals is
peculiarly so.
The festivals of Rome are innumerable; but five of the most important may
be singled out for elucidation–viz., Christmas-day, Lady-day, Easter, the
Nativity of St. John, and the Feast of the Assumption. Each and all of these
can be proved to be Babylonian. And first, as to the festival in honour of the
birth of Christ, or Christmas. How comes it that that festival was connected
with the 25th of December? There is not a word in the Scriptures about the precise
day of His birth, or the time of the year when He was born. What is recorded
there, implies that at what time soever His birth took place, it could not have
been on the 25th of December. At the time that the angel announced His birth to
the shepherds of Bethlehem, they were feeding their flocks by night in the open
fields. Now, no doubt, the climate of Palestine is not so severe as the climate
of this country; but even there, though the heat of the day be considerable,
the cold of the night, from December to February, is very piercing, and it was
not the custom for the shepherds of Judea to watch their flocks in the open
fields later than about the end of October. *
* GILL, in his Commentary on Luke 2:8, has the following: ”There are two
sorts of cattle with the Jews…there are the cattle of the house that lie in the
city; the cattle of the wilderness are they that lie in the pastures. On which
one of the commentators (MAIMONIDES, in Misn. Betza), observes, ‘These lie in
the pastures, which are in the villages, all the days of the cold and heat, and
do not go into the cities until the rains descend.’ The first rain falls in the
month Marchesvan, which answers to the latter part of our October and the
former part of November…From whence it appears that Christ must be born before
the middle of October, since the first rain was not yet come.” KITTO, on
Deuteronomy 11:14 (Illustrated Commentary), says that the ”first rain,” is in
”autumn,” ”that is, in September or October.” This would make the time of the removal
of the flocks from the fields somewhat earlier than I have stated in the text;
but there is no doubt that it could not be later than there stated, according
to the testimony of Maimonides, whose acquaintance with all that concerns
Jewish customs is well known.
It is in the last degree incredible, then, that the birth of Christ could
have taken place at the end of December. There is great unanimity among
commentators on this point. Besides Barnes, Doddridge, Lightfoot, Joseph
Scaliger, and Jennings, in his ”Jewish Antiquities,” who are all of opinion
that December 25th could not be the right time of our Lord’s nativity, the
celebrated Joseph Mede pronounces a very decisive opinion to the same effect.
After a long and careful disquisition on the subject, among other arguments he
adduces the following;–”At the birth of Christ every woman and child was to go
to be taxed at the city whereto they belonged, whither some had long journeys;
but the middle of winter was not fitting for such a business, especially for
women with child, and children to travel in. Therefore, Christ could not be
born in the depth of winter. Again, at the time of Christ’s birth, the
shepherds lay abroad watching with their flocks in the night time; but this was
not likely to be in the middle of winter. And if any shall think the winter
wind was not so extreme in these parts, let him remember the words of Christ in
the gospel, ‘Pray that your flight be not in the winter.’ If the winter was so
bad a time to flee in, it seems no fit time for shepherds to lie in the fields
in, and women and children to travel in.” Indeed, it is admitted by the most
learned and candid writers of all parties * that the day of our Lord’s birth
cannot be determined, ** and that within the Christian Church no such festival
as Christmas was ever heard of till the third century, and that not till the
fourth century was far advanced did it gain much observance.
* Archdeacon WOOD, in Christian Annotator, LORIMER’s Manual of Presbytery.
Lorimer quotes Sir Peter King, who, in his Enquiry into the Worship of the
Primitive Church, &c., infers that no such festival was observed in that
Church, and adds–”It seems improbably that they should celebrate Christ’s
nativity when they disagreed about the month and the day when Christ was born.”
See also Rev. J. RYLE, in his Commentary on Luke, who admits that the time of
Christ’s birth is uncertain, although he opposes the idea that the flocks could
not have been in the open fields in December, by an appeal to Jacob’s complaint
to Laban, ”By day the drought consumed me, and the frost by night.” Now the
whole force of Jacob’s complaint against his churlish kinsman lay in this, that
Laban made him do what no other man would have done, and, therefore, if he
refers to the cold nights of winter (which, however, is not the common
understanding of the expression), it proves just the opposite of what it is
brought by Mr. Ryle to prove–viz., that it was not the custom for shepherds to
tend their flocks in the fields by night in winter.
** GIESELER,
CHRYSOSTOM (Monitum in Hom. de Natal. Christi),
writing in Antioch about AD 380, says: ”It is not yet ten years since this day
was made known to us”. ”What follows,” adds Gieseler, ”furnishes a remarkable
illustration of the ease with which customs of recent date could assume the
character of apostolic institutions.” Thus proceeds Chrysostom: ”Among those
inhabiting the west, it was known before from ancient and primitive times, and
to the dwellers from Thrace to Gadeira [Cadiz] it was previously familiar and
well-known,” that is, the birth-day of our Lord, which was unknown at Antioch
in the east, on the very borders of the Holy Land, where He was born, was
perfectly well-known in all the European region of the west, from Thrace even
to Spain!
How, then, did the Romish Church fix on December the 25th as Christmas-day?
Why, thus: Long before the fourth century, and long before the Christian era
itself, a festival was celebrated among the heathen, at that precise time of
the year, in honour of the birth of the son of the Babylonian queen of heaven;
and it may fairly be presumed that, in order to conciliate the heathen, and to
swell the number of the nominal adherents of Christianity, the same festival
was adopted by the Roman Church, giving it only the name of Christ. This
tendency on the part of Christians to meet Paganism half-way was very early
developed; and we find Tertullian, even in his day, about the year 230,
bitterly lamenting the inconsistency of the disciples of Christ in this
respect, and contrasting it with the strict fidelity of the Pagans to their own
superstition. ”By us,” says he, ”who are strangers to Sabbaths, and new moons,
and festivals, once acceptable to God, the Saturnalia, the feasts of January,
the Brumalia, and Matronalia, are now frequented; gifts are carried to and fro,
new year’s day presents are made with din, and sports and banquets are
celebrated with uproar; oh, how much more faithful are the heathen to their
religion, who take special care to adopt no solemnity from the Christians.”
Upright men strive to stem the tide, but in spite of all their efforts, the
apostacy went on, till the Church, with the exception of a small remnant, was
submerged under Pagan superstition. That Christmas was originally a Pagan
festival, is beyond all doubt. The time of the year, and the ceremonies with
which it is still celebrated, prove its origin. In Egypt, the son of Isis, the
Egyptian title for the queen of heaven, was born at this very time, ”about the
time of the winter solstice.” The very name by which Christmas is popularly
known among ourselves–Yule-day –proves at once its Pagan and Babylonian origin.
”Yule” is the Chaldee name for an ”infant” or ”little child”; * and as the 25th
of December was called by our Pagan Anglo-Saxon ancestors, ”Yule-day,” or the
”Child’s day,” and the night that preceded it, ”Mother-night,” long before they
came in contact with Christianity, that sufficiently proves its real character.
* From Eol, an ”infant.” In Scotland, at least in the Lowlands, the
Yule-cakes are also called Nur-cakes. Now in Chaldee Nour signifies ”birth.”
Therefore, Nur-cakes are ”birth-cakes.” The Scandinavian goddesses, called
”norns,” who appointed children their destinies at their birth, evidently
derived their name from the cognate Chaldee word ”Nor,” a child.
Far and wide, in the realms of Paganism, was this birth-day observed. This
festival has been commonly believed to have had only an astronomical character,
referring simply to the completion of the sun’s yearly course, and the commencement
of a new cycle. But there is indubitably evidence that the festival in question
had a much higher reference than this–that it commemorated not merely the
figurative birth-day of the sun in the renewal of its course, but the birth-day
of the grand Deliverer. Among the Sabeans of Arabia, who regarded the moon, and
not the sun, as the visible symbol of the favourite object of their idolatry,
the same period was observed as the birth festival. Thus we read in Stanley’s
Sabean Philosophy: ”On the 24th of the tenth month,” that is December,
according to our reckoning, ”the Arabians celebrated the BIRTHDAY OF THE
LORD–that is the Moon.” The Lord Moon was the great object of Arabian worship,
and that Lord Moon, according to them, was born on the 24th of December, which
clearly shows that the birth which they celebrated had no necessary connection
with the course of the sun. It is worthy of special note, too, that if
Christmas-day among the ancient Saxons of this island, was observed to
celebrate the birth of any Lord of the host of heaven, the case must have been
precisely the same here as it was in Arabia. The Saxons, as is well known,
regarded the Sun as a female divinity, and the Moon as a male. *
* SHARON TURNER. Turner cites an Arabic poem which proves that a female sun
and a masculine moon were recognised in Arabia as well as by the Anglo-Saxons.
It must have been the birth-day of the Lord Moon, therefore, and not of the
Sun, that was celebrated by them on the 25th of December, even as the birth-day
of the same Lord Moon was observed by the Arabians on the 24th of December. The
name of the Lord Moon in the East seems to have been Meni, for this appears the
most natural interpretation of the Divine statement in Isaiah lxv. 11, ”But ye
are they that forsake my holy mountain, that prepare a temple for Gad, and that
furnish the drink-offering unto Meni.” There is reason to believe that Gad
refers to the sun-god, and that Meni in like manner designates the
moon-divinity. *
*See KITTO, vol. iv. p. 66, end of Note. The name Gad evidently refers, in
the first instance, to the war-god, for it signifies to assault; but it also
signifies ”the assembler”; and under both ideas it is applicable to Nimrod,
whose general character was that of the sun-god, for he was the first grand
warrior; and, under the name Phoroneus, he was celebrated for having first
gathered mankind into social communities. The name Meni, ”the numberer,” on the
other hand, seems just a synonym for the name of Cush or Chus, which, while it
signifies ”to cover” or ”hide,” signifies also ”to count or number.” The true
proper meaning of the name Cush is, I have no doubt, ”The numberer” or
”Arithmetician”; for while Nimrod his son, as the ”mighty” one, was the grand
propagator of the Babylonian system of idolatry, by force and power, he, as
Hermes, was the real concocter of that system, for he is said to have ”taught
men the proper mode of approaching the Deity with prayers and sacrifice”
(WILKINSON); and seeing idolatry and astronomy were intimately combined, to
enable him to do so with effect, it was indispensable that he should be
pre-eminently skilled in the science of numbers. Now, Hermes (that is Cush) is
said to have ”first discovered numbers, and the art of reckoning, geometry, and
astronomy, the games of chess and hazard” (Ibid.); and it is in all probability
from reference to the meaning of the name of Cush, that some called ”NUMBER the
father of gods and men” (Ibid.). The name Meni is just the Chaldee form of the
Hebrew ”Mene,” the ”numberer” for in Chaldee i often takes the place of the
final e. As we have seen reason to conclude with Gesenius, that Nebo, the great
prophetic god of Babylon, was just the same god as Hermes, this shows the
peculiar emphasis of the first words in the Divine sentence that sealed the
doom of Belshazzar, as representing the primeval god–”MENE, MENE, Tekel,
Upharsin,” which is as much as covertly to say, ”The numberer is numbered.” As
the cup was peculiarly the symbol of Cush, hence the pouring out of the
drink-offering to him as the god of the cup; and as he was the great Diviner,
hence the divinations as to the future year, which Jerome connects with the
divinity referred to by Isaiah. Now Hermes, in Egypt as the ”numberer,” was
identified with the moon that numbers the months. He was called ”Lord of the
moon” (BUNSEN); and as the ”dispenser of time” (WILKINSON), he held a ”palm
branch, emblematic of a year” (Ibid.). Thus, then, if Gad was the
”sun-divinity,” Meni was very naturally regarded as ”The Lord Moon.”
Meni, or Manai, signifies ”The Numberer.” And it is by the changes of the
moon that the months are numbered: Psalm civ. 19, ”He appointed the moon for
seasons: the sun knoweth the time of its going down.” The name of the ”Man of
the Moon,” or the god who presided over that luminary among the Saxons, was
Mane, as given in the ”Edda,” and Mani, in the ”Voluspa.” That it was the birth
of the ”Lord Moon” that was celebrated among our ancestors at Christmas, we
have remarkable evidence in the name that is still given in the lowlands of
Scotland to the feast on the last day of the year, which seems to be a remnant
of the old birth festival for the cakes then made are called Nur-Cakes, or
Birth-cakes. That name is Hogmanay. Now, ”Hog-Manai” in Chaldee signifies ”The
feast of the Numberer”; in other words, the festival of Deus Lunus, or of the
Man of the Moon. To show the connection between country and country, and the
inveterate endurance of old customs, it is worthy of remark, that Jerome,
commenting on the very words of Isaiah already quoted, about spreading ”a table
for Gad,” and ”pouring out a drink-offering to Meni,” observes that it ”was the
custom so late as his time [in the fourth century], in all cities especially in
Egypt and at Alexandria, to set tables, and furnish them with various luxurious
articles of food, and with goblets containing a mixture of new wine, on the
last day of the month and the year, and that the people drew omens from them in
respect of the fruitfulness of the year.” The Egyptian year began at a different
time from ours; but this is a near as possible (only substituting whisky for
wine), the way in which Hogmanay is still observed on the last day of the last
month of our year in Scotland. I do not know that any omens are drawn from
anything that takes place at that time, but everybody in the south of Scotland
is personally cognisant of the fact, that, on Hogmanay, or the evening before
New Year’s day, among those who observe old customs, a table is spread, and
that while buns and other dainties are provided by those who can afford them,
oat cakes and cheese are brought forth among those who never see oat cakes but
on this occasion, and that strong drink forms an essential article of the
provision.
Even where the sun was the favourite object of worship, as in Babylon
itself and elsewhere, at this festival he was worshipped not merely as the orb
of day, but as God incarnate. It was an essential principle of the Babylonian
system, that the Sun or Baal was the one only God. When, therefore, Tammuz was
worshipped as God incarnate, that implied also that he was an incarnation of
the Sun. In the Hindoo Mythology, which is admitted to be essentially
Babylonian, this comes out very distinctly. There, Surya, or the sun, is
represented as being incarnate, and born for the purpose of subduing the
enemies of the gods, who, without such a birth, could not have been subdued. *
* See the Sanscrit Researches of Col. VANS KENNEDY. Col. K., a most
distinguished Sanscrit scholar, brings the Brahmins from Babylon (Ibid.). Be it
observed the very name Surya, given to the sun over all India, is connected
with this birth. Though the word had originally a different meaning, it was
evidently identified by the priests with the Chaldee ”Zero,” and made to
countenance the idea of the birth of the ”Sun-god.” The Pracrit name is still
nearer the Scriptural name of the promised ”seed.” It is ”Suro.” It has been
seen, in a previous chapter, that in Egypt also the Sun was represented as born
of a goddess.
It was no mere astronomic festival, then, that the Pagans celebrated at the
winter solstice. That festival at Rome was called the feast of Saturn, and the
mode in which it was celebrated there, showed whence it had been derived. The
feast, as regulated by Caligula, lasted five days; * loose reins were given to
drunkenness and revelry, slaves had a temporary emancipation, ** and used all
manner of freedoms with their masters.
* Subsequently the number of the days of the Saturnalia was increased to
seven.
** If Saturn, or Kronos, was, as we have seen reason to believe, Phoroneus,
”The emancipator,” the ”temporary emancipation” of the slaves at his festival
was exactly in keeping with his supposed character.
This was precisely the way in which, according to Berosus, the drunken
festival of the month Thebeth, answering to our December, in other words, the
festival of Bacchus, was celebrated in Babylon. ”It was the custom,” says he,
”during the five days it lasted, for masters to be in subjection to their
servants, and one of them ruled the house, clothed in a purple garment like a
king.” This ”purple-robed” servant was called ”Zoganes,” the ”Man of sport and
wantonness,” and answered exactly to the ”Lord of Misrule,” that in the dark
ages, was chosen in all Popish countries to head the revels of Christmas. The
wassailling bowl of Christmas had its precise counterpart in the ”Drunken
festival” of Babylon; and many of the other observances still kept up among
ourselves at Christmas came from the very same quarter. The candles, in some
parts of England, lighted on Christmas-eve, and used so long as the festive
season lasts, were equally lighted by the Pagans on the eve of the festival of
the Babylonian god, to do honour to him: for it was one of the distinguishing
peculiarities of his worship to have lighted wax-candles on his altars. The
Christmas tree, now so common among us, was equally common in Pagan Rome and
Pagan Egypt. In Egypt that tree was the palm-tree; in Rome it was the fir; the
palm-tree denoting the Pagan Messiah, as Baal-Tamar, the fir referring to him
as Baal-Berith. The mother of Adonis, the Sun-God and great mediatorial
divinity, was mystically said to have been changed into a tree, and when in
that state to have brought forth her divine son. If the mother was a tree, the
son must have been recognised as the ”Man the branch.” And this entirely
accounts for the putting of the Yule Log into the fire on Christmas-eve, and
the appearance of the Christmas-tree the next morning. As Zero-Ashta, ”The seed
of the woman,” which name also signified Ignigena, or ”born of the fire,” he
has to enter the fire on ”Mother-night,” that he may be born the next day out
of it, as the ”Branch of God,” or the Tree that brings all divine gifts to men.
But why, it may be asked, does he enter the fire under the symbol of a Log? To
understand this, it must be remembered that the divine child born at the winter
solstice was born as a new incarnation of the great god (after that god had
been cut in pieces), on purpose to revenge his death upon his murderers. Now the
great god, cut off in the midst of his power and glory, was symbolised as a
huge tree, stripped of all its branches, and cut down almost to the ground. But
the great serpent, the symbol of the life restoring Aesculapius, twists itself
around the dead stock, and lo, at its side up sprouts a young tree–a tree of an
entirely different kind, that is destined never to be cut down by hostile
power–even the palm-tree, the well-known symbol of victory. The Christmas-tree,
as has been stated, was generally at Rome a different tree, even the fir; but
the very same idea as was implied in the palm-tree was implied in the
Christmas-fir; for that covertly symbolised the new-born God as Baal-berith, *
”Lord of the Covenant,” and thus shadowed forth the perpetuity and everlasting
nature of his power, not that after having fallen before his enemies, he had
risen triumphant over them all.
* Baal-bereth, which differs only in one letter from Baal-berith, ”Lord of
the Covenant,” signifies ”Lord of the fir-tree.”
Therefore, the 25th of December, the day that was observed at Rome as the
day when the victorious god reappeared on earth, was held at the Natalis
invicti solis, ”The birth-day of the unconquered Sun.” Now the Yule Log is the
dead stock of Nimrod, deified as the sun-god, but cut down by his enemies; the
Christmas-tree is Nimrod redivivus–the slain god come to life again. In the
light reflected by the above statement on customs that still linger among us,
the origin of which has been lost in the midst of hoar antiquity, let the
reader look at the singular practice still kept up in the South on
Christmas-eve, of kissing under the mistletoe bough. That mistletoe bough in
the Druidic superstition, which, as we have seen, was derived from Babylon, was
a representation of the Messiah, ”The man the branch.” The mistletoe was
regarded as a divine branch *–a branch that came from heaven, and grew upon a
tree that sprung out of the earth.
* In the Scandinavian story of Balder, the mistletoe branch is
distinguished from the lamented god. The Druidic and Scandinavian myths
somewhat differed; but yet, even in the Scandinavian story, it is evident that
some marvellous power was attributed to the mistletoe branch; for it was able
to do what nothing else in the compass of creation could accomplish; it slew
the divinity on whom the Anglo-Saxons regarded ”the empire” of their ”heaven”
as ”depending.” Now, all that is neceesary to unravel this apparent
inconsistency, is just to understand ”the branch” that had such power, as a
symbolical expression for the true Messiah. The Bacchus of the Greeks came
evidently to be recognised as the ”seed of the serpent”; for he is said to have
been brought forth by his mother in consequence of intercourse with Jupiter,
when that god had appeared in the form of a serpent. If the character of Balder
was the same, the story of his death just amounted to this, that the ”seed of
the serpent” had been slain by the ”seed of the woman.” This story, of course,
must have originated with his enemies. But the idolators took up what they
could not altogether deny, evidently with the view of explaining it away.
Thus by the engrafting of the celestial branch into the earthly tree,
heaven and earth, that sin had severed, were joined together, and thus the
mistletoe bough became the token of Divine reconciliation to man, the kiss
being the well-known token of pardon and reconciliation. Whence could such an
idea have come? May it not have come from the eighty-fifth Psalm, ver. 10,11,
”Mercy and truth are met together; righteousness and peace have KISSED each
other. Truth shall spring out of the earth [in consequence of the coming of the
promised Saviour], and righteousness shall look down from heaven”? Certain it
is that that Psalm was written soon after the Babylonish captivity; and as
multitudes of the Jews, after that event, still remained in Babylon under the
guidance of inspired men, such as Daniel, as a part of the Divine word it must
have been communicated to them, as well as to their kinsmen in Palestine.
Babylon was, at that time, the centre of the civilised world; and thus
Paganism, corrupting the Divine symbol as it ever has done, had opportunities
of sending forth its debased counterfeit of the truth to all the ends of the
earth, through the Mysteries that were affiliated with the great central system
in Babylon. Thus the very customs of Christmas still existent cast surprising
light at once on the revelations of grace made to all the earth, and the
efforts made by Satan and his emissaries to materialise, carnalise, and degrade
them.
In many countries the boar was sacrificed to the god, for the injury a boar
was fabled to have done him. According to one version of the story of the death
of Adonis, or Tammuz, it was, as we have seen, in consequence of a wound from
the tusk of a boar that he died. The Phrygian Attes, the beloved of Cybele,
whose story was identified with that of Adonis, was fabled to have perished in
like manner, by the tusk of a boar. Therefore, Diana, who though commonly
represented in popular myths only as the huntress Diana, was in reality the
great mother of the gods, has frequently the boar’s head as her accompaniment,
in token not of any mere success in the chase, but of her triumph over the
grand enemy of the idolatrous system, in which she occupied so conspicuous a
place. According to Theocritus, Venus was reconciled to the boar that killed
Adonis, because when brought in chains before her, it pleaded so pathetically
that it had not killed her husband of malice prepense, but only through
accident. But yet, in memory of the deed that the mystic boar had done, many a
boar lost its head or was offered in sacrifice to the offended goddess. In
Smith, Diana is represented with a boar’s head lying beside her, on the top of
a heap of stones in which the Roman Emperor Trajan is represented burning
incense to the same goddess, the boar’s head forms a very prominent figure. On
Christmas-day the Continental Saxons offered a boar in sacrifice to the Sun, to
propitiate her * for the loss of her beloved Adonis.
* The reader will remember the Sun was a goddess. Mallet says, ”They
offered the largest hog they could get to Frigga”–i.e., the mother of Balder
the lamented one. In Egypt swine were offered once a year, at the feast of the
Moon, to the Moon, and Bacchus or Osiris; and to them only it was lawful to
make such an offering. (AELIAN)
In Rome a similar observance had evidently existed; for a boar formed the
great article at the feast of Saturn, as appears from the following words of
Martial:–
”That boar will make you a
good Saturnalia.”
Hence the boar’s head is still a standing dish in England at the Christmas
dinner, when the reason of it is long since forgotten. Yea, the ”Christmas
goose” and ”Yule cakes” were essential articles in the worship of the
Babylonian Messiah, as that worship was practised both in Egypt and at Rome.
Wilkinson, in reference to Egypt, shows that ”the favourite offering” of Osiris
was ”a goose,” and moreover, that the ”goose could not be eaten except in the
depth of winter.” As to Rome, Juvenal says, ”that Osiris, if offended, could be
pacified only by a large goose and a thin cake.” In many countries we have
evidence of a sacred character attached to the goose. It is well known that the
capitol of Rome was on one occasion saved when on the point of being surprised
by the Gauls in the dead of night, by the cackling of the geese sacred to Juno,
kept in the temple of Jupiter. In India, the goose occupied a similar position;
for in that land we read of the sacred ”Brahmany goose,” or goose sacred to Brahma.
Finally, the monuments of Babylon show that the goose possessed a like mystic
character in Chaldea, and that it was offered in sacrifice there, as well as in
Rome or Egypt, for there the priest is seen with the goose in the one hand, and
his sacrificing knife in the other. *
* The symbolic meaning of the offering of the goose is worthy of notice.
”The goose,” says Wilkinson, ”signified in hieroglyphics a child or son”; and
Horapolo says, ”It was chosen to denote a son, from its love to its young, being
always ready to give itself up to the chasseur, in order that they might be
preserved; for which reason the Egyptians thought it right to revere this
animal.” (WILKINSON’s Egyptians) Here, then, the true meaning of the symbol is
a son, who voluntarily gives himself up as a sacrifice for those whom he
loves–viz., the Pagan Messiah.
There can be no doubt, then, that the Pagan festival at the winter
solstice–in other words, Christmas–was held in honour of the birth of the
Babylonian Messiah.
The consideration of the next great festival in the Popish calendar gives
the very strongest confirmation to what has now been said. That festival,
called Lady-day, is celebrated at Rome on the 25th of March, in alleged
commemoration of the miraculous conception of our Lord in the womb of the
Virgin, on the day when the angel was sent to announce to her the distinguished
honour that was to be bestowed upon her as the mother of the Messiah. But who
could tell when this annunciation was made? The Scripture gives no clue at all
in regard to the time. But it mattered not. But our Lord was either conceived
or born, that very day now set down in the Popish calendar for the
”Annunciation of the Virgin” was observed in Pagan Rome in honour of Cybele,
the Mother of the Babylonian Messiah. *
* AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, and MACROB., Sat. The fact stated in the paragraph
above casts light on a festival held in Egypt, of which no satisfactory account
has yet been given. That festival was held in commemoration of ”the entrance of
Osiris into the moon.” Now, Osiris, like Surya in India, was just the Sun.
(PLUTARCH, De Iside et Osiride) The moon, on the other hand, though most
frequently the symbol of the god Hermes or Thoth, was also the symbol of the
goddess Isis, the queen of heaven. The learned Bunsen seems to dispute this;
but his own admissions show that he does so without reason. And Jeremiah 44:17
seems decisive on the subject. The entrance of Osiris into the moon, then, was
just the sun’s being conceived by Isis, the queen of heaven, that, like the
Indian Surya, he might in due time be born as the grand deliverer. Hence the
very name Osiris; for, as Isis is the Greek form of H’isha, ”the woman,” so
Osiris, as read at this day on the Egyptian monuments, is He-siri, ”the seed.”
It is no objection to this to say that Osiris is commonly represented as the
husband of Isis; for, as we have seen already, Osiris is at once the son and
husband of his mother. Now, this festival took place in Egypt generally in
March, just as Lady-day, or the first great festival of Cybele, was held in the
same month in Pagan Rome. We have seen that the common title of Cybele at Rome
was Domina, or ”the lady” (OVID, Fasti), as in Babylon it was Beltis (EUSEB.
Praep. Evang.), and from this, no doubt, comes the name ”Lady-day” as it has
descended to us.
Now, it is manifest that Lady-day and Christmas-day stand in intimate
relation to one another. Between the 25th of March and the 25th of December
there are exactly nine months. If, then, the false Messiah was conceived in
March and born in December, can any one for a moment believe that the
conception and birth of the true Messiah can have so exactly synchronised, not
only to the month, but to the day? The thing is incredible. Lady-day and
Christmas-day, then, are purely Babylonian.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter III
Section II
Easter
Then look at Easter. What means the term Easter itself? It is not a
Christian name. It bears its Chaldean origin on its very forehead. Easter is
nothing else than Astarte, one of the titles of Beltis, the queen of heaven,
whose name, as pronounced by the people Nineveh, was evidently identical with
that now in common use in this country. That name, aas found by Layard on the
Assyrian monuments, is Ishtar. The worship of Bel and Astarte was very early
introduced into Britain, along with the Druids, ”the priests of the groves.”
Some have imagined that the Druidical worship was first introduced by the
Phoenicians, who, centuries before the Christian era, traded to the tin-mines
of Cornwall. But the unequivocal traces of that worship are found in regions of
the British islands where the Phoenicians never penetrated, and it has
everywhere left indelible marks of the strong hold which it must have had on
the early British mind. From Bel, the 1st of May is still called Beltane in the
Almanac; and we have customs still lingering at this day among us, which prove
how exactly the worship of Bel or Moloch (for both titles belonged to the same
god) had been observed even in the northern parts of this island. ”The late
Lady Baird, of Fern Tower, in Perthshire,” says a writer in ”Notes and
Queries,” thoroughly versed in British antiquities, ”told me, that every year,
at Beltane (or the 1st of May), a number of men and women assemble at an
ancient Druidical circle of stones on her property near Crieff. They light a
fire in the centre, each person puts a bit of oat-cake in a shepherd’s bonnet;
they all sit down, and draw blindfold a piece from the bonnet. One piece has
been previously blackened, and whoever gets that piece has to jump through the
fire in the centre of the circle, and pay a forfeit. This is, in fact, a part
of the ancient worship of Baal, and the person on whom the lot fell was
previously burnt as a sacrifice. Now, the passing through the fire represents
that, and the payment of the forfeit redeems the victim.” If Baal was thus
worshipped in Britain, it will not be difficult to believe that his consort
Astarte was also adored by our ancestors, and that from Astarte, whose name in
Nineveh was Ishtar, the religious solemnities of April, as now practised, are called
by the name of Easter–that month, among our Pagan ancestors, having been called
Easter-monath. The festival, of which we read in Church history, under the name
of Easter, in the third or fourth centuries, was quite a different festival
from that now observed in the Romish Church, and at that time was not known by
any such name as Easter. It was called Pasch, or the Passover, and though not
of Apostolic institution, * was very early observed by many professing
Christians, in commemoration of the death and resurrection of Christ.
* Socrates, the ancient ecclesiastical historian, after a lengthened
account of the different ways in which Easter was observed in different
countries in his time–i.e., the fifth century–sums up in these words: ”Thus
much already laid down may seem a sufficient treatise to prove that the
celebration of the feast of Easter began everywhere more of custom than by any
commandment either of Christ or any Apostle.” (Hist. Ecclesiast.) Every one
knows that the name ”Easter,” used in our translation of Acts 12:4, refers not
to any Christian festival, but to the Jewish Passover. This is one of the few
places in our version where the translators show an undue bias.
That festival agreed originally with the time of the Jewish Passover, when
Christ was crucified, a period which, in the days of Tertullian, at the end of
the second century, was believed to have been the 23rd of March. That festival
was not idolatrous, and it was preceded by no Lent. ”It ought to be known,”
said Cassianus, the monk of Marseilles, writing in the fifth century, and
contrasting the primitive Church with the Church in his day, ”that the
observance of the forty days had no existence, so long as the perfection of
that primitive Church remained inviolate.” Whence, then, came this observance?
The forty days’ abstinence of Lent was directly borrowed from the worshippers
of the Babylonian goddess. Such a Lent of forty days, ”in the spring of the
year,” is still observed by the Yezidis or Pagan Devil-worshippers of
Koordistan, who have inherited it from their early masters, the Babylonians.
Such a Lent of forty days was held in spring by the Pagan Mexicans, for thus we
read in Humboldt, where he gives account of Mexican observances: ”Three days
after the vernal equinox…began a solemn fast of forty days in honour of the
sun.” Such a Lent of forty days was observed in Egypt, as may be seen on
consulting Wilkinson’s Egyptians. This Egyptian Lent of forty days, we are
informed by Landseer, in his Sabean Researches, was held expressly in
commemoration of Adonis or Osiris, the great mediatorial god. At the same time,
the rape of Proserpine seems to have been commemorated, and in a similar
manner; for Julius Firmicus informs us that, for ”forty nights” the ”wailing
for Proserpine” continued; and from Arnobius we learn that the fast which the
Pagans observed, called ”Castus” or the ”sacred” fast, was, by the Christians
in his time, believed to have been primarily in imitation of the long fast of
Ceres, when for many days she determinedly refused to eat on account of her
”excess of sorrow,” that is, on account of the loss of her daughter Proserpine,
when carried away by Pluto, the god of hell. As the stories of Bacchus, or
Adonis and Proserpine, though originally distinct, were made to join on and fit
in to one another, so that Bacchus was called Liber, and his wife Ariadne,
Libera (which was one of the names of Proserpine), it is highly probable that
the forty days’ fast of Lent was made in later times to have reference to both.
Among the Pagans this Lent seems to have been an indispensable preliminary to
the great annual festival in commemoration of the death and resurrection of
Tammuz, which was celebrated by alternate weeping and rejoicing, and which, in
many countries, was considerably later than the Christian festival, being
observed in Palestine and Assyria in June, therefore called the ”month of
Tammuz”; in Egypt, about the middle of May, and in Britain, some time in April.
To conciliate the Pagans to nominal Christianity, Rome, pursuing its usual
policy, took measures to get the Christian and Pagan festivals amalgamated,
and, by a complicated but skilful adjustment of the calendar, it was found no
difficult matter, in general, to get Paganism and Christianity–now far sunk in
idolatry–in this as in so many other things, to shake hands. The instrument in
accomplishing this amalgamation was the abbot Dionysius the Little, to whom
also we owe it, as modern chronologers have demonstrated, that the date of the
Christian era, or of the birth of Christ Himself, was moved FOUR YEARS from the
true time. Whether this was done through ignorance or design may be matter of
question; but there seems to be no doubt of the fact, that the birth of the
Lord Jesus was made full four years later than the truth. This change of the
calendar in regard to Easter was attended with momentous consequences. It
brought into the Church the grossest corruption and the rankest superstition in
connection with the abstinence of Lent. Let any one only read the atrocities that
were commemorated during the ”sacred fast” or Pagan Lent, as described by
Arnobius and Clemens Alexandrinus, and surely he must blush for the
Christianity of those who, with the full knowledge of all these abominations,
”went down to Egypt for help” to stir up the languid devotion of the degenerate
Church, and who could find no more excellent way to ”revive” it, than by
borrowing from so polluted a source; the absurdities and abominations connected
with which the early Christian writers had held up to scorn. That Christians
should ever think of introducing the Pagan abstinence of Lent was a sign of
evil; it showed how low they had sunk, and it was also a cause of evil; it
inevitably led to deeper degradation. Originally, even in Rome, Lent, with the
preceding revelries of the Carnival, was entirely unknown; and even when
fasting before the Christian Pasch was held to be necessary, it was by slow
steps that, in this respect, it came to conform with the ritual of Paganism.
What may have been the period of fasting in the Roman Church before sitting of
the Nicene Council does not very clearly appear, but for a considerable period
after that Council, we have distinct evidence that it did not exceed three
weeks. *
* GIESELER, speaking of the Eastern Church in the second century, in regard
to Paschal observances, says: ”In it [the Paschal festival in commemoration of
the death of Christ] they [the Eastern Christians] eat unleavened bread,
probably like the Jews, eight days throughout…There is no trace of a yearly festival
of a resurrection among them, for this was kept every Sunday” (Catholic
Church). In regard to the Western Church, at a somewhat later period–the age of
Constantine–fifteen days seems to have been observed to religious exercises in
connection with the Christian Paschal feast, as appears from the following
extracts from Bingham, kindly furnished to me by a friend, although the period
of fasting is not stated. Bingham (Origin) says: ”The solemnities of Pasch
[are] the week before and the week after Easter Sunday–one week of the Cross,
the other of the resurrection. The ancients speak of the Passion and
Resurrection Pasch as a fifteen days’ solemnity. Fifteen days was enforced by
law by the Empire, and commanded to the universal Church…Scaliger mentions a
law of Constantine, ordering two weeks for Easter, and a vacation of all legal
processes.”
The words of Socrates, writing on this very subject, about AD 450, are
these: ”Those who inhabit the princely city of Rome fast together before Easter
three weeks, excepting the Saturday and Lord’s-day.” But at last, when the
worship of Astarte was rising into the ascendant, steps were taken to get the
whole Chaldean Lent of six weeks, or forty days, made imperative on all within
the Roman empire of the West. The way was prepared for this by a Council held
at Aurelia in the time of Hormisdas, Bishop of Rome, about the year 519, which
decreed that Lent should be solemnly kept before Easter. It was with the view,
no doubt, of carrying out this decree that the calendar was, a few days after,
readjusted by Dionysius. This decree could not be carried out all at once.
About the end of the sixth century, the first decisive attempt was made to
enforce the observance of the new calendar. It was in Britain that the first
attempt was made in this way; and here the attempt met with vigorous
resistance. The difference, in point of time, betwixt the Christian Pasch, as
observed in Britain by the native Christians, and the Pagan Easter enforced by
Rome, at the time of its enforcement, was a whole month; * and it was only by
violence and bloodshed, at last, that the Festival of the Anglo-Saxon or
Chaldean goddess came to supersede that which had been held in honour of
Christ.
* CUMMIANUS, quoted by Archbishop USSHER, Sylloge Those who have been
brought up in the observance of Christmas and Easter, and who yet abhor from
their hearts all Papal and Pagan idolatry alike, may perhaps feel as if there
were something ”untoward” in the revelations given above in regard to the
origin of these festivals. But a moment’s reflection will suffice entirely to
banish such a feeling. They will see, that if the account I have given be true,
it is of no use to ignore it. A few of the facts stated in these pages are
already known to Infidel and Socinian writers of no mean mark, both in this
country and on the Continent, and these are using them in such a way as to
undermine the faith of the young and uninformed in regard to the very vitals of
the Christian faith. Surely, then, it must be of the last consequence, that the
truth should be set forth in its own native light, even though it may somewhat
run counter to preconceived opinions, especially when that truth, justly
considered, tends so much at once to strengthen the rising youth against the
seductions of Popery, and to confirm them in the faith once delivered to the
Saints. If a heathen could say, ”Socrates I love, and Plato I love, but I love
truth more,” surely a truly Christian mind will not display less magnanimity.
Is there not much, even in the aspect of the times, that ought to prompt the
earnest inquiry, if the occasion has not arisen, when efforts, and strenuous
efforts, should be made to purge out of the National Establishment in the south
those observances, and everything else that has flowed in upon it from
Babylon’s golden cup? There are men of noble minds in the Church of Cranmer,
Latimer, and Ridley, who love our Lord Jesus Christ in sincerity, who have felt
the power of His blood, and known the comfort of His Spirit. Let them, in their
closets, and on their knees, ask the question, at their God and at their own
consciences, if they ought not to bestir themselves in right earnest, and
labour with all their might till such a consummation be effected. Then, indeed,
would England’s Church be the grand bulwark of the Reformation–then would her
sons speak with her enemies in the gate–then would she appear in the face of
all Christendom, ”clear as the sun, fair as the moon, and terrible as an army
with banners.” If, however, nothing effectual shall be done to stay the plague
that is spreading in her, the result must be disastrous, not only to herself,
but to the whole empire.
Such is the history of Easter. The popular observances that still attend
the period of its celebration amply confirm the testimony of history as to its
Babylonian character. The hot cross buns of Good Friday, and the dyed eggs of
Pasch or Easter Sunday, figured in the Chaldean rites just as they do now. The
”buns,” known too by that identical name, were used in the worship of the queen
of heaven, the goddess Easter, as early as the days of Cecrops, the founder of
Athens–that is, 1500 years before the Christian era. ”One species of sacred
bread,” says Bryant, ”which used to be offered to the gods, was of great
antiquity, and called Boun.” Diogenes Laertius, speaking of this offering being
made by Empedocles, describes the chief ingredients of which it was composed,
saying, ”He offered one of the sacred cakes called Boun, which was made of fine
flour and honey.” The prophet Jeremiah takes notice of this kind of offering
when he says, ”The children gather wood, the fathers kindle the fire, and the
women knead their dough, to make cakes to the queen of heaven.” *
* Jeremiah 7:18. It is from the very word here used by the prophet that the
word ”bun” seems to be derived. The Hebrew word, with the points, was
pronounced Khavan, which in Greek became sometimes Kapan-os (PHOTIUS, Lexicon
Syttoge); and, at other times, Khabon (NEANDER, in KITTO’S Biblical
Cyclopoedia). The first shows how Khvan, pronounced as one syllable, would pass
into the Latin panis, ”bread,” and the second how, in like manner, Khvon would
become Bon or Bun. It is not to be overlooked that our common English word Loa
has passed through a similar process of formation. In Anglo-Saxon it was Hlaf.
The hot cross buns are not now offered, but eaten, on the festival of
Astarte; but this leaves no doubt as to whence they have been derived. The
origin of the Pasch eggs is just as clear. The ancient Druids bore an egg, as
the sacred emblem of their order. In the Dionysiaca, or mysteries of Bacchus,
as celebrated in Athens, one part of the nocturnal ceremony consisted in the
consecration of an egg. The Hindoo fables celebrate their mundane egg as of a
golden colour. The people of Japan make their sacred egg to have been brazen.
In China, at this hour, dyed or painted eggs are used on sacred festivals, even
as in this country. In ancient times eggs were used in the religious rites of
the Egyptians and the Greeks, and were hung up for mystic purposes in their
temples. From Egypt these sacred eggs can be distinctly traced to the banks of
the Euphrates. The classic poets are full of the fable of the mystic egg of the
Babylonians; and thus its tale is told by Hyginus, the Egyptian, the learned
keeper of the Palatine library at Rome, in the time of Augustus, who was
skilled in all the wisdom of his native country: ”An egg of wondrous size is
said to have fallen from heaven into the river Euphrates. The fishes rolled it
to the bank, where the doves having settled upon it, and hatched it, out came
Venus, who afterwards was called the Syrian Goddess”–that is, Astarte. Hence
the egg became one of the symbols of Astarte or Easter; and accordingly, in
Cyprus, one of the chosen seats of the worship of Venus, or Astarte, the egg of
wondrous size was represented on a grand scale.
The occult meaning of this mystic egg of Astarte, in one of its aspects
(for it had a twofold significance), had reference to the ark during the time
of the flood, in which the whole human race were shut up, as the chick is
enclosed in the egg before it is hatched. If any be inclined to ask, how could
it ever enter the minds of men to employ such an extraordinary symbol for such
a purpose, the answer is, first, The sacred egg of Paganism, as already
indicated, is well known as the ”mundane egg,” that is, the egg in which the
world was shut up. Now the world has two distinct meanings–it means either the
material earth, or the inhabitants of the earth. The latter meaning of the term
is seen in Genesis 11:1, ”The whole earth was of one language and of one
speech,” where the meaning is that the whole people of the world were so. If
then the world is seen shut up in an egg, and floating on the waters, it may
not be difficult to believe, however the idea of the egg may have come, that
the egg thus floating on the wide universal sea might be Noah’s family that
contained the whole world in its bosom. Then the application of the word egg to
the ark comes thus: The Hebrew name for an egg is Baitz, or in the feminine
(for there are both genders), Baitza. This, in Chaldee and Phoenician, becomes
Baith or Baitha, which in these languages is also the usual way in which the
name of a house is pronounced. *
* The common word ”Beth,” ”house,” in the Bible without the points, is
”Baith,” as may be seen in the name of Bethel, as given in Genesis 35:1, of the
Greek Septuagint, where it is ”Baith-el.”
The egg floating on the waters that contained the world, was the house
floating on the waters of the deluge, with the elements of the new world in its
bosom. The coming of the egg from heaven evidently refers to the preparation of
the ark by express appointment of God; and the same thing seems clearly implied
in the Egyptian story of the mundane egg which was said to have come out of the
mouth of the great god. The doves resting on the egg need no explanation. This,
then, was the meaning of the mystic egg in one aspect. As, however, everything
that was good or beneficial to mankind was represented in the Chaldean
mysteries, as in some way connected with the Babylonian goddess, so the
greatest blessing to the human race, which the ark contained in its bosom, was
held to be Astarte, who was the great civiliser and benefactor of the world.
Though the deified queen, whom Astarte represented, had no actual existence
till some centuries after the flood, yet through the doctrine of
metempsychosis, which was firmly established in Babylon, it was easy for her
worshippers to be made to believe that, in a previous incarnation, she had
lived in the Antediluvian world, and passed in safety through the waters of the
flood. Now the Romish Church adopted this mystic egg of Astarte, and
consecrated it as a symbol of Christ’s resurrection. A form of prayer was even
appointed to be used in connection with it, Pope Paul V teaching his
superstitious votaries thus to pray at Easter: ”Bless, O Lord, we beseech thee,
this thy creature of eggs, that it may become a wholesome sustenance unto thy
servants, eating it in remembrance of our Lord Jesus Christ, &c” (Scottish
Guardian, April, 1844). Besides the mystic egg, there was also another emblem
of Easter, the goddess queen of Babylon, and that was the Rimmon or
”pomegranate.” With the Rimmon or ”pomegranate” in her hand, she is frequently
represented in ancient medals, and the house of Rimmon, in which the King of
Damascus, the Master of Naaman, the Syrian, worshipped, was in all likelihood a
temple of Astarte, where that goddess with the Rimmon was publicly adored. The
pomegranate is a fruit that is full of seeds; and on that account it has been
supposed that it was employed as an emblem of that vessel in which the germs of
the new creation were preserved, wherewith the world was to be sown anew with
man and with beast, when the desolation of the deluge had passed away. But upon
more searching inquiry, it turns out that the Rimmon or ”pomegranate” had
reference to an entirely different thing. Astarte, or Cybele, was called also
Idaia Mater, and the sacred mount in Phrygia, most famed for the celebration of
her mysteries, was named Mount Ida–that is, in Chaldee, the sacred language of
these mysteries, the Mount of Knowledge. ”Idaia Mater,” then, signifies ”the
Mother of Knowledge”–in other words, our Mother Eve, who first coveted the
”knowledge of good and evil,” and actually purchased it at so dire a price to
herself and to all her children. Astarte, as can be abundantly shown, was
worshipped not only as an incarnation of the Spirit of God, but also of the
mother of mankind. (see note below) When, therefore, the mother of the gods, and the mother of
knowledge, was represented with the fruit of the pomegranate in her extended
hand, inviting those who ascended the sacred mount to initiation in her
mysteries, can there be a doubt what that fruit was intended to signify?
Evidently, it must accord with her assumed character; it must be the fruit of
the ”Tree of Knowledge”–the fruit of that very
”Tree, whose mortal taste.
Brought death into the world, and all our woe.”
The knowledge to which the votaries of the Idaean goddess were admitted,
was precisely of the same kind as that which Eve derived from the eating of the
forbidden fruit, the practical knowledge of all that was morally evil and base.
Yet to Astarte, in this character, men were taught to look at their grand
benefactress, as gaining for them knowledge, and blessings connected with that
knowledge, which otherwise they might in vain have sought from Him, who is the
Father of lights, from whom cometh down every good and perfect gift. Popery
inspires the same feeling in regard to the Romish queen of heaven, and leads
its devotees to view the sin of Eve in much the same light as that in which
Paganism regarded it. In the Canon of the Mass, the most solemn service in the
Romish Missal, the following expression occurs, where the sin of our first
parent is apostrophised: ”Oh blessed fault, which didst procure such a
Redeemer!” The idea contained in these words is purely Pagan. They just amount
to this: ”Thanks be to Eve, to whose sin we are indebted for the glorious
Saviour.” It is true the idea contained in them is found in the same words in
the writings of Augustine; but it is an idea utterly opposed to the spirit of
the Gospel, which only makes sin the more exceeding sinful, from the
consideration that it needed such a ransom to deliver from its awful curse.
Augustine had imbibed many Pagan sentiments, and never got entirely delivered
from them.
As Rome cherishes the same feelings as Paganism did, so it has adopted also
the very same symbols, so far as it has the opportunity. In this country, and
most of the countries of Europe, no pomegranates grow; and yet, even here, the
superstition of the Rimmon must, as far as possible, be kept up. Instead of the
pomegranate, therefore, the orange is employed; and so the Papists of Scotland
join oranges with their eggs at Easter; and so also, when Bishop Gillis of
Edinburgh went through the vain-glorious ceremony of washing the feet of twelve
ragged Irishmen a few years ago at Easter, he concluded by presenting each of
them with two eggs and an orange.
Now, this use of the orange as the representative of the fruit of Eden’s
”dread probationary tree,” be it observed, is no modern invention; it goes back
to the distant times of classic antiquity. The gardens of the Hesperides in the
West, are admitted by all who have studied the subject, just to have been the
counterpart of the paradise of Eden in the East. The description of the sacred
gardens, as situated in the Isles of the Atlantic, over against the coast of
Africa, shows that their legendary site exactly agrees with the Cape Verd or
Canary Isles, or some of that group; and, of course, that the ”golden fruit” on
the sacred tree, so jealously guarded, was none other than the orange. Now, let
the reader mark well: According to the classic Pagan story, there was no
serpent in that garden of delight in the ”islands of the blest,” to TEMPT
mankind to violate their duty to their great benefactor, by eating of the
sacred tree which he had reserved as the test of their allegiance. No; on the
contrary, it was the Serpent, the symbol of the Devil, the Principle of evil,
the Enemy of man, that prohibited them from eating the precious fruit–that
strictly watched it–that would not allow it to be touched. Hercules, one form
of the Pagan Messiah–not the primitive, but the Grecian Hercules–pitying man’s
unhappy state, slew or subdued the serpent, the envious being that grudged
mankind the use of that which was so necessary to make them at once perfectly
happy and wise, and bestowed upon them what otherwise would have been
hopelessly beyond their reach. Here, then, God and the devil are exactly made
to change places. Jehovah, who prohibited man from eating of the tree of
knowledge, is symbolised by the serpent, and held up as an ungenerous and
malignant being, while he who emancipated man from Jehovah’s yoke, and gave him
of the fruit of the forbidden tree–in other words, Satan under the name of
Hercules–is celebrated as the good and gracious Deliverer of the human race.
What a mystery of iniquity is here! Now all this is wrapped up in the sacred
orange of Easter.
Note
The Meaning of the Name
Astarte
That Semiramis, under the name of Astarte, was worshipped not only as an
incarnation of the Spirit of God, but as the mother of mankind, we have very
clear and satisfactory evidence. There is no doubt that ”the Syrian goddess”
was Astarte (LAYARD’S Nineveh and its Remains). Now, the Assyrian goddess, or
Astarte, is identified with Semiramis by Athenagoras (Legatio), and by Lucian
(De Dea Syria). These testimonies in regard to Astarte, or the Syrian goddess,
being, in one aspect, Semiramis, are quite decisive. 1. The name Astarte, as
applied to her, has reference to her as being Rhea or Cybele, the tower-bearing
goddess, the first as Ovid says (Opera), that ”made (towers) in cities”; for we
find from Layard that in the Syrian temple of Hierapolis, ”she [Dea Syria or
Astarte] was represented standing on a lion crowned with towers.” Now, no name
could more exactly picture forth the character of Semiramis, as queen of
Babylon, than the name of ”Ash-tart,” for that just means ”The woman that made
towers.” It is admitted on all hands that the last syllable ”tart” comes from
the Hebrew verb ”Tr.” It has been always taken for granted, however, that ”Tr”
signifies only ”to go round.” But we have evidence that, in nouns derived from
it, it also signifies ”to be round,” ”to surround,” or ”encompass.” In the
masculine, we find ”Tor” used for ”a border or row of jewels round the head”
(see PARKHURST and also GESENIUS). And in the feminine, as given in Hesychius
(Lexicon), we find the meaning much more decisively brought out. Turis is just
the Greek form of Turit, the final t, according to the genius of the Greek
language, being converted into s. Ash-turit, then, which is obviously the same
as the Hebrew ”Ashtoreth,” is just ”The woman that made the encompassing wall.”
Considering how commonly the glory of that achievement, as regards Babylon, was
given to Semiramis, not only by Ovid, but by Justin, Dionysius, Afer, and
others, both the name and mural crown on the head of that goddess were surely
very appropriate. In confirmation of this interpretation of the meaning of the
name Astarte, I may adduce an epithet applied to the Greek Diana, who at
Ephesus bore a turreted crown on her head, and was identified with Semiramis,
which is not a little striking. It is contained in the following extract from
Livy: ”When the news of the battle [near Pydna] reached Amphipolis, the matrons
ran together to the temple of Diana, whom they style Tauropolos, to implore her
aid.” Tauropolos, from Tor, ”a tower,” or ”surrounding fortification,” and Pol,
”to make,” plainly means the ”tower-maker,” or ”maker of surrounding
fortifications”; and P53 to her as the goddess of fortifications, they would
naturally apply when they dreaded an attack upon their city.
Semiramis, being deified as Astarte, came to be raised to the highest
honours; and her change into a dove, as has been already shown, was evidently
intended, when the distinction of sex had been blasphemously attributed to the
Godhead, to identify her, under the name of the Mother of the gods, with that
Divine Spirit, without whose agency no one can be born a child of God, and
whose emblem, in the symbolical language of Scripture, was the Dove, as that of
the Messiah was the Lamb. Since the Spirit of God is the source of all wisdom,
natural as well as spiritual, arts and inventions and skill of every kind being
attributed to Him (Exo 31:3; 35:31), so the Mother of the gods, in whom that
Spirit was feigned to be incarnate, was celebrated as the originator of some of
the useful arts and sciences (DIODORUS SICULUS). Hence, also, the character
attributed to the Grecian Minerva, whose name Athena, as we have seen reason to
conclude, is only a synonym for Beltis, the well known name of the Assyrian
goddess. Athena, the Minerva of Athens, is universally known as the ”goddess of
wisdom,” the inventress of arts and sciences. 2. The name Astarte signifies
also the ”Maker of investigations”; and in this respect was applicable to
Cybele or Semiramis, as symbolised by the Dove. That this is one of the
meanings of the name Astarte may be seen from comparing it with the cognate
names Asterie and Astraea (in Greek Astraia), which are formed by taking the
last member of the compound word in the masculine, instead of the feminine,
Teri, or Tri (the latter being pronounced Trai or Trae), being the same in
sense as Tart. Now, Asterie was the wife of Perseus, the Assyrian (HERODOTUS),
and who was the founder of Mysteries (BRYANT). As Asterie was further
represented as the daughter of Bel, this implies a position similar to that of
Semiramis. Astraea, again, was the goddess of justice, who is identified with
the heavenly virgin Themis, the name Themis signifying ”the perfect one,” who
gave oracles (OVID, Metam.), and who, having lived on earth before the Flood,
forsook it just before that catastrophe came on. Themis and Astraea are
sometimes distinguished and sometimes identified; but both have the same
character as goddesses of justice. The explanation of the discrepancy obviously
is, that the Spirit has sometimes been viewed as incarnate and sometimes not.
When incarnate, Astraea is daughter of Themis. What name could more exactly
agree with the character of a goddess of justice, than Ash-trai-a, ”The maker
of investigations,” and what name could more appropriately shadow forth one of
the characters of that Divine Spirit, who ”searcheth all things, yea, the deep
things of God”? As Astraea, or Themis, was ”Fatidica Themis,” ”Themis the
prophetic,” this also was another characteristic of the Spirit; for whence can
any true oracle, or prophetic inspiration, come, but from the inspiring Spirit
of God? Then, lastly, what can more exactly agree with the Divine statement in
Genesis in regard to the Spirit of God, than the statement of Ovid, that
Astraea was the last of the celestials who remained on earth, and that her
forsaking it was the signal for the downpouring of the destroying deluge? The
announcement of the coming Flood is in Scripture ushered in with these words
(Gen 6:3): ”And the Lord said, My Spirit shall not always strive with man, for
that he also is flesh: yet his days shall be an hundred and twenty years.” All
these 120 years, the Spirit was striving; when they came to an end, the Spirit
strove no longer, forsook the earth, and left the world to its fate. But though
the Spirit of God forsook the earth, it did not forsake the family of righteous
Noah. It entered with the patriarch into the ark; and when that patriarch came
forth from his long imprisonment, it came forth along with him. Thus the Pagans
had an historical foundation for their myth of the dove resting on the symbol
of the ark in the Babylonian waters, and the Syrian goddess, or Astarte–the
same as Astraea–coming forth from it. Semiramis, then, as Astarte, worshipped
as the dove, was regarded as the incarnation of the Spirit of God. 3. As Baal,
Lord of Heaven, had his visible emblem, the sun, so she, as Beltis, Queen of
Heaven, must have hers also–the moon, which in another sense was Asht-tart-e,
”The maker of revolutions”; for there is no doubt that Tart very commonly
signifies ”going round.” But, 4th, the whole system must be dovetailed
together. As the mother of the gods was equally the mother of mankind,
Semiramis, or Astarte, must also be identified with Eve; and the name Rhea,
which, according to the Paschal Chronicle was given to her, sufficiently proves
her identification with Eve. As applied to the common mother of the human race,
the name Astarte is singularly appropriate; for, as she was Idaia mater, ”The
mother of knowledge,” the question is, ”How did she come by that knowledge?” To
this the answer can only be: ”by the fatal investigations she made.” It was a
tremendous experiment she made, when, in opposition to the Divine command, and
in spite of the threatened penalty, she ventured to ”search” into that
forbidden knowledge which her Maker in his goodness had kept from her. Thus she
took the lead in that unhappy course of which the Scripture speaks–”God made
man upright, but they have SOUGHT out many inventions” (Eccl7:29). Now Semiramis,
deified as the Dove, was Astarte in the most gracious and benignant form.
Lucius Ampelius calls her ”the goddess benignant and merciful to me” (bringing
them) ”to a good and happy life.” In reference to this benignity of her
character, both the titles, Aphrodite and Mylitta, are evidently attributed to
her. The first I have elsewhere explained as ”The wrath-subduer,” and the
second is in exact accordance with it. Mylitta, or, as it is in Greek, Mulitta,
signifies ”The Mediatrix.” The Hebrew Melitz, which in Chaldee becomes Melitt,
is evidently used in Job 33:23, in the sense of a Mediator; ”the messenger, the
interpreter” (Melitz), who is ”gracious” to a man, and saith, ”Deliver from
going down to the pit: I have found a ransom,” being really ”The Messenger, the
MEDIATOR.” Parkhurst takes the word in this sense, and derives it from ”Mltz,”
”to be sweet.” Now, the feminine of Melitz is Melitza, from which comes
Melissa, a ”bee” (the sweetener, or producer of sweetness), and Melissa, a
common name of the priestesses of Cybele, and as we may infer of Cybele, as
Astarte, or Queen of Heaven, herself; for, after Porphyry, has stated that ”the
ancients called the priestesses of Demeter, Melissae,” he adds, that they also
”called the Moon Melissa.” We have evidence, further, that goes far to identify
this title as a title of Semiramis. Melissa or Melitta (APPOLODORUS)–for the
name is given in both ways–is said to have been the mother of Phoroneus, the
first that reigned, in whose days the dispersion of mankind occurred, divisions
having come in among them, whereas before, all had been in harmony and spoke
one language (Hyginus). There is no other to whom this can be applied but
Nimrod; and as Nimrod came to be worshipped as Nin, the son of his own wife,
the identification is exact. Melitta, then, the mother of Phoroneus, is the
same as Mylitta, the well known name of the Babylonian Venus; and the name, as
being the feminine of Melitz, the Mediator, consequently signifies the
Mediatrix. Another name also given to the mother of Phoroneus, ”the first that
reigned,” is Archia (LEMPRIERE; SMITH). Now Archia signifies ”Spiritual” (from
”Rkh,” Heb. ”Spirit,” which in Egyptian also is ”Rkh” [BUNSEN]; and in Chaldee,
with the prosthetic a prefixed becomes Arkh). * From the same root also
evidently comes the epithet Architis, as applied to the Venus that wept for
Adonis. Venus Architis is the spiritual Venus. **
* The Hebrew Dem, blood, in Chaldee becomes Adem; and, in like manner, Rkh
becomes Arkh.
** From OUVAROFF we learn that the mother of the third Bacchus was Aura,
and Phaethon is said by Orpheus to have been the son of the ”wide extended air”
(LACTANTIUS). The connection in the sacred language between the wind, the air,
and the spirit, sufficiently accounts for these statements, and shows their
real meaning.
Thus, then, the mother-wife of the first king that reigned was known as
Archia and Melitta, in other words, as the woman in whom the ”Spirit of God”
was incarnate; and thus appeared as the ”Dea Benigna,” ”The Mediatrix” for
sinful mortals. The first form of Astarte, as Eve, brought sin into the world;
the second form before the Flood, was avenging as the goddess of justice. This
form was ”Benignant and Merciful.” Thus, also, Semiramis, or Astarte, as Venus
the goddess of love and beauty, became ”The HOPE of the whole world,” and men
gladly had recourse to the ”mediation” of one so tolerant of sin.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter III
Section III
The Nativity of St. John
The Feast of the Nativity of St. John is set down in the Papal calendar for
the 24th of June, or Midsummer-day. The very same period was equally memorable
in the Babylonian calendar as that of one of its most celebrated festivals. It
was at Midsummer, or the summer solstice, that the month called in Chaldea,
Syria, and Phoenicia by the name of ”Tammuz” began; and on the first day–that
is, on or about the 24th of June–one of the grand original festivals of Tammuz
was celebrated. *
* STANLEY’S Saboean Philosophy. In Egypt the month corresponding to
Tammuz–viz., Epep–began June 25 (WILKINSON)
For different reasons, in different countries, other periods had been
devoted to commemorate the death and reviving of the Babylonian god; but this,
as may be inferred from the name of the month, appears to have been the real
time when his festival was primitively observed in the land where idolatry had
its birth. And so strong was the hold that this festival, with its peculiar
rites, had taken of the minds of men, that even when other days were devoted to
the great events connected with the Babylonian Messiah, as was the case in some
parts of our own land, this sacred season could not be allowed to pass without
the due observance of some, at least, of its peculiar rites. When the Papacy
sent its emissaries over Europe, towards the end of the sixth century, to
gather in the Pagans into its fold, this festival was found in high favour in
many countries. What was to be done with it? Were they to wage war with it? No.
This would have been contrary to the famous advice of Pope Gregory I, that, by
all means they should meet the Pagans half-way, and so bring them into the
Roman Church. The Gregorian policy was carefully observed; and so
Midsummer-day, that had been hallowed by Paganism to the worship of Tammuz, was
incorporated as a sacred Christian festival in the Roman calendar.
But still a question was to be determined, What was to be the name of this
Pagan festival, when it was baptised, and admitted into the ritual of Roman
Christianity? To call it by its old name of Bel or Tammuz, at the early period
when it seems to have been adopted, would have been too bold. To call it by the
name of Christ was difficult, inasmuch as there was nothing special in His
history at that period to commemorate. But the subtlety of the agents of the
Mystery of Iniquity was not to be baffled. If the name of Christ could not be
conveniently tacked to it, what should hinder its being called by the name of
His forerunner, John the Baptist? John the Baptist was born six months before
our Lord. When, therefore, the Pagan festival of the winter solstice had once
been consecrated as the birthday of the Saviour, it followed, as a matter of
course, that if His forerunner was to have a festival at all, his festival must
be at this very season; for between the 24th of June and the 25th of
December–that is, between the summer and the winter solstice–there are just six
months. Now, for the purposes of the Papacy, nothing could be more opportune
than this. One of the many sacred names by which Tammuz or Nimrod was called,
when he reappeared in the Mysteries, after being slain, was Oannes. *
* BEROSUS, BUNSEN’S Egypt. To identify Nimrod with Oannes, mentioned by
Berosus as appearing out of the sea, it will be remembered that Nimrod has been
proved to be Bacchus. Then, for proof that Nimrod or Bacchus, on being overcome
by his enemies, was fabled to have taken refuge in the sea, see chapter 4,
section i. When, therefore, he was represented as reappearing, it was natural
that he should reappear in the very character of Oannes as a Fish-god. Now,
Jerome calls Dagon, the well known Fish-god Piscem moeroris (BRYANT), ”the fish
of sorrow,” which goes far to identify that Fish-god with Bacchus, the
”Lamented one”; and the identification is complete when Hesychius tells us that
some called Bacchus Ichthys, or ”The fish.”
The name of John the Baptist, on the other hand, in the sacred language
adopted by the Roman Church, was Joannes. To make the festival of the 24th of
June, then, suit Christians and Pagans alike, all that was needful was just to
call it the festival of Joannes; and thus the Christians would suppose that
they were honouring John the Baptist, while the Pagans were still worshipping
their old god Oannes, or Tammuz. Thus, the very period at which the great
summer festival of Tammuz was celebrated in ancient Babylon, is at this very
hour observed in the Papal Church as the Feast of the Nativity of St. John. And
the fete of St. John begins exactly as the festal day began in Chaldea. It is
well known that, in the East, the day began in the evening. So, though the 24th
be set down as the nativity, yet it is on St. John’s EVE–that is, on the
evening of the 23rd–that the festivities and solemnities of that period begin.
Now, if we examine the festivities themselves, we shall see how purely
Pagan they are, and how decisively they prove their real descent. The grand
distinguishing solemnities of St. John’s Eve are the Midsummer fires. These are
lighted in France, in Switzerland, in Roman Catholic Ireland, and in some of
the Scottish isles of the West, where Popery still lingers. They are kindled
throughout all the grounds of the adherents of Rome, and flaming brands are
carried about their corn-fields. Thus does Bell, in his Wayside Pictures,
describe the St. John’s fires of Brittany, in France: ”Every fete is marked by
distinct features peculiar to itself. That of St. John is perhaps, on the
whole, the most striking. Throughout the day the poor children go about begging
contributions for lighting the fires of Monsieur St. Jean, and towards evening
one fire is gradually followed by two, three, four; then a thousand gleam out
from the hill-tops, till the whole country glows under the conflagration.
Sometimes the priests light the first fire in the market place; and sometimes
it is lighted by an angel, who is made to descend by a mechanical device from
the top of the church, with a flambeau in her hand, setting the pile in a
blaze, and flying back again. The young people dance with a bewildering
activity about the fires; for there is a superstition among them that, if they
dance round nine fires before midnight, they will be married in the ensuing
year. Seats are placed close to the flaming piles for the dead, whose spirits
are supposed to come there for the melancholy pleasure of listening once more
to their native songs, and contemplating the lively measures of their youth.
Fragments of the torches on those occasions are preserved as spells against
thunder and nervous diseases; and the crown of flowers which surmounted the
principal fire is in such request as to produce tumultuous jealousy for its
possession.” Thus is it in France. Turn now to Ireland. ”On that great festival
of the Irish peasantry, St. John’s Eve,” says Charlotte Elizabeth, describing a
particular festival which she had witnessed, ”it is the custom, at sunset on
that evening, to kindle immense fires throughout the country, built, like our
bonfires, to a great height, the pile being composed of turf, bogwood, and such
other combustible substances as they can gather. The turf yields a steady,
substantial body of fire, the bogwood a most brilliant flame, and the effect of
these great beacons blazing on every hill, sending up volumes of smoke from
every point of the horizon, is very remarkable. Early in the evening the
peasants began to assemble, all habited in their best array, glowing with
health, every countenance full of that sparkling animation and excess of
enjoyment that characterise the enthusiastic people of the land. I had never
seen anything resembling it; and was exceedingly delighted with their handsome,
intelligent, merry faces; the bold bearing of the men, and the playful but
really modest deportment of the maidens; the vivacity of the aged people, and
the wild glee of the children. The fire being kindled, a splendid blaze shot
up; and for a while they stood contemplating it with faces strangely disfigured
by the peculiar light first emitted when the bogwood was thrown on it. After a
short pause, the ground was cleared in front of an old blind piper, the very
beau ideal of energy, drollery, and shrewdness, who, seated on a low chair,
with a well-plenished jug within his reach, screwed his pipes to the liveliest
tunes, and the endless jig began. But something was to follow that puzzled me
not a little. When the fire burned for some hours and got low, an indispensable
part of the ceremony commenced. Every one present of the peasantry passed
through it, and several children were thrown across the sparkling embers; while
a wooden frame of some eight feet long, with a horse’s head fixed to one end,
and a large white sheet thrown over it, concealing the wood and the man on
whose head it was carried, made its appearance. This was greeted with loud
shouts as the ‘white horse’; and having been safely carried, by the skill of
its bearer, several times through the fire with a bold leap, it pursued the
people, who ran screaming in every direction. I asked what the horse was meant
for, and was told it represented ‘all cattle.’ Here,” adds the authoress, ”was
the old Pagan worship of Baal, if not of Moloch too, carried on openly and
universally in the heart of a nominally Christian country, and by millions
professing the Christian name! I was confounded, for I did not then know that
Popery is only a crafty adaptation of Pagan idolatries to its own scheme.”
Such is the festival of St. John’s Eve, as celebrated at this day in France
and in Popish Ireland. Such is the way in which the votaries of Rome pretend to
commemorate the birth of him who came to prepare the way of the Lord, by
turning away His ancient people from all their refuges of lies, and shutting
them up to the necessity of embracing that kingdom of God that consists not in
any mere external thing, but in ”righteousness, and peace, and joy in the Holy
Ghost.” We have seen that the very sight of the rites with which that festival
is celebrated, led the authoress just quoted at once to the conclusion that
what she saw before her was truly a relic of the Pagan worship of Baal. The
history of the festival, and the way in which it is observed, reflect mutual
light upon each other. Before Christianity entered the British Isles, the Pagan
festival of the 24th of June was celebrated among the Druids by blazing fires
in honour of their great divinity, who, as we have already seen, was Baal.
”These Midsummer fires and sacrifices,” says Toland, in his Account of the
Druids, ”were [intended] to obtain a blessing on the fruits of the earth, now
becoming ready for gathering; as those of the first of May, that they might
prosperously grow; and those of the last of October were a thanksgiving for
finishing the harvest.” Again, speaking of the Druidical fires at Midsummer, he
thus proceeds: ”To return to our carn-fires, it was customary for the lord of
the place, or his son, or some other person of distinction, to take the
entrails of the sacrificed animals in his hands, and, walking barefoot over the
coals thrice after the flames had ceased, to carry them straight to the Druid,
who waited in a whole skin at the altar. If the nobleman escaped harmless, it
was reckoned a good omen, welcomed with loud acclamations; but if he received
any hurt, it was deemed unlucky both to the community and himself.” ”Thus, I
have seen,” adds Toland, ”the people running and leaping through the St. John’s
fires in Ireland; and not only proud of passing unsinged, but, as if it were
some kind of lustration, thinking themselves in an especial manner blest by the
ceremony, of whose original, nevertheless, they were wholly ignorant, in their
imperfect imitation of it.” We have seen reason already to conclude that
Phoroneus, ”the first of mortals that reigned”–i.e., Nimrod and the Roman
goddess Feronia–bore a relation to one another. In connection with the firs of
”St. John,” that relation is still further established by what has been handed
down from antiquity in regard to these two divinities; and, at the same time,
the origin of these fires is elucidated. Phoroneus is described in such a way
as shows that he was known as having been connected with the origin of
fire-worship. Thus does Pausanias refer to him: ”Near this image [the image of
Biton] they [the Argives] enkindle a fire, for they do not admit that fire was
given by Prometheus, to men, but ascribe the invention of it to Phoroneus.”
There must have been something tragic about the death of this fire-inventing
Phoroneus, who ”first gathered mankind into communities”; for, after describing
the position of his sepulchre, Pausanias adds: ”Indeed, even at present they
perform funeral obsequies to Phoroneus”; language which shows that his death
must have been celebrated in some such way as that of Bacchus. Then the
character of the worship of Feronia, as coincident with fire-worship, is
evident from the rites practised by the priests at the city lying at the foot
of Mount Socracte, called by her name. ”The priests,” says Bryant, referring
both to Pliny and Strabo as his authorities, ”with their feet naked, walked
over a large quantity of live coals and cinders.” To this same practice we find
Aruns in Virgil referring, when addressing Apollo, the sun-god, who had his
shrine at Soracte, where Feronia was worshipped, and who therefore must have
been the same as Jupiter Anxur, her contemplar divinity, who was regarded as a
”youthful Jupiter,” even as Apollo was often called the ”young Apollo”:
”O patron of Soracte’s high
abodes,
Phoebus, the ruling power among the gods,
Whom first we serve; whole woods of unctuous pine
Are felled for thee, and to thy glory shine.
By thee protected, with our naked soles,
Through flames unsinged we march and tread the kindled coals.” *
* DRYDEN’S Virgil Aeneid. ”The young Apollo,” when ”born to introduce law
and order among the Greeks,” was said to have made his appearance at Delphi
”exactly in the middle of summer.” (MULLER’S Dorians)
Thus the St. John’s fires, over whose cinders old and young are made to
pass, are traced up to ”the first of mortals that reigned.”
It is remarkable, that a festival attended with all the essential rites of
the fire-worship of Baal, is found among Pagan nations, in regions most remote
from one another, about the very period of the month of Tammuz, when the
Babylonian god was anciently celebrated. Among the Turks, the fast of Ramazan,
which, says Hurd, begins on the 12th of June, is attended by an illumination of
burning lamps. *
* HURD’S Rites and Ceremonies. The time here given by Hurd would not in
itself be decisive as a proof of agreement with the period of the original
festival of Tammuz; for a friend who has lived for three years in
Constantinople informs me that, in consequence of the disagreement between the
Turkish and the solar year, the fast of Ramazan ranges in succession through
all the different months in the year. The fact of a yearly illumination in
connection with religious observances, however, is undoubted.
In China where the Dragon-boat festival is celebrated in such a way as
vividly to recall to those who have witnessed it, the weeping for Adonis, the
solemnity begins at Midsummer. In Peru, during the reign of the Incas, the
feast of Raymi, the most magnificent feast of the Peruvians, when the sacred
fire every year used to be kindled anew from the sun, by means of a concave
mirror of polished metal, took place at the very same period. Regularly as
Midsummer came round, there was first, in token of mourning, ”for three days, a
general fast, and no fire was allowed to be lighted in their dwellings,” and
then, on the fourth day, the mourning was turned into joy, when the Inca, and
his court, followed by the whole population of Cuzco, assembled at early dawn
in the great square to greet the rising of the sun. ”Eagerly,” says Prescott,
”they watched the coming of the deity, and no sooner did his first yellow rays
strike the turrets and loftiest buildings of the capital, than a shout of
gratulation broke forth from the assembled multitude, accompanied by songs of
triumph, and the wild melody of barbaric instruments, that swelled louder and
louder as his bright orb, rising above the mountain range towards the east,
shone in full splendour on his votaries.” Could this alternate mourning and
rejoicing, at the very time when the Babylonians mourned and rejoiced over
Tammuz, be accidental? As Tammuz was the Sun-divinity incarnate, it is easy to
see how such mourning and rejoicing should be connected with the worship of the
sun. In Egypt, the festival of the burning lamps, in which many have already
been constrained to see the counterpart of the festival of St. John, was
avowedly connected with the mourning and rejoicing for Osiris. ”At Sais,” says
Herodotus, ”they show the sepulchre of him whom I do not think it right to
mention on this occasion.” This is the invariable way in which the historian
refers to Osiris, into whose mysteries he had been initiated, when giving
accounts of any of the rites of his worship. ”It is in the sacred enclosure
behind the temple of Minerva, and close to the wall of this temple, whose whole
length it occupies. They also meet at Sais, to offer sacrifice during a certain
night, when every one lights, in the open air, a number of lamps around his
house. The lamps consist of small cups filled with salt and oil, having a wick
floating in it which burns all night. This festival is called the festival of
burning lamps. The Egyptians who are unable to attend also observe the
sacrifice, and burn lamps at home, so that not only at Sais, but throughout
Egypt, the same illumination takes place. They assign a sacred reason for the
festival celebrated on this night, and for the respect they have for it.”
Wilkinson, in quoting this passage of Herodotus, expressly identifies this
festival with the lamentation for Osiris, and assures us that ”it was
considered of the greatest consequence to do honour to the deity by the proper
performance of this rite.”
Among the Yezidis, or Devil-worshippers of Modern Chaldea, the same
festival is celebrated at this day, with rites probably almost the same, so far
as circumstances will allow, as thousands of years ago, when in the same
regions the worship of Tammuz was in all its glory. Thus graphically does Mr.
Layard describe a festival of this kind at which he himself had been present:
”As the twilight faded, the Fakirs, or lower orders of priests, dressed in
brown garments of coarse cloth, closely fitting to their bodies, and wearing
black turbans on their heads, issued from the tomb, each bearing a light in one
hand, and a pot of oil, with a bundle of cotton wick in the other. They filled
and trimmed lamps placed in niches in the walls of the courtyard and scattered
over the buildings on the sides of the valley, and even on isolated rocks, and
in the hollow trunks of trees. Innumerable stars appeared to glitter on the
black sides of the mountain and in the dark recesses of the forest. As the
priests made their way through the crowd to perform their task, men and women
passed their right hands through the flame; and after rubbing the right eyebrow
with the part which had been purified by the sacred element, they devoutly
carried it to their lips. Some who bore children in their arms anointed them in
like manner, whilst others held out their hands to be touched by those who,
less fortunate than themselves, could not reach the flame…As night advanced,
those who had assembled–they must now have amounted to nearly five thousand
persons–lighted torches, which they carried with them as they wandered through
the forest. The effect was magical: the varied groups could be faintly
distinguished through the darkness–men hurrying to and fro–women with their
children seated on the house-tops–and crowds gathering round the pedlars, who
exposed their wares for sale in the courtyard. Thousands of lights were
reflected in the fountains and streams, glimmered amongst the foliage of the
trees, and danced in the distance. As I was gazing on this extraordinary scene,
the hum of human voices was suddenly hushed, and a strain, solemn and
melancholy, arose from the valley. It resembled some majestic chant which years
before I had listened to in the cathedral of a distant land. Music so pathetic
and so sweet I never before heard in the East. The voices of men and women were
blended in harmony with the soft notes of many flutes. At measured intervals
the song was broken by the loud clash of cymbals and tambourines; and those who
were within the precincts of the tomb then joined in the melody…The
tambourines, which were struck simultaneously, only interrupted at intervals
the song of the priests. As the time quickened they broke in more frequently.
The chant gradually gave way to a lively melody, which, increasing in measure,
was finally lost in a confusion of sounds. The tambourines were beaten with
extraordinary energy–the flutes poured forth a rapid flood of notes–the voices
were raised to the highest pitch–the men outside joined in the cry–whilst the
women made the rocks resound with the shrilltahlehl.
”The musicians, giving way to the excitement, threw their instruments into
the air, and strained their limbs into every contortion, until they fell
exhausted to the ground. I never heard a more frightful yell than that which
rose in the valley. It was midnight. I gazed with wonder upon the extraordinary
scene around me. Thus were probably celebrated ages ago the mysterious rites of
the Corybantes, when they met in some consecrated grove.” Layard does not state
at what period of the year this festival occurred; but his language leaves
little doubt that he regarded it as a festival of Bacchus; in other words, of
the Babylonian Messiah, whose tragic death, and subsequent restoration to life
and glory, formed the cornerstone of ancient Paganism. The festival was
avowedly held in honour at once of Sheikh Shems, or the Sun, and of the Sheik
Adi, or ”Prince of Eternity,” around whose tomb nevertheless the solemnity took
place, just as the lamp festival in Egypt, in honour of the sun-god Osiris, was
celebrated in the precincts of the tomb of that god at Sais.
Now, the reader cannot fail to have observed that in this Yezidi festival,
men, women, and children were ”PURIFIED” by coming in contact with ”the sacred
element” of fire. In the rites of Zoroaster, the great Chaldean god, fire
occupied precisely the same place. It was laid down as an essential principle
in his system, that ”he who approached to fire would receive a light from
divinity,” (TAYLOR’S Jamblichus) and that ”through divine fire all the stains
produced by generation would be purged away” (PROCLUS, Timaeo). Therefore it
was that ”children were made to pass through the fire to Moloch” (Jer 32:35),
to purge them from original sin, and through this purgation many a helpless
babe became a victim to the bloody divinity. Among the Pagan Romans, this
purifying by passing through the fire was equally observed; ”for,” says Ovid,
enforcing the practice, ”Fire purifies both the shepherd and the sheep.” Among
the Hindoos, from time immemorial, fire has been worshipped for its purifying
efficacy. Thus a worshipper is represented by Colebrooke, according to the
sacred books, as addressing the fire: ”Salutation to thee [O fire!], who dost
seize oblations, to thee who dost shine, to thee who dost scintillate, may thy
auspicious flame burn our foes; mayest thou, the PURIFIER, be auspicious unto
us.” There are some who maintain a ”perpetual fire,” and perform daily
devotions to it, and in ”concluding the sacraments of the gods,” thus every day
present their supplications to it: ”Fire, thou dost expiate a sin against the
gods; may this oblation be efficacious. Thou dost expiate a sin against man;
thou dost expiate a sin against the manes [departed spirits]; thou dost expiate
a sin against my own soul; thou dost expiate repeated sins; thou dost expiate
every sin which I have committed, whether wilfully or unintentionally; may this
oblation be efficacious.” Among the Druids, also, fire was celebrated as the
purifier. Thus, in a Druidic song, we read, ”They celebrated the praise of the
holy ones in the presence of the purifying fire, which was made to ascend on
high” (DAVIES’S Druids, ”Song to the Sun”). If, indeed, a blessing was expected
in Druidical times from lighting the carn-fires, and making either young or
old, either human beings or cattle, pass through the fire, it was simply in
consequence of the purgation from sin that attached to human beings and all
things connected with them, that was believed to be derived from this passing
through the fire. It is evident that this very same belief about the
”purifying” efficacy of fire is held by the Roman Catholics of Ireland, when
they are so zealous to pass both themselves and their children through the
fires of St. John. * Toland testifies that it is as a ”lustration” that these
fires are kindled; and all who have carefully examined the subject must come to
the same conclusion.
* ”I have seen parents,” said the late Lord J. Scott in a letter to me,
”force their children to go through the Baal-fires.”
Now, if Tammuz was, as we have seen,the same as Zoroaster, the god of the
ancient ”fire-worshippers,” and if his festival in Babylon so exactly
synchronised with the feast of the Nativity of St. John, what wonder that that
feast is still celebrated by the blazing ”Baal-fires,” and that it presents so
faithful a copy of what was condemned by Jehovah of old in His ancient people
when they ”made their children pass through the fire to Moloch”? But who that
knows anything of the Gospel would call such a festival as this a Christian
festival? The Popish priests, if they do not openly teach, at least allow their
deluded votaries to believe, as firmly s ever ancient fire worshipper did, that
material fire can purge away the guilt and stain of sin. How that tends to
rivet upon the minds of their benighted vassals one of the most monstrous but
profitable fables of their system, will come to be afterwards considered.
The name Oannes could be known only to the initiated as the name of the
Pagan Messiah; and at first, some measure of circumspection was necessary in
introducing Paganism into the Church. But, as time went on, as the Gospel
became obscured, and the darkness became more intense, the same caution was by
no means so necessary. Accordingly, we find that, in the dark ages, the Pagan
Messiah has not been brought into the Church in a mere clandestine manner. Openly
and avowedly under his well known classic names of Bacchus and Dionysus, has he
been canonised, and set up for the worship of the ”faithful.” Yes, Rome, that
professes to be pre-eminently the Bride of Christ, the only Church in which
salvation is to be found, has had the unblushing effrontery to give the grand
Pagan adversary of the Son of God, UNDER HIS OWN PROPER NAME, a place in her
calendar. The reader has only to turn to the Roman calendar, and he will find
that this is a literal fact; he will find that October the 7th is set apart to
be observed in honour of ”St. Bacchus the Martyr.” Now, no doubt, Bacchus was a
”martyr”; he died a violent death; he lost his life for religion; but the
religion for which he died was the religion of the fire-worshippers; for he was
put to death, as we have seen from Maimonides, for maintaining the worship of
the host of heaven. This patron of the heavenly host, and of fire worship (for
the two went always hand in hand together), has Rome canonised; for that this ”St.
Bacchus the Martyr” was the identical Bacchus of the Pagans, the god of
drunkenness and debauchery, is evident from the time of his festival; for
October the 7th follows soon after the end of the vintage. At the end of the
vintage in autumn, the old Pagan Romans used to celebrate what was called the
”Rustic Festival” of Bacchus; and about that very time does the Papal festival
of ”St Bacchus the Martyr” occur.
As the Chalden god has been admitted into the Roman calendar under the name
of Bacchus, so also is he canonised under his other name of Dionysus. The
Pagans were in the habit of worshipping the same god under different names;
and, accordingly, not content with the festival to Bacchus, under the name by
which he was most commonly known at Rome, the Romans, no doubt to please the
Greeks, celebrated a rustic festival to him, two days afterwards, under the
name of Dionysus Eleuthereus, the name by which he was worshipped in Greece.
That ”rustic” festival was briefly called by the name of Dionysia; or, expressing
its object more fully, the name became ”Festum Dionysi Eleutherei
rusticum”–i.e., the ”rustic festival of Dionysus Eleuthereus.” (BEGG’S Handbook
of Popery) Now, the Papacy in its excess of zeal for saints and saint-worship,
has actually split Dionysus Eleuthereus into two, has made two several saints
out of the double name of one Pagan divinity; and more than that, has made the
innocent epithet ”Rusticum,” which, even among the heathen, had no pretension
to divinity at all, a third; and so it comes to pass that, under date of
October the 9th, we read this entry in the calendar: ”The festival of St.
Dionysius, * and of his companions, St. Eleuther and St. Rustic.”
* Though Dionysus was the proper classic name of the god, yet in
Post-classical, or Low Latin, his name is found Dionysius, just as in the case
of the Romish saint.
Now this Dionysius, whom Popery has so marvellously furnished with two
companions, is the famed St. Denys, the patron saint of Paris; and a comparison
of the history of the Popish saint and the Pagan god will cast no little light
on the subject. St. Denys, on being beheaded and cast into the Seine, so runs
the legend, after floating a space on its waters, to the amazement of the
spectators, took up his head in his hand, and so marched away with it to the
place of burial. In commemoration of so stupendous a miracle, a hymn was duly
chanted for many a century in the Cathedral of St. Denys, at Paris, containing
the following verse:
”The corpse immediately arose;
The trunk bore away the dissevered head,
Guided on its way by a legion of angels.”
(SALVERTE, Des Sciences Occultes
At last, even Papists began to be ashamed of such an absurdity being
celebrated in the name of religion; and in 1789, ”the office of St. Denys” was
abolished. Behold, however, the march of events. The world has for some time
past been progressing back again to the dark ages. The Romish Breviary, which
had been given up in France, has, within the last six years, been reimposed by
Papal authority on the Gallican Church, with all its lying legends, and this
among the rest of them; the Cathedral of St. Denys is again being rebuilt, and
the old worship bids fair to be restored in all its grossness. Now, how could
it ever enter the minds of men to invent so monstrous a fable? The origin of it
is not far to seek. The Church of Rome represented her canonised saints, who
were said to have suffered martyrdom by the sword, as headless images or
statues with the severed head borne in the hand. ”I have seen,” says Eusebe
Salverte, ”in a church of Normandy, St. Clair; St. Mithra, at Arles, in
Switzerland, all the soldiers of the Theban legion represented with their heads
in their hands. St. Valerius is thus figured at Limoges, on the gates of the
cathedral, and other monuments. The grand seal of the canton of Zurich
represents, in the same attitude, St. Felix, St. Regula, and St. Exsuperantius.
There certainly is the origin of the pious fable which is told of these
martyrs, such as St. Denys and many others besides.” This was the immediate
origin of the story of the dead saint rising up and marching away with his head
in his hand. But it turns out that this very mode of representation was
borrowed from Paganism, and borrowed in such a way as identifies the Papal St.
Denys of Paris with the Pagan Dionysus, not only of Rome but of Babylon.
Dionysus or Bacchus, in one of his transformations, was represented as
Capricorn, the ”goat-horned fish”; and there is reason to believe that it was
in this very form that he had the name of Oannes. In this form in India, under
the name ”Souro,” that is evidently ”the seed,” he is said to have done many
marvellous things. (For Oannes and Souro, see note below)
Now, in the Persian Sphere he was not only represented mystically as Capricorn,
but also in the human shape; and then exactly as St. Denys is represented by
the Papacy. The words of the ancient writer who describes this figure in the
Persian Sphere are these: ”Capricorn, the third Decan. The half of the figure
without a head, because its head is in its hand.” Nimrod had his head cut off;
and in commemoration of that fact, which his worshippers so piteously bewailed,
his image in the Sphere was so represetned. That dissevered head, in some of
the versions of his story, was fabled to have done as marvellous things as any
that were done by the lifeless trunk of St. Denys. Bryant has proved, in this
story of Orpheus, that it is just a slighty-coloured variety of the story of Osiris.
*
* BRYANT. The very name Orpheus is just a synonym for Bel, the name of the
great Babylonian god, which, while originally given to Cush, became hereditary
in the line of his deified descendants. Bel signifies ”to mix,” as well as ”to
confound,” and ”Orv” in Hebrew, which in Chaldee becomes Orph, signifies also
”to mix.” But ”Orv,” or ”Orph,” signifies besides ”a willow-tree”; and
therefore, in exact accordance with the mystic system, we find the symbol of
Orpheus among the Greeks to have been a willow-tree. Thus, Pausanias, after
referring to a representation of Actaeon, says, ”If again you look to the lower
parts of the picture, you will see after Patroclus, Orpheus sitting on a hill,
with a harp in his left hand, and in his right hand the leaves of a
willow-tree”; and again, a little furthe on, he says: ”He is represented
leaning on the trunk of this tree.” The willow-leaves in the right hand of
Orpheus, and the willow-tree on which he leans, sufficiently show the meaning
of his name.
As Osiris was cut in pieces in Egypt, so Orpheus was torn in pieces in
Thrace. Now, when the mangled limbs of the latter had been strewn about the
field, his head, floating on the Hebrus, gave proof of the miraculous character
of him that owned it. ”Then,” says Virgil:
”Then, when his head from his
fair shoulders torn,
Washed by the waters, was on Hebrus borne,
Even then his trembling voice invoked his bride,
With his last voice, ‘Eurydice,’ he creid;
‘Eurydice,’ the rockes and river banks replied.”
There is diversity here, but amidst that diversity there is an obvious
unity. In both cases, thehead dissevered from the lifeless body occupies the
foreground of the picture; in both cases, the miracle is in connection with a
river. Now, when the festivals of ”St. Bacchus the Martyr,” and of ”St.
Dionysius and Eleuther,” so remarkably agree with the time when the festivals
of the Pagan god of wine were celbrated, whether by the name of Bacchus, or
Dionysus, or Eleuthereus, and when the mode of representing the modern
Dionysius and the ancient Dionysus are evidently the very same, while the
legends of both so strikiingly harmonise, who can doubt the real character of
those Romish festivals? They are not Christina. They are Pagan; they are
unequivocally Babylonian.
Note
Oannes and Souro
The reason for believing that Oannes, that was said to have been the first
of the fabulous creatures that came up out of the sea and instructed the
Babylonians, was represented as the goat-horned fish, is as follows: First, the
name Oannes, as elsewhere shown, is just the Greek form of He-annesh, or ”The
man,” which is a synonym for the name of our first parent, Adam. Now, Adam can
be proved to be the original of Pan, who was also called Inuus, which is just
another pronunciation of Anosh without the article, which, in our translation
of Genesis 5:7, is made Enos. This name, as universally admitted, is the
generic name for man after the Fall, as weak and diseased. The o in Enos is
what is called the vau, which sometimes is pronounced o, sometimes u, and
sometimes v or w. A legitimate pronunciation of Enos, therefore, is just Enus
or Enws, the same in sound as Inuus, the Ancient Roman name of Pan. The name
Pan itself signifies ”He who turned aside.” As the Hebrew word for
”uprightness” signifies ”walking straight in the way,” so every deviation from
the straight line of duty was Sin; Hata, the word for sin, signifying
generically ”to go aside from the straight line.” Pan, it is admitted, was the
Head of the Satyrs–that is, ”the first of the Hidden Ones,” for Satyr and
Satur, ”the Hidden One,” are evidently just the same word; and Adam was the
first of mankind that hid himself. Pan is said to have loved a nymph called
Pitho, or, as it is given in another form, Pitys (SMITH, ”Pan”); and what is
Pitho or Pitys but just the name of the beguiling woman, who, having been
beguiled herself, acted the part of a beguiler of her husband, and induced him
to take the step, in consequence of which he earned the name Pan, ”The man that
turned aside.” Pitho or Pitys evidently come from Peth or Pet, ”to beguile,”
from which verb also the famous serpent Python derived its name. This
conclusion in regard to the personal identity of Pan and Pitho is greatly
confirmed by the titles given to the wife of Faunus. Faunus, says Smith, is
”merely another name for Pan.” *
* In Chaldee the same letter that is pronounced P is also pronounced Ph,
that is F, therefore Pan is just Faun.
Now, the wife of Faunus was called Oma, Fauna, and Fatua, which names
plainly mean ”The mother that turned aside, being beguiled.” This beguiled
mother is also called indifferently ”the sister, wife, or daughter” of her
husband; and how this agrees with the relations of Eve to Adam, the reader does
not need to be told.
Now, a title of Pan was Capricornus, or ”The goat-horned” (DYMOCK, ”Pan”),
and the origin of this title must be traced to what took place when our first
parent became the Head of the Satyrs–the ”first of the Hidden ones.” He fled to
hide himself; and Berkha, ”a fugitive,” signifies also ”a he-goat.” Hence the
origin of the epithet Capricornus, or ”goat-horned,” as applied to Pan. But as
Capricornus in the sphere is generally represented as the ”Goat-fish,” if Capricornus
represents Pan, or Adam, or Oannes, that shows that it must be Adam, after,
through virtue of the metempsychosis, he had passed through the waters of the
deluge: the goat, as the symbol of Pan, representing Adam, the first father of
mankind, combined with the fish, the symbol of Noah, the second father of the
human race; of both whom Nimrod, as at once Kronos, ”the father of the gods,”
and Souro, ”the seed,” was a new incarnation. Among the idols of Babylon, as
represented in KITTO’S Illust. Commentary, we find a representation of this
very Capricornus, or goat-horned fish; and Berosus tells us that the well known
representations of Pan, of which Capricornus is a modification, were found in
Babylon in the most ancient times. A great deal more of evidence might be
adduced on this subject; but I submit to the reader if the above statement does
not sufficiently account for the origin of the remarkable figure in the Zodiac,
”The goat-horned fish.”
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter III
Section IV
The Feast of the Assumption
If what has been already said shows the carnal policy of Rome at the
expense of truth, the circumstances attending the festival of the Assumption
show the daring wickedness and blasphemy of that Church still more; considering
that the doctrine in regard to this festival, so far as the Papacy is concerned,
was not established in the dark ages, but three centuries after the
Reformation, amid all the boasted light of the nineteenth century. The doctrine
on which the festival of the Assumption is founded, is this: that the Virgin
Mary saw no corruption, that in body and in soul she was carried up to heaven,
and now is invested with all power in heaven and in earth. This doctrine has
been unblushingly avowed in the face of the British public, in a recent
pastoral of the Popish Archbishop of Dublin. This doctrine has now received the
stamp of Papal Infallibility, having been embodied in the late blasphemous
decree that proclaims the ”Immaculate Conception.” Now, it is impossible for
the priests of Rome to find one shred of countenance for such a doctrine in Scripture.
But, in the Babylonian system, the fable was ready made to their hand. There it
was taught that Bacchus went down to hell, rescued his mother from the infernal
powers, and carried her with him in triumph to heaven. *
* APOLLODORUS. We have seen that the great goddess, who was worshipped in
Babylon as ”The Mother,” was in reality the wife of Ninus, the great god, the
prototype of Bacchus. In conformity with this, we find a somewhat similar story
told of Ariadne, the wife of Bacchus, as is fabled of Semele his mother. ”The
garment of Thetis,” says Bryant, ”contained a description of some notable
achievements in the first ages; and a particular account of the apotheosis, of
Ariadne, who is described, whatever may be the meaning of it, as carried by Bacchus
to heaven.” A similar story is told of Alcmene, the mother of the Grecian
Hercules, who was quite distinct, as we have seen, from the primitive Hercules,
and was just one of the forms of Bacchus, for he was a ”great tippler”; and the
”Herculean goblets” are proverbial. (MULLER’S Dorians) Now the mother of this
Hercules is said to have had a resurrection. ”Jupiter” [the father of
Hercules], says Muller, ”raised Alcmene from the dead, and conducted her to the
islands of the blest, as the wife of Rhadamanthus.”
This fable spread wherever the Babylonian system spread; and, accordingly,
at this day, the Chinese celebrate, as they have done from time immemorial, a
festival in honour of a Mother, who by her son was rescued from the power of
death and the grave. The festival of the Assumption in the Romish Church is
held on the 15th of August. The Chinese festival, founded on a similar legend,
and celebrated with lanterns and chandeliers, as shown by Sir J. F. Davis in
his able and graphic account of China, is equally celebrated in the month of
August. Now, when the mother of the Pagan Messiah came to be celebrated as
having been thus ”Assumed,” then it was that, under the name of the ”Dove,” she
was worshipped as the Incarnation of the Spirit of God, with whom she was
identified. As such as she was regarded as the source of all holiness, and the
grand ”PURIFIER,” and, of course, was known herself as the ”Virgin” mother,
”PURE AND UNDEFILED.” (PROCLUS, in TAYLOR’S Note upon Jamblichus) Under the
name of Proserpine (with whom, though the Babylonian goddess was originally
distinct, she was identified), while celebrated, as the mother of the first
Bacchus, and known as ”Pluto’s honoured wife,” she is also addressed, in the
”Orphic Hymns,” as
”Associate of the seasons, essence
bright,
All-ruling VIRGIN, bearing heavenly light.”
Whoever wrote these hymns, the more they are examined the more does it
become evident, when they are compared with the most ancient doctrine of
Classic Greece, that their authors understood and thoroughly adhered to the
genuine theology of Paganism. To the fact that Proserpine was currently
worshipped in Pagan Greece, though well known to be the wife of Pluto, the god
of hell, under the name of ”The Holy Virgin,” we find Pausanias, while describing
the grove Carnasius, thus bearing testimony: ”This grove contains a statue of
Apollo Carneus, of Mercury carrying a ram, and of Proserpine, the daughter of
Ceres, who is called ‘The HOLY VIRGIN.’” The purity of this ”Holy Virgin” did
not consist merely in freedom from actual sin, but she was especially
distinguished for her ”immaculate conception”; for Proclus says, ”She is called
Core, through the purity of her essence, and her UNDEFILED transcendency in her
GENERATIONS.” Do men stand amazed at the recent decree? There is no real reason
to wonder. It was only in following out the Pagan doctrine previously adopted
and interwoven with the whole system of Rome to its logical consequences, that
that decree has been issued, and that the Madonna of Rome has been formally
pronounced at last, in every sense of the term, absolutely ”IMMACULATE.”
Now, after all this, is it possible to doubt that the Madonna of Rome, with
the child in her arms, and the Madonna of Babylon, are one and the same
goddess? It is notorious that the Roman Madonna is worshipped as a goddess,
yea, is the supreme object of worship. Will not, then, the Christians of
Britain revolt at the idea of longer supporting this monstrous Babylonian
Paganism? What Christian constituency could tolerate that its representative
should vote away the money of this Protestant nation for the support of such
blasphemous idolatry? *
* It is to be lamented that Christians in general seem to have so little
sense either of the gravity of the present crisis of the Church and the world,
or of the duty lying upon them as Christ’s witnesses, to testify, and that
practically, against the public sins of the nation. If they would wish to be
stimulated to a more vigorous discharge of duty in this respect, let them read
an excellent and well-timed little work recently issued from the press,
entitled An Original Interpretation of the Apocalypse, where the Apocalyptic
statements in regard to the character, life, death, and resurrection of the Two
Witnesses, are briefly but forcibly handled.
Were not the minds of men judicially blinded, they would tremble at the
very thought of incurring the guilt that this land, by upholding the corruption
and wickedness of Rome, has for years past been contracting. Has not the Word
of God, in the most energetic and awful terms, doomed the New Testament
Babylon? And has it not equally declared, that those who share in Babylon’s
sins, shall share in Babylon’s plagues? (Rev 18:4)
The guilt of idolatry is by many regarded as comparatively slight and insignificant
guilt. But not so does the God of heaven regard it. Which is the commandment of
all the ten that is fenced about with the most solemn and awful sanctions? It
is the second: ”Thou shalt not make unto thee any graven image, or any likeness
of anything that is in the heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or
that is in the water under the earth: thou shalt not bow down thyself to them,
nor serve them: for I the Lord thy God am a jealous God, visiting the iniquity
of the fathers upon the children unto the third and fourth generation of them
that hate me.” These words were spoken by God’s own lips, they were written by
God’s own finger on the tables of stone: not for the instruction of the seed of
Abraham only, but of all the tribes and generations of mankind. No other
commandment has such a threatening attached to it as this. Now, if God has
threatened to visit the SIN OF IDOLATRY ABOVE ALL OTHER SINS, and if we find
the heavy judgments of God pressing upon us as a nation, while this very sin is
crying to heaven against us, ought it not to be a matter of earnest inquiry, if
among all our other national sins, which are both many and great, this may not
form ”the very head and front of our offending”? What though we do not
ourselves bow down to stocks and stones? Yet if we, making a profession the
very opposite, encourage, and foster, and maintain that very idolatry which God
has so fearfully threatened with His wrath, our guilt, instead of being the
less, is only so much the greater, for it is a sin against the light. Now, the
facts are manifest to all men. It is notorious, that in 1845 anti-Christian
idolatry was incorporated in the British Constitution, in a way in which for a
century and a half it had not been incorporated before. It is equally notorious,
that ever since, the nation has been visited with one succession of judgments
after another. Ought we then to regard this coincidence as merely accidental?
Ought we not rather to see in it the fulfilment of the threatening pronounced
by God in the Apocalypse? This is at this moment an intensely practical
subject. If our sin in this matter is not nationally recognised, if it is not
penitently confessed, if it is not put away from us; if, on the contrary, we go
on increasing it, if now for the first time since the Revolution, while so
manifestly dependent on the God of battles for the success of our arms, we
affront Him to His face by sending idol priests into our camp, then, though we
have national fasts, and days of humiliation without number, they cannot be
accepted; they may procure us a temporary respite, but we may be certain that
”the Lord’s anger will not be turned away, His hand will be stretched out
still.” *
* The above paragraph first appeared in the spring of 1855, when the empire
had for months been looking on in amazement at the ”horrible and heart-rending”
disasters in the Crimea, caused simply by the fact, that official men in that
distant region ”could not find their hands,” and when at last a day of
humiliation had been appointed. The reader can judge whether or not the events
that have since occurred have made the above reasoning out of date. The few
years of impunity that have elapsed since the Indian Mutiny, with all its
horrors, was suppressed, show the long-suffering of God. But if that
long-suffering is despised (which it manifestly is, while the guilt is daily
increasing), the ultimate issue must just be so much the more terrible.
See Chapter V, Section IV regarding Cupid (St. Valentine’s Day)
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter IV
Doctrine and Discipline
When Linacer, a distinguished physician, but bigoted Romanist, in the reign
of Henry VIII first fell in with the New Testament, after reading it for a
while, he tossed it from him with impatience and a great oath, exclaiming,
”Either this book is not true, or we are not Christians.” He saw at once that
the system of Rome and the system of the New Testament were directly opposed to
one another; and no one who impartially compares the two systems can come to
any other conclusion. In passing from the Bible to the Breviary, it is like
passing from light to darkness. While the one breathes glory to God in the
highest, peace on earth, and good will to men, the other inculcates all that is
dishonouring to the Most High, and ruinous to the moral and spiritual welfare
of mankind. How came it that such pernicious doctrines and practices were
embraced by the Papacy? Was the Bible so obscure or ambiguous that men
naturally fell into the mistake of supposing that it required them to believe
and practise the very opposite of what it did? No; the doctrine and discipline
of the Papacy were never derived from the Bible. The fact that wherever it has
the power, it lays the reading of the Bible under its ban, and either consigns
that choicest gift of heavenly love to the flames, or shuts it up under lock
and key, proves this of itself. But it can be still more conclusively
established. A glance at the main pillars of the Papal system will sufficiently
prove that its doctrine and discipline, in all essential respects, have been
derived from Babylon. Let the reader now scan the evidence.
Section I
Baptismal Regeneration
It is well known that regeneration by baptism is a fundamental article of
Rome, yea, that it stands at the very threshold of the Roman system. So
important, according to Rome, is baptism for this purpose, that, on the one
hand, it is pronounced of ”absolute necessity for salvation,” * insomuch that
infants dying without it cannot be admitted to glory; and on the other, its
virtues are so great, that it is declared in all cases infallibly to
”regenerate us by a new spiritual birth, making us children of God”:–it is
pronounced to be ”the first door by which we enter into the fold of Jesus
Christ, the first means by which we receive the grace of reconciliation with
God; therefore the merits of His death are by baptism applied to our souls in
so superabundant a manner, as fully to satisfy Divine justice for all demands
against us, whether for original or actual sin.”
* Bishop HAY’S Sincere Christian. There are two exceptions to this
statement; the case of an infidel converted in a heathen land, where it is
impossible to get baptism, and the case of a martyr ”baptised,” as it is
called, ”in his own blood”; but in all other cases, whether of young or old,
the necessity is ”absolute.”
Now, in both respects this doctrine is absolutely anti-Scriptural; in both
it is purely Pagan. It is anti-Scriptural, for the Lord Jesus Christ has
expressly declared that infants, without the slightest respect to baptism or
any external ordinance whatever, are capable of admission into all the glory of
the heavenly world: ”Suffer the little children to come unto Me, and forbid
them not; for of such is the kingdom of heaven.” John the Baptist, while yet in
his mother’s womb was so filled with joy at the advent of the Saviour, that, as
soon as Mary’s salutation sounded in the ears of his own mother, the unborn
babe ”leaped in the womb for joy.” Had that child died at the birth, what could
have excluded it from ”the inheritance of the saints in light” for which it was
so certainly ”made meet”? Yet the Roman Catholic Bishop Hay, in defiance of
very principle of God’s Word, does not hesitate to pen the following:
”Question: What becomes of young children who die without baptism? Answer: If a
young child were put to death for the sake of Christ, this would be to it the
baptism of blood, and carry it to heaven; but except in this case, as such
infants are incapable of having the desire of baptism, with the other necessary
dispositions, if they are not actually baptised with water, THEY CANNOT GO TO
HEAVEN.” As this doctrine never came from the Bible, whence came it? It came
from heathenism. The classic reader cannot fail to remember where, and in what
melancholy plight, Aeneas, when he visited the infernal regions, found the
souls of unhappy infants who had died before receiving, so to speak, ”the rites
of the Church”:
”Before the gates the cries of
babes new-born,
Whom fate had from their tender mothers torn,
Assault his ears.”
These wretched babes, to glorify the virtue and efficacy of the mystic
rites of Paganism, are excluded from the Elysian Fields, the paradise of the
heathen, and have among their nearest associates no better company than that of
guilty suicides:
”The next in place and
punishment are they
Who prodigally threw their souls away,
Fools, who, repining at their wretched state,
And loathing anxious life, suborned their fate.” *
* Virgil, DRYDEN’S translation. Between the infants and the suicides one
other class is interposed, that is, those who on earth have been unjustly
condemned to die. Hope is held out for these, but no hope is held out for the
babes.
So much for the lack of baptism. Then as to its positive efficacy when
obtained, the Papal doctrine is equally anti-Scriptural. There are professed
Protestants who hold the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration; but the Word of
God knows nothing of it. The Scriptural account of baptism is, not that it
communicates the new birth, but that it is the appointed means of signifying
and sealing that new birth where it already exists. In this respect baptism
stands on the very same ground as circumcision. Now, what says God’s Word of
the efficacy of circumcision? This it says, speaking of Abraham: ”He received
the sign of circumcision, a seal of the righteousness of the faith which he
had, yet being uncircumcised” (Rom 4:11). Circumcision was not intended to make
Abraham righteous; he was righteous already before he was circumcised. But it
was intended to declare him righteous, to give him the more abundant evidence
in his own consciousness of his being so. Had Abraham not been righteous before
his circumcision, his circumcision could not have been a seal, could not have
given confirmation to that which did not exist. So with baptism, it is ”a seal
of the righteousness of the faith” which the man ”has before he is baptised”;
for it is said, ”He that believeth, and is baptised, shall be saved” (Mark
16:16). Where faith exists, if it be genuine, it is the evidence of a new
heart, of a regenerated nature; and it is only on the profession of that faith
and regeneration in the case of an adult, that he is admitted to baptism. Even
in the case of infants, who can make no profession of faith or holiness, the
administration of baptism is not for the purpose of regenerating them, or
making them holy, but of declaring them ”holy,” in the sense of being fit for
being consecrated, even in infancy, to the service of Christ, just as the whole
nation of Israel, in consequence of their relation to Abraham, according to the
flesh, were ”holy unto the Lord.” If they were not, in that figurative sense,
”holy,” they would not be fit subjects for baptism, which is the ”seal” of a
holy state. But the Bible pronounces them, in consequence of their descent from
believing parents, to be ”holy,” and that even where only one of the parents is
a believer: ”The unbelieving husband is sanctified by the wife, and the
unbelieving wife is sanctified by the husband; else were your children unclean,
but now they are HOLY” (1 Cor 7:14). It is in consequence of, and solemnly to
declare, that ”holiness,” with all the responsibilities attaching to it, that
they are baptised. That ”holiness,” however, is very different from the
”holiness” of the new nature; and although the very fact of baptism, if
Scripturally viewed and duly improved, is, in the hand of the good Spirit of
God, an important means of making that ”holiness” a glorious reality, in the
highest sense of the term, yet it does not in all cases necessarily secure
their spiritual regeneration. God may, or may not, as He sees fit, give the new
heart, before, or at, or after baptism; but manifest it is, that thousands who
have been duly baptised are still unregenerate, are still in precisely the same
position as Simon Magus, who, after being canonically baptised by Philip, was
declared to be ”in the gall of bitterness and the bond of iniquity” (Acts
7:23). The doctrine of Rome, however, is, that all who are canonically
baptised, however ignorant, however immoral, if they only give implicit faith
to the Church, and surrender their consciences to the priests, are as much
regenerated as ever they can be, and that children coming from the waters of
baptism are entirely purged from the stain of original sin. Hence we find the
Jesuit missionaries in India boasting of making converts by thousands, by the
mere fact of baptising them, without the least previous instruction, in the
most complete ignorance of the truths of Christianity, on their mere profession
of submission to Rome. This doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration also is
essentially Babylonian. Some may perhaps stumble at the idea of regeneration at
all having been known in the Pagan world; but if they only go to India, they
will find at this day, the bigoted Hindoos, who have never opened their ears to
Christian instruction, as familiar with the term and the idea as ourselves. The
Brahmins make it their distinguishing boast that they are ”twice-born” men, and
that, as such, they are sure of eternal happiness. Now, the same was the case
in Babylon, and there the new birth was conferred by baptism. In the Chaldean
mysteries, before any instruction could be received, it was required first of
all, that the person to be initiated submit to baptism in token of blind and
implicit obedience. We find different ancient authors bearing direct testimony
both to the fact of this baptism and the intention of it. ”In certain sacred
rites of the heathen,” says Tertullian, especially referring to the worship of
Isis and Mithra, ”the mode of initiation is by baptism.” The term ”initiation”
clearly shows that it was to the Mysteries of these divinities he referred.
This baptism was by immersion, and seems to have been rather a rough and
formidable process; for we find that he who passed through the purifying
waters, and other necessary penances, ”if he survived, was then admitted to the
knowledge of the Mysteries.” (Elliae Comment. in S. GREG. NAZ.) To face this
ordeal required no little courage on the part of those who were initiated.
There was this grand inducement, however, to submit, that they who were thus baptised
were, as Tertullian assures us, promised, as the consequence, ”REGENERATION,
and the pardon of all their perjuries.” Our own Pagan ancestors, the
worshippers of Odin, are known to have practised baptismal rites, which, taken
in connection with their avowed object in practising them, show that,
originally, at least, they must have believed that the natural guilt and
corruption of their new-born children could be washed away by sprinkling them
with water, or by plunging them, as soon as born, into lakes or rivers. Yea, on
the other side of the Atlantic, in Mexico, the same doctrine of baptismal
regeneration was found in full vigour among the natives, when Cortez and his
warriors landed on their shores. The ceremony of Mexican baptism, which was
beheld with astonishment by the Spanish Roman Catholic missionaries, is thus
strikingly described in Prescott’s Conquest of Mexico: ”When everything
necessary for the baptism had been made ready, all the relations of the child
were assembled, and the midwife, who was the person that performed the rite of
baptism, * was summoned. At early dawn, they met together in the courtyard of
the house. When the sun had risen, the midwife, taking the child in her arms,
called for a little earthen vessel of water, while those about her placed the
ornaments, which had been prepared for baptism, in the midst of the court. To
perform the rite of baptism, she placed herself with her face toward the west,
and immediately began to go through certain ceremonies…After this she sprinkled
water on the head of the infant, saying, ‘O my child, take and receive the
water of the Lord of the world, which is our life, which is given for the
increasing and renewing of our body. It is to wash and to purify. I pray that
these heavenly drops may enter into your body, and dwell there; that they may
destroy and remove from you all the evil and sin which was given you before the
beginning of the world, since all of us are under its power’…She then washed
the body of the child with water, and spoke in this manner: ‘Whencesoever thou
comest, thou that art hurtful to this child, leave him and depart from him, for
he now liveth anew, and is BORN ANEW; now he is purified and cleansed afresh,
and our mother Chalchivitylcue [the goddess of water] bringeth him into the
world.’ Having thus prayed, the midwife took the child in both hands, and,
lifting him towards heaven, said, ‘O Lord, thou seest here thy creature, whom
thou hast sent into the world, this place of sorrow, suffering, and penitence.
Grant him, O Lord, thy gifts and inspiration, for thou art the Great God, and
with thee is the great goddess.’”
* As baptism is absolutely necessary to salvation, Rome also authorises
midwives to administer baptism. In Mexico the midwife seems to have been a
”priestess.”
Here is the opus operatum without mistake. Here is baptismal regeneration
and exorcism too, * as thorough and complete as any Romish priest or lover of
Tractarianism could desire.
* In the Romish ceremony of baptism, the first thing the priest does is to
exorcise the devil out of the child to be baptised in these words, ”Depart from
him, thou unclean spirit, and give place to the Holy Ghost the Comforter.”
(Sincere Christian) In the New Testament there is not the slightest hint of any
such exorcism accompanying Christian Baptism. It is purely Pagan.
Does the reader ask what evidence is there that Mexico had derived this
doctrine from Chaldea? The evidence is decisive. From the researches of
Humboldt we find that the Mexicans celebrated Wodan as the founder of their
race, just as our own ancestors did. The Wodan or Odin of Scandinavia can be
proved to be the Adon of Babylon. (see note below)
The Wodan of Mexico, from the following quotation, will be seen to be the very
same: ”According to the ancient traditions collected by the Bishop Francis
Nunez de la Vega,” says Humboldt, ”the Wodan of the Chiapanese [of Mexico] was
grandson of that illustrious old man, who at the time of the great deluge, in
which the greater part of the human race perished, was saved on a raft,
together with his family. Wodan co-operated in the construction of the great
edifice which had been undertaken by men to reach the skies; the execution of
this rash project was interrupted; each family received from that time a
different language; and the great spirit Teotl ordered Wodan to go and people
the country of Anahuac.” This surely proves to demonstration whence originally
came the Mexican mythology and whence also that doctrine of baptismal
regeneration which the Mexicans held in common with Egyptian and Persian
worshippers of the Chaldean Queen of Heaven. Prestcott, indeed, has cast doubts
on the genuiness of this tradition, as being too exactly coincident with the Scriptural
history to be easily believed. But the distinguished Humboldt, who had
carefully examined the matter, and who had no prejudice to warp him, expresses
his full belief in its correctness; and even from Prestcott’s own interesting
pages, it may be proved in every essential particular, with the single
exception of the name of Wodan, to which he makes no reference. But, happily,
the fact that that name had been borne by some illustrious hero among the
supposed ancestors of the Mexican race, is put beyond all doubt by the singular
circumstance that the Mexicans had one of their days called Wodansday, exactly
as we ourselves have. This, taken in connection with all the circumstances, is
a very striking proof, at once of the unity of the human race, and of the
wide-spread diffusion of the system that began at Babel.
If the question arise, How came it that the Bayblonians themselves adopted
such a doctrine as regeneration by baptism, we have light also on that. In the
Babylonian Mysteries, the commemoration of the flood, of the ark, and the grand
events in the life of Noah, was mingled with the worship of the Queen of Heaven
and her son. Noah, as having lived in two worlds, both before the flood and
after it, was called ”Dipheus,” or ”twice-born,” and was represented as a god
with two heads looking in opposite directions, the one old, and the other
young. Though we have seen that the two-headed Janus in one aspect had
reference to Cush and his son, Nimrod, viewed as one god, in a two-fold
capacity, as the Supreme, and Father of all the deified ”mighty ones,” yet, in
order to gain for him the very authority and respect essential to constitute
him properly the head of the great system of idolatry that the apostates
inaugurated, it was necessary to represent him as in some way or other
identified with the great patriarch, who was the Father of all, and who had so
miraculous a history. Therefore in the legends of Janus, we find mixed up with
other things derived from an entirely different source, statements not only in
regard to his being the ”Father of the world,” but also his being ”the inventor
of ships,” which plainly have been borrowed from the history of Noah; and
therefore, the remarkable way in which he is represented in the figure here
presented to the reader may confidently be concluded to have been primarily
suggested by the history of the great Diluvian patriarch, whose integrity in
his two-fold life is so particularly referred to in the Scripture, where it is
said (Gen 6:9), ”Noah was just a man, and perfect in his generations,” that is,
in his life before the flood, and in his life after it. The whole mythology of
Greece and Rome, as well as Asia, is full of the history and deeds of Noah,
which it is impossible to misunderstand. In India, the god Vishnu, ”the
Preserver,” who is celebrated as having miraculously preserved one righteous
family at the time when the world was drowned, not only has the story of Noah
wrought up with his legend, but is called by his very name. Vishnu is just the
Sanscrit form of the Chaldee ”Ish-nuh,” ”the man Noah,” or the ”Man of rest.”
In the case of Indra, the ”king of the gods,” and god of rain, which is
evidently only another form of the same god, the name is found in the precise
form of Ishnu. Now, the very legend of Vishnu, that pretends to make him no
mere creature, but the supreme and ”eternal god,” shows that this
interpretation of the name is no mere unfounded imagination. Thus is he
celebrated in the ”Matsya Puran”: ”The sun, the wind, the ether, all things
incorporeal, were absorbed into his Divine essence; and the universe being
consumed, the eternal and omnipotent god, having assumed an ancient form,
REPOSED mysteriously upon the surface of that (universal) ocean. But no one is
capable of knowing whether that being was then visible or invisible, or what
the holy name of that person was, or what the cause of his mysterious SLUMBER.
Nor can any one tell how long he thus REPOSED until he conceived the thought of
acting; for no one saw him, no one approached him, and none can penetrate the
mystery of his real essence.” (Col. KENNEDY’S Hindoo Mythology) In conformity
with this ancient legend, Vishnu is still represented as sleeping four months
every year. Now, connect this story with the name of Noah, the man of ”Rest,” and
with his personal history during the period of the flood, when the world was
destroyed, when for forty days and forty nights all was chaos, when neither sun
nor moon nor twinkling star appeared, when sea and sky were mingled, and all
was one wide universal ”ocean,” on the bosom of which the patriarch floated,
when there was no human being to ”approach” him but those who were with him in
the ark, and ”the mystery of his real essence is penetrated” at once, ”the holy
name of that person” is ascertained, and his ”mysterious slumber” fully
accounted for. Now, wherever Noah is celebrated, whether by the name of Saturn,
”the hidden one,”–for that name was applied to him as well as to Nimrod, on
account of his having been ”hidden” in the ark, in the ”day of the Lord’s
fierce anger,”–or, ”Oannes,” or ”Janus,” the ”Man of the Sea,” he is generally
described in such a way as shows that he was looked upon as Diphues,
”twice-born,” or ”regenerate.” The ”twice-born” Brahmins, who are all so many
gods upon earth, by the very title they take to themselves, show that the god
whom they represent, and to whose prerogatives they lay claim, had been known
as the ”twice-born” god. The connection of ”regeneration” with the history of
Noah, comes out with special evidence in the accounts handed down to us of the
Mysteries as celebrated in Egypt. The most learned explorers of Egyptian
antiquities, including Sir Gardiner Wilkinson, admit that the story of Noah was
mixed up with the story of Osiris. The ship of Isis, and the coffin of Osiris,
floating on the waters, point distinctly to that remarkable event. There were
different periods, in different places in Egypt, when the fate of Osiris was
lamented; and at one time there was more special reference to the personal
history of ”the mighty hunter before the Lord,” and at another to the awful
catastrophe through which Noah passed. In the great and solemn festival called
”The Disappearance of Osiris,” it is evident that it is Noah himself who was
then supposed to have been lost. The time when Osiris was ”shut up in his
coffin,” and when that coffin was set afloat on the waters, as stated by
Plutarch, agrees exactly with the period when Noah entered the ark. That time
was ”the 17th day of the month Athyr, when the overflowing of the Nile had
ceased, when the nights were growing long and the days decreasing.” The month
Athyr was the second month after the autumnal equinox, at which time the civil
year of the Jews and the patriarchs began. According to this statement, then,
Osiris was ”shut up in his coffin” on the 17th day of the second month of the
patriarchal year. Compare this with the Scriptural account of Noah’s entering
into the ark, and it will be seen how remarkably they agree (Gen 7:11), ”In the
six hundredth year of Noah’s life, in the SECOND MONTH, in the SEVENTEENTH DAY
of the month, were all the fountains of the great deep broken up; in the
self-same day entered Noah into the ark.” The period, too, that Osiris
(otherwise Adonis) was believed to have been shut up in his coffin, was precisely
the same as Noah was confined in the ark, a whole year. *
* APOLLODORUS. THEOCRITUS, Idyll. Theocritus is speaking of Adonis as
delivered by Venus from Acheron, or the infernal regions, after being there for
a year; but as the scene is laid in Egypt, it is evident that it is Osiris he
refers to, as he was the Adonis of the Egyptians.
Now, the statements of Plutarch demonstrate that, as Osiris at this
festival was looked upon as dead and buried when put into his ark or coffin,
and committed to the deep, so, when at length he came out of it again, that new
state was regarded as a state of ”new life,” or ”REGENERATION.” *
* PLUTARCH, De Iside et Osiride. It was in the character of
Pthah-Sokari-Osiris that he was represented as having been thus ”buried” in the
waters. In his own character, simply as Osiris, he had another burial
altogether.
There seems every reason to believe that by the ark and the flood God
actually gave to the patriarchal saints, and especially to righteous Noah, a
vivid typical representation of the power of the blood and Spirit of Christ, at
once in saving from wrath, and cleansing from all sin–a representation which
was a most cheering ”seal” and confirmation to the faith of those who really
believed. To this Peter seems distinctly to allude, when he says, speaking of
this very event, ”The like figure whereunto baptism doth also now save us.”
Whatever primitive truth the Chaldean priests held, they utterly perverted and
corrupted it. They willingly overlooked the fact, that it was ”the
righteousness of the faith” which Noah ”had before” the flood, that carried him
safely through the avenging waters of that dread catastrophe, and ushered him,
as it were, from the womb of the ark, by a new birth, into a new world, when on
the ark resting on Mount Ararat, he was released from his long confinement.
They led their votaries to believe that, if they only passed through the
baptismal waters, and the penances therewith connected, that of itself would
make them like the second father of mankind, ”Diphueis,” ”twice-born,” or
”regenerate,” would entitle them to all the privileges of ”righteous” Noah, and
give them that ”new birth” (palingenesia) which their consciences told them
they so much needed. The Papacy acts on precisely the same principle; and from
this very source has its doctrine of baptismal regeneration been derived, about
which so much has been written and so many controversies been waged. Let men
contend as they may, this, and this only, will be found to be the real origin
of the anti-Scriptural dogma. *
* There have been considerable speculations about the meaning of the name
Shinar, as applied to the region of which Babylon was the capital. Do not the
facts above stated cast light on it? What so likely a derivation of this name
as to derive it from ”shene,” ”to repeat,” and ”naar,” ”childhood.” The land of
”Shinar,” then, according to this view, is just the land of the ”Regenerator.”
The reader has seen already how faithfully Rome has copied the Pagan
exorcism in connection with baptism. All the other peculiarities attending the
Romish baptism, such as the use of salt, spittle, chrism, or anointing with
oil, and marking the forehead with the sign of the cross, are equally Pagan.
Some of the continental advocates of Rome have admitted that some of these at
least have not been derived from Scripture. Thus Jodocus Tiletanus of Louvaine,
defending the doctrine of ”Unwritten Tradition,” does not hesitate to say, ”We
are not satisfied with that which the apostles or the Gospel do declare, but we
say that, as well before as after, there are divers matters of importance and
weight accepted and received out of a doctrine which is nowhere set forth in
writing. For we do blesse the water wherewith we baptize, and the oyle
wherewith we annoynt; yea, and besides that, him that is christened. And (I
pray you) out of what Scripture have we learned the same? Have we it not of a
secret and unwritten ordinance? And further, what Scripture hath taught us to
grease with oyle? Yea, I pray you, whence cometh it, that we do dype the childe
three times in the water? Doth it not come out of this hidden and undisclosed
doctrine, which our forefathers have received closely without any curiosity,
and do observe it still.” This learned divine of Louvaine, of course, maintains
that ”the hidden and undisclosed doctrine” of which he speaks, was the
”unwritten word” handed down through the channel of infallibility, from the
Apostles of Christ to his own time. But, after what we have already seen, the
reader will probably entertain a different opinion of the source from which the
hidden and undisclosed doctrine must have come. And, indeed, Father Newman
himself admits, in regard to ”holy water” (that is, water impregnated with
”salt,” and consecrated), and many other things that were, as he says, ”the
very instruments and appendages of demon-worship”–that they were all of ”Pagan”
origin, and ”sanctified by adoption into the Church.” What plea, then, what
palliation can he offer, for so extraordinary an adoption? Why, this: that the
Church had ”confidence in the power of Christianity to resist the infection of
evil,” and to transmute them to ”an evangelical use.” What right had the Church
to entertain any such ”confidence”? What fellowship could light have with
darkness? what concord between Christ and Belial? Let the history of the Church
bear testimony to the vanity, yea, impiety of such a hope. Let the progress of
our inquiries shed light upon the same. At the present stage, there is only one
of the concomitant rites of baptism to which I will refer–viz., the use of
”spittle” in that ordinance; and an examination of the very words of the Roman
ritual, in applying it, will prove that its use in baptism must have come from
the Mysteries. The following is the account of its application, as given by
Bishop Hay: ”The priest recites another exorcism, and at the end of it touches
the ear and nostrils of the person to be baptised with a little spittle,
saying, ‘Ephpheta, that is, Be thou opened into an odour of sweetness; but be
thou put to flight, O Devil, for the judgment of God will be at hand.’” Now,
surely the reader will at once ask, what possible, what conceivable connection
can there be between spittle, and an ”odour of sweetness”? If the secret
doctrine of the Chaldean mysteries be set side by side with this statement, it
will be seen that, absurd and nonsensical as this collocation of terms may
appear, it was not at random that ”spittle” and an ”odour of sweetness” were
brought together. We have seen already how thoroughly Paganism was acquainted
with the attributes and work of the promised Messiah, though all that
acquaintance with these grand themes was used for the purpose of corrupting the
minds of mankind, and keeping them in spiritual bondage. We have now to see
that, as they were well aware of the existence of the Holy Spirit, so,
intellectually, they were just as well acquainted with His work, though their
knowledge on that subject was equally debased and degraded. Servius, in his
comments upon Virgil’s First Georgic, after quoting the well known expression,
”Mystica vannus Iacchi,” ”the mystic fan of Bacchus,” says that that ”mystic
fan” symbolised the ”purifying of souls.” Now, how could the fan be a symbol of
the purification of souls? The answer is, The fan is an instrument for
producing ”wind”; * and in Chaldee, as has been already observed, it is one and
the same word which signifies ”wind” and the ”Holy Spirit.”
* There is an evident allusion to the ”mystic fan” of the Babylonian god,
in the doom of Babylon, as pronounced by Jeremiah 51:1, 2: ”Thus saith the
Lord, Behold, I will raise up against Babylon, and against them that dwell in
the midst of them that rise up against me, a destroying wind; and will send
unto Babylon fanners, that shall fan her, and shall empty her land.”
There can be no doubt, that, from the very beginning, the ”wind” was one of
the Divine patriarchal emblems by which the power of the Holy Ghost was
shadowed forth, even as our Lord Jesus Christ said to Nicodemus, ”The wind
bloweth where it listeth, and thou hearest the sound thereof, but canst not
tell whence it cometh or whither it goeth: so is every one that is born of the
Spirit.” Hence, when Bacchus was represented with ”the mystic fan,” that was to
declare him to be the mighty One with whom was ”the residue of the Spirit.”
Hence came the idea of purifying the soul by means of the wind, according to
the description of Virgil, who represents the stain and pollution of sin as
being removed in this very way:
”For this are various penances
enjoined,
And some are hung to bleach upon the WIND.”
Hence the priests of Jupiter (who was originally just another form of
Bacchus), were called Flamens, * — that is Breathers, or bestowers of the Holy
Ghost, by breathing upon their votaries.
* From ”Flo,” ”I breathe.”
Now, in the Mysteries, the ”spittle” was just another symbol for the same
thing. In Egypt, through which the Babylonian system passed to Western Europe,
the name of the ”Pure or Purifying Spirit” was ”Rekh” (BUNSEN). But ”Rekh” also
signified ”spittle” (PARKHURST’S Lexicon); so that to anoint the nose and ears
of the initiated with ”spittle,” according to the mystic system, was held to be
anointing them with the ”Purifying Spirit.” That Rome in adopting the ”spittle”
actually copied from some Chaldean ritual in which ”spittle” was the appointed
emblem of the ”Spirit,” is plain from the account which she gives in her own
recognised formularies of the reason for anointing the ears with it. The reason
for anointing the ears with ”spittle” says Bishop Hay, is because ”by the grace
of baptism, the ears of our soul are opened to hear the Word of God, and the
inspirations of His Holy Spirit.” But what, it may be asked, has the ”spittle”
to do with the ”odour of sweetness”? I answer, The very word ”Rekh,” which
signified the ”Holy Spirit,” and was visibly represented by the ”spittle,” was
intimately connected with ”Rikh,” which signifies a ”fragrant smell,” or ”odour
of sweetness.” Thus, a knowledge of the Mysteries gives sense and a consistent
meaning to the cabalistic saying addressed by the Papal baptiser to the person
about to be baptised, when the ”spittle” is daubed on his nose and ears, which
otherwise would have no meaning at all–”Ephpheta, Be thou opened into an odour
of sweetness.” While this was the primitive truth concealed under the
”spittle,” yet the whole spirit of Paganism was so opposed to the spirituality
of the patriarchal religion, and indeed intended to make it void, and to draw
men utterly away from it, while pretending to do homage to it, that among the
multitude in general the magic use of ”spittle” became the symbol of the
grossest superstition. Theocritus shows with what debasing rites it was mixed
up in Sicily and Greece; and Persius thus holds up to scorn the people of Rome
in his day for their reliance on it to avert the influence of the ”evil eye”:
”Our superstitions with our
life begin;
The obscene old grandam, or the next of kin,
The new-born infant from the cradle takes,
And first of spittle a lustration makes;
Then in the spawl her middle finger dips,
Anoints the temples, forehead, and the lips,
Pretending force of magic to prevent
By virtue of her nasty excrement.”–DRYDEN
While thus far we have seen how the Papal baptism is just a reproduction of
the Chaldean, there is still one other point to be noticed, which makes the
demonstration complete. That point is contained in the following tremendous
curse fulminated against a man who committed the unpardonable offence of
leaving the Church of Rome, and published grave and weighty reasons for so
doing: ”May the Father, who creates man, curse him! May the Son, who suffered
for us, curse him! May the Holy Ghost who suffered for us in baptism, curse
him!” I do not stop to show how absolutely and utterly opposed such a curse as
this is to the whole spirit of the Gospel. But what I call the reader’s
attention to is the astounding statement that ”the Holy Ghost suffered for us
in baptism.” Where in the whole compass of Scripture could warrant be found for
such an assertion as this, or anything that could even suggest it? But let the
reader revert to the Babylonian account of the personality of the Holy Ghost,
and the amount of blasphemy contained in this language will be apparent.
According to the Chaldean doctrine, Semiramis, the wife of Ninus or Nimrod,
when exalted to divinity under the name of the Queen of Heaven, came, as we
have seen, to be worshipped as Juno, the ”Dove”–in other words, the Holy Spirit
incarnate. Now, when her husband, for his blasphemous rebellion against the
majesty of heaven, was cut off, for a season it was a time of tribulation also
for her. The fragments of ancient history that have come down to us give an
account of her trepidation and flight, to save herself from her adversaries. In
the fables of the mythology, this flight was mystically represented in
accordance with what was attributed to her husband. The bards of Greece
represented Bacchus, when overcome by his enemies, as taking refuge in the
depths of the ocean. Thus, Homer:
”In a mad mood, while Bacchus
blindly raged,
Lycurgus drove his trembling bands, confused,
O’er the vast plains of Nusa. They in haste
Threw down their sacred implements, and fled
In fearful dissipation. Bacchus saw
Rout upon rout, and, lost in wild dismay,
Plunged in the deep. Here Thetis in her arms
Received him shuddering at the dire event.”
In Egypt, as we have seen, Osiris, as identified with Noah, was
represented, when overcome by his grand enemy Typhon, or the ”Evil One,” as
passing through the waters. The poets represented Semiramis as sharing in his
distress, and likewise seeking safety in the same way. We have seen already,
that, under the name of Astarte, she was said to have come forth from the
wondrous egg that was found floating on the waters of the Euphrates. Now
Manilius tells, in his Astronomical Poetics, what induced her to take refuge in
these waters. ”Venus plunged into the Babylonia waters,” says he, ”to shun the
fury of the snake-footed Typhon.” When Venus Urania, or Dione, the ”Heavenly
Dove,” plunged in deep distress into these waters of Babylon, be it observed
what, according to the Chaldean doctrine, this amounted to. It was neither more
nor less than saying that the Holy Ghost incarnate in deep tribulation entered
these waters, and that on purpose that these waters might be fit, not only by
the temporary abode of the Messiah in the midst of them, but by the Spirit’s
efficacy thus imparted to them, for giving new life and regeneration, by
baptism, to the worshippers of the Chaldean Madonna. We have evidence that the
purifying virtue of the waters, which in Pagan esteem had such efficacy in
cleansing from guilt and regenerating the soul, was derived in part from the
passing of the Mediatorial god, the sun-god and god of fire, through these
waters during his humiliation and sojourn in the midst of them; and that the
Papacy at this day retains the very custom which had sprung up from that
persuasion. So far as heathenism is concerned, the following extracts from
Potter and Athenaeus speak distinctly enough: ”Every person,” says the former,
”who came to the solemn sacrifices [of the Greeks] was purified by water. To
which end, at the entrance of the temples there was commonly placed a vessel
full of holy water.” How did this water get its holiness? This water ”was
consecrated,” says Athenaeus, ”by putting into it a BURNING TORCH taken from
the altar.” The burning torch was the express symbol of the god of fire; and by
the light of this torch, so indispensable for consecrating ”the holy water,” we
may easily see whence came one great part of the purifying virtue of ”the water
of the loud resounding sea,” which was held to be so efficacious in purging
away the guilt and stain of sin, *–even from the sun-god having taken refuge in
its waters.
* ”All human ills,” says Euripides, in a well known passage, ”are washed
away by the sea.”
Now this very same method is used in the Romish Church for consecrating the
water for baptism. The unsuspicious testimony of Bishop Hay leaves no doubt on
this point: ”It” [the water kept in the baptismal font], says he, ”is blessed
on the eve of Pentecost, because it is the Holy Ghost who gives to the waters
of baptism the power and efficacy of sanctifying our souls, and because the
baptism of Christ is ‘with the Holy Ghost, and with fire’ (Matt 3:11). In blessing
the waters a LIGHTED TORCH is put into the font.” Here, then, it is manifest
that the baptismal regenerating water of Rome is consecrated just as the
regenerating and purifying water of the Pagans was. Of what avail is it for
Bishop Hay to say, with the view of sanctifying superstition and ”making
apostacy plausible,” that this is done ”to represent the fire of Divine love,
which is communicated to the soul by baptism, and the light of good example,
which all who are baptised ought to give.” This is the fair face put on the
matter; but the fact still remains that while the Romish doctrine in regard to
baptism is purely Pagan, in the ceremonies connected with the Papal baptism one
of the essential rites of the ancient fire-worship is still practised at this
day, just as it was practised by the worshippers of Bacchus, the Babylonian
Messiah. As Rome keeps up the remembrance of the fire-god passing through the
waters and giving virtue to them, so when it speaks of the ”Holy Ghost
suffering for us in baptism,” it in like manner commemorates the part which
Paganism assigned to the Babylonian goddess when she plunged into the waters.
The sorrows of Nimrod, or Bacchus, when in the waters were meritorious sorrows.
The sorrows of his wife, in whom the Holy Ghost miraculously dwelt, were the
same. The sorrows of the Madonna, then, when in these waters, fleeing from
Typhon’s rage, were the birth-throes by which children were born to God. And
thus, even in the Far West, Chalchivitlycue, the Mexican ”goddess of the waters,”
and ”mother” of all the regenerate, was represented as purging the new-born
infant from original sin, and ”bringing it anew into the world.” Now, the Holy
Ghost was idolatrously worshipped in Babylon under the form of a ”Dove.” Under
the same form, and with equal idolatry, the Holy Ghost is worshipped in Rome.
When, therefore, we read, in opposition to every Scripture principle, that ”the
Holy Ghost suffered for us in baptism,” surely it must now be manifest who is
that Holy Ghost that is really intended. It is no other than Semiramis, the
very incarnation of lust and all uncleanness.
Note
The Identity of the
Scandinavian Odin and Adon of Babylon
1. Nimrod, or Adon, or Adonis, of Babylon, was the great war-god. Odin, as
is well known, was the same. 2 Nimrod, in the character of Bacchus, was
regarded as the god of wine; Odin is represented as taking no food but wine.
For thus we read in the Edda: ”As to himself he [Odin] stands in no need of
food; wine is to him instead of every other aliment, according to what is said
in these verses: The illustrious father of armies, with his own hand, fattens
his two wolves; but the victorious Odin takes no other nourishment to himself
than what arises from the unintermitted quaffing of wine” (MALLET, 20th Fable).
3. The name of one of Odin’s sons indicates the meaning of Odin’s own name.
Balder, for whose death such lamentations were made, seems evidently just the
Chaldee form of Baal-zer, ”The seed of Baal”; for the Hebrew z, as is well
known, frequently, in the later Chaldee, becomes d. Now, Baal and Adon both
alike signify ”Lord”; and, therefore, if Balder be admitted to be the seed or
son of Baal, that is as much as to say that he is the son of Adon; and,
consequently, Adon and Odin must be the same. This, of course, puts Odin a step
back; makes his son to be the object of lamentation and not himself; but the
same was the case also in Egypt; for there Horus the child was sometimes represented
as torn in pieces, as Osiris had been. Clemens Alexandrinus says (Cohortatio),
”they 03 lament an infant torn in pieces by the Titans.” The lamentations for
Balder are very plainly the counterpart of the lamentations for Adonis; and, of
course, if Balder was, as the lamentations prove him to have been, the
favourite form of the Scandinavian Messiah, he was Adon, or ”Lord,” as well as
his father. 4. Then, lastly, the name of the other son of Odin, the mighty and
warlike Thor, strengthens all the foregoing conclusions. Ninyas, the son of
Ninus or Nimrod, on his father’s death, when idolatry rose again, was, of
course, from the nature of the mystic system, set up as Adon, ”the Lord.” Now,
as Odin had a son called Thor, so the second Assyrian Adon had a son called
Thouros. The name Thouros seems just to be another form of Zoro, or Doro, ”the
seed”; for Photius tells us that among the Greeks Thoros signified ”Seed.” The
D is often pronounced as Th,–Adon, in the pointed Hebrew, being pronounced
Athon.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter IV
Section II
Justification by Works
The worshippers of Nimrod and his queen were looked upon as regenerated and
purged from sin by baptism, which baptism received its virtue from the
sufferings of these two great Babylonian divinities. But yet in regard to
justification, the Chaldean doctrine was that it was by works and merits of men
themselves that they must be justified and accepted of God. The following
remarks of Christie in his observations appended to Ouvaroff’s Eleusinian
Mysteries, show that such was the case: ”Mr. Ouvaroff has suggested that
one of the great objects of the Mysteries was the presenting to fallen man the
means of his return to God. These means were the cathartic virtues–(i.e., the
virtues by which sin is removed), by the exercise of which a corporeal life was
to be vanquished. Accordingly the Mysteries were termed Teletae, ‘perfections,’
because they were supposed to induce a perfectness of life. Those who were
purified by them were styled Teloumenoi and Tetelesmenoi, that is, ‘brought…to
perfection,’ which depended on the exertions of the individual.” In the Metamorphosis of
Apuleius, who was himself initiated in the mysteries of Isis, we find this same
doctrine of human merits distinctly set forth. Thus the goddess is herself
represented as addressing the hero of his tale: ”If you shall be found to
DESERVE the protection of my divinity by sedulous obedience, religious
devotion and inviolable chastity, you shall be sensible
that it is possible for me, and me alone, to extend your life beyond the limits
that have been appointed to it by your destiny.” When the same individual has
received a proof of the supposed favour of the divinity, thus do the onlookers
express their congratulations: ”Happy, by Hercules! and thrice blessed he to
have MERITED, by the innocence and probity of his past life, such special
patronage of heaven.” Thus was it in life. At death, also, the grand passport
into the unseen world was still through the merits of men themselves, although
the name of Osiris was, as we shall by-and-by see, given to those who departed
in the faith. ”When the bodies of persons of distinction” [in Egypt], says
Wilkinson, quoting Porphyry, ”were embalmed, they took out the intestines and
put them into a vessel, over which (after some other rites had been performed
for the dead) one of the embalmers pronounced an invocation to the sun in
behalf of the deceased.” The formula, according to Euphantus, who translated it
from the original into Greek, was as follows: ”O thou Sun, our sovereign lord!
and all ye Deities who have given life to man, receive me, and grant me an
abode with the eternal gods. During the whole course of my life I have
scrupulously worshipped the gods my father taught me to adore; I have ever
honoured my parents, who begat this body; I have killed no one; I have not
defrauded any, nor have I done any injury to any man.” Thus the merits, the
obedience, or the innocence of man was the grand plea. The doctrine of Rome in
regard to the vital article of a sinner’s justification is the very same. Of
course this of itself would prove little in regard to the affiliation of the
two systems, the Babylonian and the Roman; for, from the days of Cain downward,
the doctrine of human merit and of self-justification has everywhere been
indigenous in the heart of depraved humanity. But, what is worthy of notice in
regard to this subject is, that in the two systems, it was symbolised in
precisely the same way. In the Papal legends it is taught that St. Michael the
Archangel has committed to him the balance of God’s justice, and that in the
two opposite scales of that balance the merits and the demerits of the departed
are put that they may be fairly weighed, the one over against the other, and
that as the scale turns to the favourable or unfavourable side they may be
justified or condemned as the case may be. Now, the Chaldean doctrine of
justification, as we get light on it from the monuments of Egypt, is symbolised
in precisely the same way, except that in the land of Ham the scales of justice
were committed to the charge of the god Anubis instead of St. Michael the
Archangel, and that the good deeds and the bad seem to have been weighed
separately, and a distinct record made of each, so that when both were summed
up and the balance struck, judgment was pronounced accordingly. Wilkinson
states that Anubis and his scales are often represented; and that in some cases
there is some difference in the details. But it is evident from his
statements, that theprinciple in all is the same. The following is
the account which he gives of one of these judgment scenes, previous to the
admission of the dead to Paradise: ”Cerberus is present as the guardian of the
gates, near which the scales of justice are erected; and Anubis, the director
of the weight, having placed a vase representing the good actions of the
deceased in one scale, and the figure or emblem of truth in the other, proceeds
to ascertain his claims for admission. If, on being weighed, he is found
wanting, he is rejected, and Osiris, the judge of the dead, inclining his
sceptre in token of condemnation, pronounces judgment upon him, and condemns
his soul to return to earth under the form of a pig or some unclean animal…But
if, when the SUM of his deeds are recorded by Thoth [who stands by to mark the
results of the different weighings of Anubis], his virtues so far PREDOMINATE
as to entitle him to admission to the mansions of the blessed, Horus, taking in
his hand the tablet of Thoth, introduces him to the presence of Osiris, who, in
his palace, attended by Isis and Nepthys, sits on his throne in the midst of
the waters, from which rises the lotus, bearing upon its expanded flowers the
four Genii of Amenti.” The same mode of symbolising the justification by works
had evidently been in use in Babylon itself; and, therefore, there was great
force in the Divine handwriting on the wall, when the doom of Belshazzar went
forth: ”Tekel,” ”Thou art weighed in the balances, and art found wanting.” In
the Parsee system, which has largely borrowed from Chaldea, the principle of
weighing the good deeds over against the bad deeds is fully developed. ”For
three days after dissolution,” says Vaux, in his Nineveh and Persepolis,
giving an account of Parsee doctrines in regard to the dead, ”the soul is
supposed to flit round its tenement of clay, in hopes of reunion; on the
fourth, the Angel Seroch appears, and conducts it to the bridge of Chinevad. On
this structure, which they assert connects heaven and earth, sits the Angel of
Justice, to weigh the actions of mortals; when the good deeds prevail, the soul
is met on the bridge by a dazzling figure, which says, ‘I am thy good angel, I
was pure originally, but thy good deeds have rendered me purer’; and passing
his hand over the neck of the blessed soul, leads it to Paradise. If iniquities
preponderate, the soul is meet by a hideous spectre, which howls out, ‘I am thy
evil genius; I was impure from the first, but thy misdeeds have made me fouler;
through thee we shall remain miserable until the resurrection’; the sinning
soul is then dragged away to hell, where Ahriman sits to taunt it with its
crimes.” Such is the doctrine of Parseeism. The same is the case in China,
where Bishop Hurd, giving an account of the Chinese descriptions of the
infernal regions, and of the figures that refer to them, says, ”One of them
always represents a sinner in a pair of scales, with his iniquities in the one,
and his good works in another.” ”We meet with several such representations,” he
adds, ”in the Grecian mythology.” Thus does Sir J. F. Davis describe the
operation of the principle in China: ”In a work of some note on morals,
called Merits and Demerits Examined, a man is directed to keep a
debtor and creditor account with himself of the acts of each day, and at the
end of the year to wind it up. If the balance is in his favour, it serves as
the foundation of a stock of merits for the ensuing year: and if against him,
it must be liquidated by future good deeds. Various lists and comparative
tables are given of both good and bad actions in the several relations of life;
and benevolence is strongly inculcated in regard first to man, and, secondly,
to the brute creation. To cause another’s death is reckoned at one hundred on
the side of demerit; while a single act of charitable relief counts as one on
the other side…To save a person’s life ranks in the above work as an exact
set-off to the opposite act of taking it away; and it is said that this deed of
merit will prolong a person’s life twelve years.”
While such a mode of justification is, on the one hand, in the very nature
of the case, utterly demoralising, there never could by means of it, on the
other, be in the bosom of any man whose conscience is aroused, any solid
feeling of comfort, or assurance as to his prospects in the eternal world. Who
could ever tell, however good he might suppose himself to be, whether the ”sumof
his good actions” would or would not counterbalance the amount of sins and
transgressions that his conscience might charge against him. How very different
the Scriptural, the god-like plan of ”justification by faith,” and ”faith
alone, without the deeds of the law,” absolutely irrespective of human merits,
simply and solely through the ”righteousness of Christ, that is unto all and
upon all them that believe,” that delivers at once and for ever ”from all condemnation,”
those who accept of the offered Saviour, and by faith are vitally united to
Him. It is not the will of our Father in heaven, that His children in this
world should be ever in doubt and darkness as to the vital point of their
eternal salvation. Even a genuine saint, no doubt, may for a season, if need
be, be in heaviness through manifold temptations, but such is not the natural,
the normal state of a healthful Christian, of one who knows the fulness and the
freeness of the blessings of the Gospel of peace. God has laid the most solid
foundation for all His people to say, with John, ”We have KNOWN and believed
the love which God hath to us” (1 John 4:16); or with Paul, ”I am PERSUADED
that neither death, nor life, nor angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor
things present, nor things to come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other
creature, shall be able to separate us from the love of God, which is in Christ
Jesus” (Rom 8:38,39). But this no man can every say, who ”goes about to
establish his own righteousness” (Rom 10:3), who seeks, in any shape, to be
justified by works. Such assurance, such comfort, can come only from a simple
and believing reliance on the free, unmerited grace of God, given in
and along with Christ, the unspeakable gift of the Father’s love. It
was this that made Luther’s spirit to be, as he himself declared, ”as free as a
flower of the field,” when, single and alone, he went up to the Diet of Worms,
to confront all the prelates and potentates there convened to condemn the doctrine
which he held. It was this that in every age made the martyrs go with such
sublime heroism not only to prison but to death. It is this that emancipates
the soul, restores the true dignity of humanity, and cuts up by the roots all
the imposing pretensions of priestcraft. It is this only that can produce a
life of loving, filial, hearty obedience to the law and commandments of God;
and that, when nature fails, and when the king of terrors is at hand, can
enable poor, guilty sons of men, with the deepest sense of unworthiness, yet to
say, ”O death, where is thy sting? O grave, where is thy victory? Thanks be
unto God, who giveth us the victory through Jesus Christ our Lord” (1 Cor
15:55,57).
Now, to all such confidence in God, such assurance of salvation, spiritual
despotism in every age, both Pagan and Papal, has ever shown itself unfriendly.
Its grand object has always been to keep the souls of its votaries away from
direct and immediate intercourse with a living and merciful Saviour, and
consequently from assurance of His favour, to inspire a sense of the necessity
of human mediation, and so to establish itself on the ruins of the hopes and
the happiness of the world. Considering the pretensions which the Papacy makes
to absolute infallibility, and the supernatural powers which it attributes to
the functions of its priests, in regard to regeneration and the forgiveness of
sins, it might have been supposed, as a matter of course, that all its
adherents would have been encouraged to rejoice in the continual assurance of
their personal salvation. But the very contrary is the fact. After all its
boastings and high pretensions, perpetual doubt on the subject of a man’s
salvation, to his life’s end, is inculcated as a duty; it being peremptorily
decreed as an article of faith by the Council of Trent, ”That no man can
know with infallible assurance of faith that he HAS OBTAINED the grace of God.”
This very decree of Rome, while directly opposed to the Word of God, stamps its
own lofty claims with the brand of imposture; for if no man who has been
regenerated by its baptism, and who has received its absolution from sin, can
yet have any certain assurance after all that ”the grace of
God” has beenconferred upon him, what can be the worth of its opus
operatum? Yet, in seeking to keep its devotees in continual doubt and
uncertainty as to their final state, it is ”wise after its generation.” In the
Pagan system, it was the priest alone who could at all pretend to anticipate
the operation of the scales of Anubis; and, in the confessional, there was from
time to time, after a sort, a mimic rehearsal of the dread weighing that was to
take place at last in the judgment scene before the tribunal of Osiris. There
the priest sat in judgment on the good deeds and bad deeds of his penitents;
and, as his power and influence were founded to a large extent on the mere
principle of slavish dread, he took care that the scale should generally turn
in the wrong direction, that they might be more subservient to his will in
casting in a due amount of good works into the opposite scale. As he was the
grand judge of what these works should be, it was his interest to appoint what
should be most for the selfish aggrandisement of himself, or the glory of his
order; and yet so to weigh and counterweigh merits and demerits, that there
should always be left a large balance to be settled, not only by the man
himself, but by his heirs. If any man had been allowed to believe himself
beforehand absolutely sure of glory, the priests might have been in danger of
being robbed of their dues after death–an issue by all means to be guarded
against. Now, the priests of Rome have in every respect copied after the
priests of Anubis, the god of the scales. In the confessional, when they have
an object to gain, they make the sins and transgressions good weight; and then,
when they have a man of influence, or power, or wealth to deal with, they will
not give him the slightest hope till round sums of money, or the founding of an
abbey, or some other object on which they have set their heart, be cast into
the other scale. In the famous letter of Pere La Chaise, the confessor of Louis
XIV of France, giving an account of the method which he adopted to gain the
consent of that licentious monarch to the revocation of the Edict of Nantes, by
which such cruelties were inflicted on his innocent Huguenot subjects, we see
how the fear of the scales of St. Michael operated in bringing about the
desired result: ”Many a time since,” says the accomplished Jesuit, referring to
an atrocious sin of which the king had been guilty, ”many a time since, when I
have had him at confession, I have shook hell about his ears, and made
him sigh, fear and tremble, before I would give him absolution. By this I
saw that he had still an inclination to me, and was willing to be under my
government; so I set the baseness of the action before him by telling the whole
story, and how wicked it was, and that it could not be forgiven till he had
done some good action to BALANCE that, and expiate the crime. Whereupon he at
last asked me what he must do. I told him that he must root out all heretics
from his kingdom.” This was the ”good action” to be cast into the scale of
St. Michael the Archangel, to ”BALANCE” his crime. The king, wicked as he
was–sore against his will-consented; the ”good action” was cast in, the
”heretics” were extirpated; and the king was absolved. But yet the absolution
was not such but that, when he went the way of all the earth, there was still
much to be cast in before the scales could be fairly adjusted. Thus Paganism
and Popery alike ”make merchandise of the souls of men” (Rev 18:13). Thus the
one with the scales of Anubis, the other with the scales of St. Michael,
exactly answer to the Divine description of Ephraim in his apostacy: ”Ephraim
is a merchant, the balances of deceit are in his hand” (Hosea 12:7). The Anubis
of the Egyptians was precisely the same as the Mercury of the Greeks–the ”god
of thieves.” St. Michael, in the hands of Rome, answers exactly to the same
character. By means of him and his scales, and their doctrine of human merits,
they have made what they call the house of God to be nothing else than a ”den
of thieves.” To rob men of their money is bad, but infinitely worse to cheat
them also of their souls.
Into the scales of Anubis, the ancient Pagans, by way of securing their
justification, were required to put not merely good deeds, properly so called,
but deeds of austerity and self-mortification inflicted on their own persons,
for averting the wrath of the gods. The scales of St. Michael inflexibly
required to be balanced in the very same way. The priests of Rome teach that
when sin is forgiven, the punishment is not thereby fully
taken away. However perfect may be the pardon that God, through the priests,
may bestow, yet punishment, greater or less, still remains behind, which men
must endure, and that to ”satisfy the justice of God.” Again and again
has it been shown that man cannot do anything to satisfy the justice of God,
that to that justice he is hopelessly indebted, that he ”has” absolutely
”nothing to pay”; and more than that, that there is no need that he should
attempt to pay one farthing; for that, in behalf of all who believe, Christ has
finished transgression, made an end of sin, and made all the
satisfaction to the broken law that that law could possibly demand. Still Rome
insists that every man must be punished for his own sins, and that God cannot
be satisfied * without groans and sighs, lacerations of the flesh,
tortures of the body, and penances without number, on the part of the offender,
however broken in heart, however contrite that offender may be.
* Bishop HAY’S Sincere Christian. The words of Bishop Hay are:
”But He absolutely demands that, by penitential works, we PUNISH ourselves for
our shocking ingratitude, and satisfy the Divine justice for the abuse of His
mercy.” The established modes of ”punishment,” as is well known, are just such
as are described in the text.
Now, looking simply at the Scripture, this perverse demand for self-torture
on the part of those for whom Christ has made a complete and perfect atonement,
might seem exceedingly strange; but, looking at the real character of the god
whom the Papacy has set up for the worship of its deluded devotees, there is
nothing in the least strange about it. That god is Moloch, the god of barbarity
and blood. Moloch signifies ”king”; and Nimrod was the first after the flood
that violated the patriarchal system, and set up as ”king” over his fellows. At
first he was worshipped as the ”revealer of goodness and truth,” but by-and-by
his worship was made to correspond with his dark and forbidding countenance and
complexion. The name Moloch originally suggested nothing of cruelty or terror;
but now the well known rites associated with that name have made it for ages a
synonym for all that is most revolting to the heart of humanity, and amply
justify the description of Milton (Paradise Lost):
”First Moloch, horrid king,
besmeared with blood
Of human sacrifice, and parents’ tears,
Though, for the noise of drums and timbrels loud,
Their children’s cries unheard, that passed through fire
To his grim idol.”
In almost every land the bloody worship prevailed; ”horrid cruelty,” hand
in hand with abject superstition, filled not only ”the dark places of the
earth,” but also regions that boasted of their enlightenment. Greece, Rome,
Egypt, Phoenicia, Assyria, and our own land under the savage Druids, at one
period or other in their history, worshipped the same god and in the same way.
Human victims were his most acceptable offerings; human groans and wailings
were the sweetest music in his ears; human tortures were believed to delight
his heart. His image bore, as the symbol of ”majesty,” a whip, and
with whips his worshippers, at some of his festivals, were required unmercifully
to scourge themselves. ”After the ceremonies of sacrifice,” says Herodotus,
speaking of the feast of Isis at Busiris, ”the whole assembly, to the amount of
many thousands, scourge themselves; but in whose honour they do this I am not
at liberty to disclose.” This reserve Herodotus generally uses, out of respect
to his oath as an initiated man; but subsequent researches leave no doubt as to
the god ”in whose honour” the scourgings took place. In Pagan Rome the
worshippers of Isis observed the same practice in honour of Osiris. In Greece,
Apollo, the Delian god, who was identical with Osiris, * was propitiated with
similar penances by the sailors who visited his shrine, as we learn from the
following lines of Callimachus in his hymn to Delos:
”Soon as they reach thy
soundings, down at once
They drop slack sails and all the naval gear.
The ship is moored; nor do the crew presume
To quit thy sacred limits, till they’ve passed
A fearful penance; with the galling whip
Lashed thrice around thine altar.”
* We have seen already, that the Egyptian Horus was just a new incarnation
of Osiris or Nimrod. Now, Herodotus calls Horus by the name of Apollo. Diodorus
Siculus, also, says that ”Horus, the son of Isis, is interpreted to be Apollo.”
Wilkinson seems, on one occasion, to call this identity of Horus and Apollo in
question; but he elsewhere admits that the story of Apollo’s ”combat with the
serpent Pytho is evidently derived from the Egyptian mythology,” where the
allusion is to the representation of Horus piercing the snake with a spear.
From divers considerations, it may be shown that this conclusion is correct: 1.
Horus, or Osiris, was the sun-god, so was Apollo. 2. Osiris, whom Horus
represented, was the great Revealer; the Pythian Apollo was the god of oracles.
3. Osiris, in the character of Horus, was born when his mother was said to be
persecuted by the malice of her enemies. Latona, the mother of Apollo, was a
fugitive for a similar reason when Apollo was born. 4. Horus, according to one
version of the myth, was said, like Osiris, to have been cut in pieces
(PLUTARCH, De Iside). In the classic story of Greece, this part of
the myth of Apollo was generally kept in the background; and he was represented
as victor in the conflict with the serpent; but even there it was sometimes
admitted that he had suffered a violent death, for by Porphyry he is said to
have been slain by the serpent, and Pythagoras affirmed that he had seen his
tomb at Tripos in Delphi (BRYANT). 5. Horus was the war-god. Apollo was represented
in the same way as the great god represented in Layard, with the bow and arrow,
who was evidently the Babylonian war-god, Apollo’s well known title of
”Arcitenens,”–”the bearer of the bow,” having evidently been borrowed from that
source. Fuss tells us that Apollo was regarded as the inventor of the art of
shooting with the bow, which identifies him with Sagittarius, whose origin we
have already seen. 6. Lastly, from Ovid (Metam.) we learn that, before
engaging with Python, Apollo had used his arrows only on fallow-deer, stags,
&c. All which sufficiently proves his substantial identification with the
mighty Hunter of Babel.
Over and above the scourgings, there were also slashings and cuttings of
the flesh required as propitiatory rites on the part of his worshippers. ”In
the solemn celebration of the Mysteries,” says Julius Firmicus, ”all things in
order had to be done, which the youth either did or suffered at
his death.” Osiris was cut in pieces; therefore, to imitate his fate, so far as
living men might do so, they were required to cut and wound their own bodies.
Therefore, when the priests of Baal contended with Elijah, to gain the favour
of their god, and induce him to work the desired miracle in their behalf, ”they
cried aloud and cut themselves, after their manner, with knives and with
lancets, till the blood gushed out upon them” (1 Kings 18:28). In Egypt, the
natives in general, though liberal in the use of the whip, seem to have been
sparing of the knife; but even there, there were men also who mimicked on their
own persons the dismemberment of Osiris. ”The Carians of Egypt,” says
Herodotus, in the place already quoted, ”treat themselves at this solemnity
with still more severity, for they cut themselves in the face with swords”
(HERODOTUS). To this practice, there can be no doubt, there is a direct
allusion in the command in the Mosaic law, ”Ye shall make no cuttings in your
flesh for the dead” (Lev 19:28). * These cuttings in the flesh are largely
practised in the worship of the Hindoo divinities, as propitiatory rites or
meritorious penances. They are well known to have been practised in the rites
of Bellona, ** the ”sister” or ”wife of the Roman war-god Mars,” whose name,
”The lamenter of Bel,” clearly proves the original of her husband to whom the
Romans were so fond of tracing back their pedigree.
* Every person who died in the faith was believed to be identified with
Osiris, and called by his name. (WILKINSON)
** ”The priests of Bellona,” says Lactantius, ”sacrificed not with any
other men’s blood but their own, their shoulders being lanced, and with both
hands brandishing naked swords, they ran and leaped up and down like mad men.”
They were practised also in the most savage form in the gladiatorial shows,
in which the Roman people, with all their boasted civilisation, so much
delighted. The miserable men who were doomed to engage in these bloody
exhibitions did not do so generally of their own free will. But yet, the
principle on which these shows were conducted was the very same as that which
influenced the priests of Baal. They were celebrated as propitiatory
sacrifices. From Fuss we learn that ”gladiatorial shows were sacred” to Saturn;
and in Ausonius we read that ”the amphitheatre claims its gladiators for
itself, when at the end of December they PROPITIATE with their blood the
sickle-bearing Son of Heaven.” On this passage, Justus Lipsius, who quotes it,
thus comments: ”Where you will observe two things, both, that the gladiators
fought on the Saturnalia, and that they did so for the purpose of appeasing and
PROPITIATING Saturn.” ”The reason of this,” he adds, ”I should suppose to be,
that Saturn is not among the celestial but the infernal gods. Plutarch, in his
book of ‘Summaries,’ says that ‘the Romans looked upon Kronos as a subterranean
and infernal God.’” There can be no doubt that this is so far true, for the
name of Pluto is only a synonym for Saturn, ”The Hidden One.” *
* The name Pluto is evidently from ”Lut,” to hide, which with the Egyptian
definite article prefixed, becomes ”P’Lut.” The Greek ”wealth,” ”the hidden thing,”
is obviously formed in the same way. Hades is just another synonym of the same
name.
But yet, in the light of the real history of the historical Saturn, we find
a more satisfactory reason for the barbarous custom that so much disgraced the
escutcheon of Rome in all its glory, when mistress of the world, when such
multitudes of men were
”Butchered to make a Roman
holiday.”
When it is remembered that Saturn himself was cut in pieces, it is easy to
see how the idea would arise of offering a welcome sacrifice to him by setting
men to cut one another in pieces on his birthday, by way of propitiating his
favour.
The practice of such penances, then, on the part of those of the Pagans who
cut and slashed themselves, was intended to propitiate and please their god,
and so to lay up a stock of merit that might tell in their behalf in the scales
of Anubis. In the Papacy, the penances are not only intended to answer the same
end, but, to a large extent,they are identical. I do not know, indeed, that
they use the knife as the priests of Baal did; but it is
certain that they look upon the shedding of their own blood as
a most meritorious penance, that gains them high favour with God, and wipes
away many sins. Let the reader look at the pilgrims at Lough Dergh, in Ireland,
crawling on their bare knees over the sharp rocks, and leaving the bloody
tracks behind them, and say what substantial difference there is between that
and cutting themselves with knives. In the matter of scourging themselves,
however, the adherents of the Papacy have literally borrowed the lash of
Osiris. Everyone has heard of the Flagellants, who publicly scourge themselves
on the festivals of the Roman Church, and who are regarded as saints of the
first water. In the early ages of Christianity such flagellations were regarded
as purely and entirely Pagan. Athenagoras, one of the early Christian
Apologists, holds up the Pagans to ridicule for thinking that sin could be
atoned for, or God propitiated, by any such means. But now, in the high places
of the Papal Church, such practices are regarded as the grand means of gaining
the favour of God. On Good Friday, at Rome and Madrid, and other chief seats of
Roman idolatry, multitudes flock together to witness the performances of the
saintly whippers, who lash themselves till the blood gushes in streams from
every part of their body. They pretend to do this in honour of Christ, on the
festival set apart professedly to commemorate His death, just as the
worshippers of Osiris did the same on the festival when they lamented for his
loss. *
* The priests of Cybele at Rome observed the same practice.
But can any man of the least Christian enlightenment believe that the
exalted Saviour can look on such rites as doing honour to Him, which pour
contempt on His all-perfect atonement, and represent His most ”precious blood”
as needing to have its virtue supplemented by that of blood
drawn from the backs of wretched and misguided sinners? Such offerings were
altogether fit for the worship of Moloch; but they are the very opposite of
being fit for the service of Christ.
It is not in one point only, but in manifold respects, that the ceremonies
of ”Holy Week” at Rome, as it is termed, recall to memory the rites of the
great Babylonian god. The more we look at these rites, the more we shall be
struck with the wonderful resemblance that subsists between them and those
observed at the Egyptian festival of burning lamps and the other ceremonies of
the fire-worshippers in different countries. In Egypt the grand
illumination took place beside the sepulchre of Osiris at Sais. In
Rome in ”Holy Week,” a sepulchre of Christ also figures in connection with a
brilliant illumination of burning tapers. In Crete, where the tomb of Jupiter
was exhibited, that tomb was an object of worship to the Cretans. In Rome, if
the devotees do not worship the so-called sepulchre of Christ, they worship
what is entombed within it. As there is reason to believe that the Pagan
festival of burning lamps was observed in commemoration of the ancient
fire-worship, so there is a ceremony at Rome in the Easter week, which is an
unmistakable act of fire-worship, when a cross of fire is the
grand object of worship. This ceremony is thus graphically described by the
authoress of Rome in the 19th Century: ”The effect of the blazing
cross of fire suspended from the dome above the confession or tomb of St.
Peter’s, was strikingly brilliant at night. It is covered with innumerable
lamps, which have the effect of one blaze of fire…The whole church was thronged
with a vast multitude of all classes and countries, from royalty to the meanest
beggar, all gazing upon this one object. In a few minutes the Pope and all his
Cardinals descended into St. Peter’s, and room being kept for them by the Swiss
guards, the aged Pontiff…prostrated himself in silent adoration before the
CROSS OF FIRE. A long train of Cardinals knelt before him, whose splendid robes
and attendant train-bearers, formed a striking contrast to the humility of
their attitude.” What could be a more clear and unequivocal act of fire-worship
than this? Now, view this in connection with the fact stated in the following
extract from the same work, and how does the one cast light on the other: ”With
Holy Thursday our miseries began [that is, from crowding]. On this disastrous
day we went before nine to the Sistine chapel…and beheld a procession led by
the inferior orders of clergy, followed up by the Cardinals in superb dresses,
bearing long wax tapers in their hands, and ending with the Pope himself, who
walked beneath a crimson canopy, with his head uncovered, bearing the Host in a
box; and this being, as you know, the real flesh and blood of Christ, was
carried from the Sistine chapel through the intermediate hall to the Paulina chapel,
where it was deposited in the sepulchre prepared to receive it beneath the
altar…I never could learn why Christ was to be buried before He was dead, for,
as the crucifixion did not take place till Good Friday, it seems odd to inter
Him on Thursday. His body, however, is laid in the sepulchre, in all the
churches of Rome, where this rite is practised, on Thursday forenoon, and it
remains there till Saturday at mid-day, when, for some reason best known to
themselves, He is supposed to rise from the grave amidst the firing of cannon,
and blowing of trumpets, and jingling of bells, which have been carefully tied
up ever since the dawn of Holy Thursday, lest the devil should get into them.”
The worship of the cross of fire on Good Friday explains at once the anomaly
otherwise so perplexing, that Christ should be buried on Thursday, and rise
from the dead on Saturday. If the festival of Holy Week be really, as its rites
declare, one of the old festivals of Saturn, the Babylonian fire-god, who,
though an infernal god, was yet Phoroneus, the great ”Deliverer,” it is
altogether natural that the god of the Papal idolatry, though called by
Christ’s name, should rise from the dead on his own day–the Dies
Saturni, or ”Saturn’s day.” *
* The above account referred to the ceremonies as witnessed by the
authoress in 1817 and 1818. It would seem that some change has taken place
since then, caused probably by the very attention called by her to the gross
anomaly mentioned above; for Count Vlodaisky, formerly a Roman Catholic priest,
who visited Rome in 1845, has informed me that in that year the resurrection
took place, not at mid-day, but at nine o’clock on the evening of Saturday.
This may have been intended to make the inconsistency between Roman practice
and Scriptural fact appear somewhat less glaring. Still the fact remains, that
the resurrection of Christ, as celebrated at Rome, takes place, not on His own
day–”The Lord’s day”–but–on the day of Saturn, the god of fire!
On the day before the Miserere is sung with such overwhelming
pathos, that few can listen to it unmoved, and many even swoon with the
emotions that are excited. What if this be at bottom only the old song of
Linus, of whose very touching and melancholy character Herodotus speaks so
strikingly? Certain it is, that much of the pathos of that Miserere depends
on the part borne in singing it by the sopranos; and equally
certain it is that Semiramis, the wife of him who, historically, was the
original of that god whose tragic death was so pathetically celebrated in many
countries, enjoys the fame, such as it is, of having been the inventress of the
practice from which soprano singing took its rise.
Now, the flagellations which form an important part of the penances that
take place at Rome on the evening of Good Friday, formed an equally important
part in the rites of that fire-god, from which, as we have seen, the Papacy has
borrowed so much. These flagellations, then, of ”Passion Week,” taken in
connection with the other ceremonies of that period, bear their additional
testimony to the real character of that god whose death and resurrection Rome
then celebrates. Wonderful it is to consider that, in the very high place of
what is called Catholic Christendom, the essential rites at this day are seen
to be the very rites of the old Chaldean fire-worshippers.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter IV
Section III
The Sacrifice of the Mass
If baptismal regeneration, the initiating ordinance of Rome, and
justification by works, be both Chaldean, the principle embodied in the
”unbloody sacrifice” of the mass is not less so. We have evidence that goes to
show the Babylonian origin of the idea of that ”unbloody sacrifice” very
distinctly. From Tacitus we learn that no blood was allowed to be offered on
the altars of Paphian Venus. Victims were used for the purposes of the
Haruspex, that presages of the issues of events might be drawn from the
inspection of the entrails of these victims; but the altars of the Paphian
goddess were required to be kept pure from blood. Tacitus shows that the
Haruspex of the temple of the Paphian Venus was brought from Cilicia,
for his knowledge of her rites, that they might be duly performed according to
the supposed will of the goddess, the Cilicians having peculiar knowledge of
her rites. Now, Tarsus, the capital of Cilicia, was built by Sennacerib, the
Assyrian king, in express imitation of Babylon. Its religion would naturally
correspond; and when we find ”unbloody sacrifice” in Cyprus, whose priest came
from Cilicia, that, in the circumstances, is itself a strong presumption that
the ”unbloody sacrifice” came to it through Cilicia from Babylon. This
presumption is greatly strengthened when we find from Herodotus that the
peculiar and abominable institution of Babylon in prostituting virgins in
honour of Mylitta, was observed also in Cyprus in honour of Venus. But the
positive testimony of Pausanias brings this presumption to a certainty. ”Near
this,” says that historian, speaking of the temple of Vulcan at Athens, ”is the
temple of Celestial Venus, who was first worshipped by the Assyrians, and after
these by the Paphians in Cyprus, and the Phoenicians who inhabited the city of
Ascalon in Palestine. But the Cythereans venerated this goddess in consequence
of learning her sacred rites from the Phoenicians.” The Assyrian Venus,
then–that is, the great goddess of Babylon–and the Cyprian Venus were one and
the same, and consequently the ”bloodless” altars of the Paphian goddess show
the character of the worship peculiar to the Babylonian goddess, from whom she
was derived. In this respect the goddess-queen of Chaldea differed from her
son, who was worshipped in her arms. He was, as we have seen,
represented as delighting in blood. But she, as the mother of grace
and mercy, as the celestial ”Dove,” as ”the hope of the whole world,” (BRYANT)
was averse to blood, and was represented in a benign and gentle character.
Accordingly, in Babylon she bore the name of Mylitta–that is, ”The Mediatrix.”
*
* Mylitta is the same as Melitta, the feminine of Melitz, ”a mediator,”
which in Chaldee becomes Melitt. Melitz is the word used in Job 33:23, 24: ”If
there be a messenger with him, an interpreter (Heb. Melitz, ”a
mediator”), one among a thousand, to show unto man his uprightness, then he
is gracious unto him, and saith, Deliver him from going down to the pit; I have
found a ransom.”
Every one who reads the Bible, and sees how expressly it declares that, as
there is only ”one God,” so there is only ”one Mediator between God and man” (1
Tim 2:5), must marvel how it could ever have entered the mind of any one to
bestow on Mary, as is done by the Church of Rome, the character of the
”Mediatrix.” But the character ascribed to the Babylonian goddess as Mylitta
sufficiently accounts for this. In accordance with this character of Mediatrix,
she was called Aphrodite–that is, ”the wrath-subduer” *–who by her charms could
soothe the breast of angry Jove, and soften the most rugged spirits of gods or
mortal-men. In Athens she was called Amarusia (PAUSANIAS)–that is, ”The Mother
of gracious acceptance.” **
* From Chaldee ”aph,” ”wrath,” and ”radah,” ”to subdue”; ”radite” is the
feminine emphatic.
** From ”Ama,” ”mother,” and ”Retza,” ”to accept graciously,” which in the
participle active is ”Rutza.” Pausanias expresses his perplexity as to the
meaning of the name Amarusia as applied to Diana, saying, ”Concerning which
appellation I never could find any one able to give a satisfactory account.”
The sacred tongue plainly shows the meaning of it.
In Rome she was called ”Bona Dea,” ”the good goddess,” the mysteries of
this goddess being celebrated by women with peculiar secrecy. In India the
goddess Lakshmi, ”the Mother of the Universe,” the consort of Vishnu, is
represented also as possessing the most gracious and genial disposition; and
that disposition is indicated in the same way as in the case of the Babylonian
goddess. ”In the festivals of Lakshmi,” says Coleman, ”no sanguinary
sacrifices are offered.” In China, the great gods, on whom the final
destinies of mankind depend, are held up to the popular mind as objects of
dread; but the goddess Kuanyin, ”the goddess of mercy,” whom the Chinese of
Canton recognise as bearing an analogy to the Virgin or Rome, is described as
looking with an eye of compassion on the guilty, and interposing to save
miserable souls even from torments to which in the world of spirits they have
been doomed. Therefore she is regarded with peculiar favour by the Chinese.
This character of the goddess-mother has evidently radiated in all directions
from Chaldea. Now, thus we see how it comes that Rome represents Christ, the
”Lamb of God,” meek and lowly in heart, who never brake the bruised reed, nor
quenched the smoking flax–who spake words of sweetest encouragement to every
mourning penitent–who wept over Jerusalem–who prayed for His murderers–as a
stern and inexorable judge, before whom the sinner ”might grovel in the dust,
and still never be sure that his prayers would be heard,” while Mary is set off
in the most winning and engaging light, as the hope of the guilty, as the grand
refuge of sinners; how it is that the former is said to have ”reserved justice
and judgment to Himself,” but to have committed the exercise of all mercy to
His Mother! The most standard devotional works of Rome are pervaded by this
very principle, exalting the compassion and gentleness of the mother at the expense
of the loving character of the Son. Thus, St. Alphonsus Liguori tells his
readers that the sinner that ventures to come directly to Christ may come with
dread and apprehension of His wrath; but let him only employ the mediation of
the Virgin with her Son, and she has only to ”show” that Son ”the
breasts that gave him suck,” (Catholic Layman, July, 1856) and His
wrath will immediately be appeased. But where in the Word of God could such an
idea have been found? Not surely in the answer of the Lord Jesus to the woman
who exclaimed, ”Blessed is the womb that bare thee, and the paps that thou hast
sucked!” Jesus answered and said unto her, ”Yea, rather, blessed are
they that hear the Word of God and keep it” (Luke 11:27,28). There cannot be a
doubt that this answer was given by the prescient Saviour, to check in the very
bud every idea akin to that expressed by Liguori. Yet this idea, which is not
to be found in Scripture, which the Scripture expressly repudiates, was widely
diffused in the realms of Paganism. Thus we find an exactly parallel
representation in the Hindoo mythology in regard to the god Siva and his wife
Kali, when that god appeared as a little child. ”Siva,” says the Lainga Puran,
”appeared as an infant in a cemetery, surrounded by ghosts, and on beholding
him, Kali (his wife) took him up, and, caressing him, gave him her
breast. He sucked the nectareous fluid; but becoming ANGRY, in order to
divert and PACIFY him, Kali clasping him to her bosom, danced with
her attendant goblins and demons amongst the dead, until he was pleased
and delighted; while Vishnu, Brahma, Indra, and all the gods, bowing
themselves, praised with laudatory strains the god of gods, Kal and Parvati.”
Kali, in India, is the goddess of destruction; but even into the myth that
concerns this goddess of destruction, the power of the goddess mother,
in appeasing an offended god, by means only suited to PACIFY a peevish child,
has found an introduction. If the Hindoo story exhibits its ”god of gods” in
such a degrading light, how much more honouring is the Papal story to the Son
of the Blessed, when it represents Him as needing to be pacified by
His mother exposing to Him ”the breasts that He has sucked.” All this is done
only to exalt the Mother, as more gracious and more compassionate
than her glorious Son. Now, this was the very case in Babylon: and to this
character of the goddess queen her favourite offerings exactly corresponded.
Therefore, we find the women of Judah represented as simply ”burning incense,
pouring out drink-offerings, and offering cakes to the queen
of heaven” (Jer 44:19). The cakes were ”the unbloody sacrifice” she required.
That ”unbloody sacrifice” her votaries not only offered, but when admitted to
the higher mysteries, they partook of, swearing anew fidelity to her. In the
fourth century, when the queen of heaven, under the name of Mary, was beginning
to be worshipped in the Christian Church, this ”unbloody sacrifice” also was
brought in. Epiphanius states that the practice of offering and eating it began
among the women of Arabia; and at that time it was well known to have been
adopted from the Pagans. The very shape of the unbloody sacrifice of Rome may
indicate whence it came. It is a small thin, round wafer; and
on its roundness the Church of Rome lays so much stress, to
use the pithy language of John Knox in regard to the wafer-god, ”If, in making
the roundness the ring be broken, then must another of his
fellow-cakes receive that honour to be made a god, and the crazed or cracked
miserable cake, that once was in hope to be made a god, must be given to a baby
to play withal.” What could have induced the Papacy to insist so much on the ”roundness”
of its ”unbloody sacrifice”? Clearly not any reference to the Divine
institution of the Supper of our Lord; for in all the accounts that are given
of it, no reference whatever is made to the form of the bread
which our Lord took, when He blessed and break it, and gave it to His
disciples, saying, ”Take, eat; this is My body: this do in remembrance of Me.”
As little can it be taken from any regard to injunctions about the form of the
Jewish Paschal bread; for no injunctions on that subject are given in the books
of Moses. The importance, however, which Rome attaches to the roundness of
the wafer, must have a reason; and that reason will be found, if we look at the
altars of Egypt. ”The thin, round cake,” says Wilkinson,
”occurs on all altars.” Almost every jot or tittle in the Egyptian worship had
a symbolical meaning. The round disk, so frequent in the sacred emblems
of Egypt, symbolised the sun. Now, when Osiris, the sun-divinity,
became incarnate, and was born, it was not merely that he should give his life
as a sacrifice for men, but that he might also be the life
and nourishment of the souls of men. It is universally
admitted that Isis was the original of the Greek and Roman Ceres. But Ceres, be
it observed, was worshipped not simply as the discoverer of
corn; she was worshipped as ”the MOTHER of Corn.” The child she brought forth
was He-Siri, ”the Seed,” or, as he was most frequently called in Assyria,
”Bar,” which signifies at once ”the Son” and ”the Corn.”
The uninitiated might reverence Ceres for the gift of material corn to nourish
their bodies, but the initiated adored her for a higher gift–for
food to nourish their souls–for giving them that bread of God that cometh down
from heaven–for the life of the world, of which, ”if a man eat, he shall never
die.” Does any one imagine that it is a mere New Testament doctrine,
that Christ is the ”bread of life”? There never was, there
never could be, spiritual life in any soul, since the world
began, at least since the expulsion from Eden, that was not nourished and
supported by a continual feeding by faith on the Son of God, ”in whom it hath
pleased the Father that all fulness should dwell” (Col 1:19), ”that out of His
fulness we might receive, and grace for grace” (John 1:16). Paul tells us that
the manna of which the Israelites ate in the wilderness was to them a type and
lively symbol of ”the bread of life”; (1 Cor 10:3), ”They did all eat the
same spiritual meat”–i.e., meat which was intended not only to
support their natural lives, but to point them to Him who was the life of their
souls. Now, Clement of Alexandria, to whom we are largely indebted for all the
discoveries that, in modern times, have been made in Egypt, expressly assures
us that, ”in their hidden character, the enigmas of the Egyptians
were VERY SIMILAR TO THOSE OF THE JEWS.” That the initiated Pagans actually
believed that the ”Corn” which Ceres bestowed on the world was not the ”Corn”
of this earth, but the Divine ”Son,” through whom alone spiritual and eternal
life could be enjoyed, we have clear and decisive proof. The Druids were
devoted worshippers of Ceres, and as such they were celebrated in their mystic
poems as ”bearers of the ears of corn.” Now, the following is the account which
the Druids give of their great divinity, under the form of ”Corn.” That
divinity was represented as having, in the first instance, incurred, for some
reason or other, the displeasure of Ceres, and was fleeing in terror from her.
In his terror, ”he took the form of a bird, and mounted into the air. That
element afforded him no refuge: for The Lady, in the form of a
sparrow-hawk, was gaining upon him–she was just in the act of pouncing upon
him. Shuddering with dread, he perceived a heap of clean wheat upon a floor,
dropped into the midst of it, and assumed the form of a single grain.
Ceridwen [i.e., the British Ceres] took the form of a black high-crested hen,
descended into the wheat, scratched him out, distinguished, and swallowed him.
And, as the history relates, she was pregnant of him nine months, and when
delivered of him, she found him so lovely a babe, that she had not
resolution to put him to death” (”Song of Taliesin,” DAVIES’S British
Druids). Here it is evident that the grain of corn, is
expressly identified with ”the lovely babe”; from which it is still
further evident that Ceres, who, to the profane vulgar was known only as the
Mother of ”Bar,” ”the Corn,” was known to the initiated as the Mother of ”Bar,”
”the Son.” And now, the reader will be prepared to understand the full
significance of the representation in the Celestial sphere of ”the Virgin with
the ear of wheat in her hand.” That ear of wheat in the
Virgin’s hand is just another symbol for the child in
the armsof the Virgin Mother.
Now, this Son, who was symbolised as ”Corn,” was the SUN-divinity
incarnate, according to the sacred oracle of the great goddess of Egypt: ”No
mortal hath lifted my veil. The fruit which I have brought forth is the SUN”
(BUNSEN’S Egypt). What more natural then, if this incarnate
divinity is symbolised as the ”bread of God,” than that he should
be represented as a ”roundwafer,” to identify him with the Sun? Is this
a mere fancy? Let the reader peruse the following extract from Hurd, in which
he describes the embellishments of the Romish altar, on which the sacrament or
consecrated wafer is deposited, and then he will be able to judge: ”A plate of
silver, in the form of a SUN, is fixed opposite to the SACRAMENT on the altar;
which, with the light of the tapers, makes a most brilliant appearance.” What
has that ”brilliant” ”Sun” to do there, on the altar, over against the ”sacrament,”
or round wafer? In Egypt, the disk of the Sun
was represented in the temples, and the sovereign and his wife and children
were represented as adoring it. Near the small town of Babin, in Upper Egypt,
there still exists in a grotto, a representation of a sacrifice to the sun,
where two priests are seen worshipping the sun’s image. In the great temple of
Babylon, the golden image of the Sun was exhibited for the worship of the
Babylonians. In the temple of Cuzco, in Peru, the disk of the sun was fixed up
in flaming gold upon the wall, that all who entered might bow down before it.
The Paeonians of Thrace were sun-worshippers; and in their worship they adored
an image of the sun in the form of a disk at the top of a long pole. In the
worship of Baal, as practised by the idolatrous Israelites in the days of their
apostacy, the worship of the sun’s image was equally observed; and it is
striking to find that the image of the sun, which apostate Israel worshipped,
was erected above the altar. When the good king Josiah set about
the work of reformation, we read that his servants in carrying out the work,
proceeded thus (2 Chron 34:4): ”And they brake down the altars of
Baalim in his presence, and the images (margin, SUN-IMAGES) that were on high
above them, he cut down.” Benjamin of Tudela, the great Jewish traveller, gives
a striking account of sun-worship even in comparatively modern times, as
subsisting among the Cushites of the East, from which we find that the image of
the sun was, even in his day, worshipped on the altar. ”There is a temple,”
says he, ”of the posterity of Chus, addicted to the contemplation of the stars.
They worship the sun as a god, and the whole country, for half-a-mile round
their town, is filled with great altars dedicated to him. By the dawn of morn
they get up and run out of town, to wait the rising sun, to whom, on
every altar, there is a consecrated image, not in the likeness
of a man, but of the solar orb, framed by magic art. These orbs, as
soon as the sun rises, take fire, and resound with a great noise, while
everybody there, men and women, hold censers in their hands, and all burn
incense to the sun.” From all this, it is manifest that the image of the sun
above, or on the altar, was one of the recognised symbols of those who
worshipped Baal or the sun. And here, in a so-called Christian Church, a
brilliant plate of silver, ”in the form of a SUN,” is so placed on the altar,
that every one who adores at that altar must bow down in lowly reverence before
that image of the ”Sun.” Whence, I ask, could that have come, but from
the ancient sun-worship, or the worship of Baal? And when the wafer is so
placed that the silver ”SUN” is fronting the ”round” wafer, whose ”roundness”
is so important an element in the Romish Mystery, what can be the meaning of
it, but just to show to those who have eyes to see, that the ”Wafer” itself is
only another symbol of Baal, or the Sun. If the sun-divinity was worshipped in
Egypt as ”the Seed,” or in Babylon as the ”Corn,” precisely so is the wafer
adored in Rome. ”Bread-corn of the elect, have mercy upon us,” is
one of the appointed prayers of the Roman Litany, addressed to the wafer, in
the celebration of the mass. And one at least of the imperative requirements as
to the way in which that wafer is to be partaken of, is the very same as was
enforced in the old worship of the Babylonian divinity. Those who partake of it
are required to partake absolutely fasting. This is very stringently laid down.
Bishop Hay, laying down the law on the subject, says that it is indispensable,
”that we be fasting from midnight, so as to have taken nothing into our stomach
from twelve o’clock at night before we receive, neither food, nor drink, nor
medicine.” Considering that our Lord Jesus Christ instituted the Holy Communion
immediately after His disciples had partaken of the paschal feast, such a
strict requirement of fasting might seem very unaccountable. But look at this
provision in regard to the ”unbloody sacrifice” of the mass in the light of the
Eleusinian Mysteries, and it is accounted for at once; for there the first
question put to those who sought initiation was, ”Are you fasting?”
(POTTER, Eleusiania) and unless that question was answered in the
affirmative, no initiation could take place. There is no question that fasting
is in certain circumstances a Christian duty; but while neither the letter nor
the spirit of the Divine institution requires any such stringent regulation as
the above, the regulations in regard to the Babylonian Mysteries make it
evident whence this requirement has really come.
Although the god whom Isis or Ceres brought forth, and who was offered to
her under the symbol of the wafer or thin round cake, as ”the bread of life,”
was in reality the fierce, scorching Sun, or terrible Moloch, yet in that
offering all his terror was veiled, and everything repulsive was cast into the
shade. In the appointed symbol he is offered up to the benignant Mother, who
tempers judgment with mercy, and to whom all spiritual blessings are ultimately
referred; and blessed by that mother, he is given back to be feasted upon, as
the staff of life, as the nourishment of her worshippers’ souls. Thus the
Mother was held up as the favourite divinity. And thus, also, and for an
entirely similar reason, does the Madonna of Rome entirely eclipse her son as
the ”Mother of grace and mercy.”
In regard to the Pagan character of the ”unbloody sacrifice” of the mass,
we have seen not little already. But there is something yet to be considered,
in which the working of the mystery of iniquity will still further appear.
There are letters on the wafer that are worth reading. These letters are I. H.
S. What mean these mystical letters? To a Christian these letters are
represented as signifying, ”Iesus Hominum Salvator,” ”Jesus the Saviour
of men.” But let a Roman worshipper of Isis (for in the age of the emperors
there were innumerable worshippers of Isis in Rome) cast his eyes upon them,
and how will he read them? He will read them, of course, according to his own
well known system of idolatry: ”Isis, Horus, Seb,” that is, ”The Mother,
the Child, and the Father of the gods,”–in other words, ”The Egyptian Trinity.”
Can the reader imagine that this double sense is accidental? Surely not. The
very same spirit that converted the festival of the Pagan Oannes into the feast
of the Christian Joannes, retaining at the same time all its ancient Paganism,
has skilfully planned the initials I. H. S. to pay the semblance of
a tribute to Christianity, while Paganism in reality has all the substance of
the homage bestowed upon it.
When the women of Arabia began to adopt this wafer and offer the ”unbloody
sacrifice,” all genuine Christians saw at once the real character of their
sacrifice. They were treated as heretics, and branded with the name of
Collyridians, from the Greek name for the cake which they employed. But Rome
saw that the heresy might be turned to account; and therefore, though condemned
by the sound portion of the Church, the practice of offering and eating this
”unbloody sacrifice” was patronised by the Papacy; and now, throughout the whole
bounds of the Romish communion, it has superseded the simple but most precious
sacrament of the Supper instituted by our Lord Himself.
Intimately connected with the sacrifice of the mass is the subject of
transubstantiation; but the consideration of it will come more conveniently at
a subsequent stage of this inquiry.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter IV
Section IV
Extreme Unction
The last office which Popery performs for living men is to give them
”extreme unction,” to anoint them in the name of the Lord, after they have been
shriven and absolved, and thus to prepare them for their last and unseen
journey. The pretence for this ”unction” of dying men is professedly taken from
a command of James in regard to the visitation of the sick; but when the
passage in question is fairly quoted it will be seen that such a practice could
never have arisen from the apostolic direction–that it must have come from an
entirely different source. ”Is any sick among you?” says James (v 14,15), ”let
him call for the elders of the church; and let them pray over him, anointing
him with oil in the name of the Lord: and the prayer of faith shall save the
sick, and the Lord shall RAISE HIM UP.” Now, it is evident that this prayer and
anointing were intended for the recovery of the sick. Apostolic men, for the
laying of the foundations of the Christian Church, were, by their great King
and Head, invested with miraculous powers–powers which were intended only for a
time, and were destined, as the apostles themselves declared, while exercising
them, to ”vanish away” (1 Cor 13:8). These powers were every day exercised by
the ”elders of the Church,” when James wrote his epistle, and that for healing
the bodies of men, even as our Lord Himself did. The ”extreme unction” of Rome,
as the very expression itself declares, is not intended for any such purpose.
It is not intended for healing the sick, or ”raising them up”; for it is not on
any account to be administered till all hope of recovery is gone, and death is
visibly at the very doors. As the object of this anointing is the very opposite
of the Scriptural anointing, it must have come from a quite different quarter.
That quarter is the very same from which the Papacy has imported so much
heathenism, as we have seen already, into its own foul bosom. From the Chaldean
Mysteries, extreme unction has obviously come. Among the many names of the
Babylonian god was the name ”Beel-samen,” ”Lord of Heaven,” which is the name
of the sun, but also of course of the sun-god. But Beel-samen also properly
signifies ”Lord of Oil,” and was evidently intended as a synonym of the Divine
name, ”The Messiah.” In Herodotus we find a statement made which this name
alone can fully explain. There an individual is represented as having dreamt
that the sun had anointed her father. That the sun should anoint any one is
certainly not an idea that could naturally have presented itself; but when the
name ”Beel-samen,” ”Lord of Heaven,” is seen also to signify ”Lord of Oil,” it
is easy to see how that idea would be suggested. This also accounts for the
fact that the body of the Babylonian Belus was represented as having been
preserved in his sepulchre in Babylon till the time of Xerxes, floating in oil
(CLERICUS, Philosoph. Orient.). And for the same reason, no doubt, it was that
at Rome the ”statue of Saturn” was ”made hollow, and filled with oil” (SMITH’S
Classical Dictionary).
The olive branch, which we have already seen to have been one of the
symbols of the Chaldean god, had evidently the same hieroglyphical meaning;
for, as the olive was the oil-tree, so an olive branch emblematically signified
a ”son of oil,” or an ”anointed one” (Zech 4:12-14). Hence the reason that the
Greeks, in coming before their gods in the attitude of suppliants deprecating
their wrath and entreating their favour, came to the temple on many occasions
bearing an olive branch in their hands. As the olive branch was one of the
recognised symbols of their Messiah, whose great mission it was to make peace
between God and man, so, in bearing this branch of the anointed one, they
thereby testified that in the name of that anointed one they came seeking
peace. Now, the worshippers of this Beel-samen, ”Lord of Heaven,” and ”Lord of
Oil,” were anointed in the name of their god. It was not enough that they were
anointed with ”spittle”; they were also anointed with ”magical ointments” of
the most powerful kind; and these ointments were the means of introducing into
their bodily systems such drugs as tended to excite their imaginations and add
to the power of the magical drinks they received, that they might be prepared
for the visions and revelations that were to be made to them in the Mysteries.
These ”unctions,” says Salverte, ”were exceedingly frequent in the ancient
ceremonies…Before consulting the oracle of Trophonius, they were rubbed with
oil over the whole body. This preparation certainly concurred to produce the
desired vision. Before being admitted to the Mysteries of the Indian sages,
Apollonius and his companion were rubbed with an oil so powerful that they felt
as if bathed with fire.” This was professedly an unction in the name of the
”Lord of Heaven,” to fit and prepare them for being admitted in vision into his
awful presence. The very same reason that suggested such an unction before
initiation on this present scene of things, would naturally plead more powerfully
still for a special ”unction” when the individual was called, not in vision,
but in reality, to face the ”Mystery of mysteries,” his personal introduction
into the world unseen and eternal. Thus the Pagan system naturally developed
itself into ”extreme unction” (Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, January, 1853).
Its votaries were anointed for their last journey, that by the double influence
of superstition and powerful stimulants introduced into the frame by the only
way in which it might then be possible, their minds might be fortified at once
against the sense of guilt and the assaults of the king of terrors. From this
source, and this alone, there can be no doubt came the ”extreme unction” of the
Papacy, which was entirely unknown among Christians till corruption was far
advanced in the Church. *
* Bishop GIBSON says that it was not known in the Church for a thousand
years. (Preservative
against Popery)
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter IV
Section V
Purgatory and Prayers for the Dead
”Extreme unction,” however, to a burdened soul, was but a miserable
resource, after all, in the prospect of death. No wonder, therefore, that
something else was found to be needed by those who had received all that
priestly assumption could pretend to confer, to comfort them in the prospect of
eternity. In every system, therefore, except that of the Bible, the doctrine of
a purgatory after death, and prayers for the dead, has always been found to
occupy a place. Go wherever we may, in ancient or modern times, we shall find
that Paganism leaves hope after death for sinners, who, at the time of their
departure, were consciously unfit for the abodes of the blest. For this purpose
a middle state has been feigned, in which, by means of purgatorial pains, guilt
unremoved in time may in a future world be purged away, and the soul be made
meet for final beatitude. In Greece the doctrine of a purgatory was inculcated
by the very chief of the philosophers. Thus Plato, speaking of the future
judgment of the dead, holds out the hope of final deliverance for all, but
maintains that, of ”those who are judged,” ”some” must first ”proceed to a
subterranean place of judgment, where they shall sustain the punishment they
have deserved”; while others, in consequence of a favourable judgment, being
elevated at once into a certain celestial place, ”shall pass their time in a
manner becoming the life they have lived in a human shape.” In Pagan Rome,
purgatory was equally held up before the minds of men; but there, there seems
to have been no hope held out to any of exemption from its pains. Therefore,
Virgil, describing its different tortures, thus speaks:
”Nor can the grovelling mind,
In the dark dungeon of the limbs confined,
Assert the native skies, or own its heavenly kind.
Nor death itself can wholly wash their stains;
But long-contracted filth, even in the soul, remains
The relics of inveterate vice they wear,
And spots of sin obscene in every face appear.
For this are various penances enjoined;
And some are hung to bleach upon the wind,
Some plunged in water, others purged in fires,
Till all the dregs are drained, and all the rust expires.
All have their Manes, and those Manes bear.
The few so cleansed to these abodes repair,
And breathe in ample fields the soft Elysian air,
Then are they happy, when by length of time
The scurf is worn away of each committed crime.
No speck is left of their habitual stains,
But the pure ether of the soul remains.”
In Egypt, substantially the same doctrine of purgatory was inculcated. But
when once this doctrine of purgatory was admitted into the popular mind, then
the door was opened for all manner of priestly extortions. Prayers for the dead
ever go hand in hand with purgatory; but no prayers can be completely
efficacious without the interposition of the priests; and no priestly functions
can be rendered unless there be special pay for them. Therefore, in every land
we find the Pagan priesthood ”devouring widows’ houses,” and making merchandise
of the tender feelings of sorrowing relatives, sensitively alive to the
immortal happiness of the beloved dead. From all quarters there is one
universal testimony as to the burdensome character and the expense of these
posthumous devotions. One of the oppressions under which the poor Romanists in
Ireland groan, is the periodical special devotions, for which they are required
to pay, when death has carried away one of the inmates of their dwelling. Not
only are there funeral services and funeral dues for the repose of the
departed, at the time of burial, but the priest pays repeated visits to the
family for the same purpose, which entail heavy expense, beginning with what is
called ”the month’s mind,” that is, a service in behalf of the deceased when a
month after death has elapsed. Something entirely similar to this had evidently
been the case in ancient Greece; for, says Muller in his History of the
Dorians, ”the Argives sacrificed on the thirtieth day [after death] to Mercury
as the conductor of the dead.” In India many and burdensome are the services of
the Sradd’ha, or funeral obsequies for the repose of the dead; and for securing
the due efficacy of these, it is inculcated that ”donations of cattle, land,
gold, silver, and other things,” should be made by the man himself at the
approach of death; or, ”if he be too weak, by another in his name” (Asiatic
Researches). Wherever we look, the case is nearly the same. In Tartary, ”The
Gurjumi, or prayers for the dead,” says the Asiatic Journal, ”are very
expensive.” In Greece, says Suidas, ”the greatest and most expensive sacrifice
was the mysterious sacrifice called the Telete,” a sacrifice which, according
to Plato, ”was offered for the living and the dead, and was supposed to free
them from all the evils to which the wicked are liable when they have left this
world.” In Egypt the exactions of the priests for funeral dues and masses for
the dead were far from being trifling. ”The priests,” says Wilkinson, ”induced
the people to expend large sums on the celebration of funeral rites; and many
who had barely sufficient to obtain the necessaries of life were anxious to
save something for the expenses of their death. For, beside the embalming
process, which sometimes cost a talent of silver, or about 250 pounds English
money, the tomb itself was purchased at an immense expense; and numerous
demands were made upon the estate of the deceased, for the celebration of
prayer and other services for the soul.” ”The ceremonies,” we find him
elsewhere saying, ”consisted of a sacrifice similar to those offered in the
temples, vowed for the deceased to one or more gods (as Osisris, Anubis, and
others connected with Amenti); incense and libation were also presented; and a
prayer was sometimes read, the relations and friends being present as mourners.
They even joined their prayers to those of the priest. The priest who
officiated at the burial service was selected from the grade of Pontiffs, who
wore the leopard skin; but various other rites were performed by one of the
minor priests to the mummies, previous to their being lowered into the pit of
the tomb after that ceremony. Indeed, they continued to be administered at intervals,
as long as the family paid for their performance.” Such was the operation of
the doctrine of purgatory and prayers for the dead among avowed and
acknowledged Pagans; and in what essential respect does it differ from the
operation of the same doctrine in Papal Rome? There are the same extortions in
the one as there were in the other. The doctrine of purgatory is purely Pagan,
and cannot for a moment stand in the light of Scripture. For those who die in
Christ no purgatory is, or can be, needed; for ”the blood of Jesus Christ,
God’s Son, cleanseth from ALL sin.” If this be true, where can there be the
need for any other cleansing? On the other hand, for those who die without
personal union to Christ, and consequently unwashed, unjustified, unsaved, there
can be no other cleansing; for, while ”he that hath the son hath life, he that
hath not the Son hath not life,” and never can have it. Search the Scripture
through, and it will be found that, in regard to all who ”die in their sins,”
the decree of God is irreversible: ”Let him that is unjust be unjust still, and
let him that is filthy be filthy still.” Thus the whole doctrine of purgatory
is a system of pure bare-faced Pagan imposture, dishonouring to God, deluding
men who live in sin with the hope of atoning for it after death, and cheating
them at once out of their property and their salvation. In the Pagan purgatory,
fire, water, wind, were represented (as may be seen from the lines of Virgil)
as combining to purge away the stain of sin. In the purgatory of the Papacy,
ever since the days of Pope Gregory, FIRE itself has been the grand means of
purgation (Catechismus Romanus). Thus, while the purgatorial fires of the
future world are just the carrying out of the principle embodied in the blazing
and purifying Baal-fires of the eve of St. John, they form another link in
identifying the system of Rome with the system of Tammuz or Zoroaster, the
great God of the ancient fire-worshippers.
Now, if baptismal regeneration, justification by
works, penance as a satisfaction to God’s justice, the unbloody sacrifice of
the mass, extreme unction, purgatory, and prayers for the dead, were all
derived from Babylon, how justly may the general system of Rome be styled
Babylonian? And if the account already given be true,
what thanks ought we to render to God, that, from a system such as this, we
were set free at the blessed Reformation! How great a boon is it to be
delivered from trusting in such refuges of lies as could no more take away sin
than the blood of bulls or of goats! How blessed to feel that the blood of the
Lamb, applied by the Spirit of God to the most defiled conscience, completely
purges it from dead works and from sin! How fervent ought our gratitude to be,
when we know that, in all our trials and distresses, we may come boldly unto
the throne of grace, in the name of no creature, but of God’s eternal and
well-beloved Son; and that that Son is exhibited as a most tender and
compassionate high priest, who is TOUCHED with a feeling of our infirmities,
having been in all points tempted like as we are, yet without sin. Surely the
thought of all this, while inspiring tender compassion for the deluded slaves
of Papal tyranny, ought to make us ourselves stand fast in the liberty
wherewith Christ has made us free, and quit ourselves like men, that neither we
nor our children may ever again be entangled in the yoke of bondage.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter 5
Rites and Ceremonies
Section I
Idol Processions
Those who have read the account of the last idol procession in the capital
of Scotland, in John Knox’s History of the Reformation, cannot
easily have forgot the tragi-comedy with which it ended. The light of the
Gospel had widely spread, the Popish idols had lost their fascination, and
popular antipathy was everywhere rising against them. ”The images,” says the
historian, ”were stolen away in all parts of the country; and in Edinburgh was
that great idol called Sanct Geyle [the patron saint of the capital], first
drowned in the North Loch, after burnt, which raised no small trouble in the
town.” The bishops demanded of the Town Council either ”to get them again the
old Sanct Geyle, or else, upon their (own) expenses, to make a new image.” The
Town Council could not do the one, and the other they
absolutely refused to do; for they were now convinced of the
sin of idolatry. The bishops and priests, however, were still made upon their
idols; and, as the anniversary of the feast of St. Giles was approaching, when
the saint used to be carried in procession through the town, they determined to
do their best, that the accustomed procession should take place with as much
pomp as possible. For this purpose, ”a marmouset idole” was borrowed from the
Grey friars, which the people, in derision, called ”Young Sanct Geyle,” and
which was made to do service instead of the old one. On the appointed day, says
Know, ”there assembled priests, friars, canons…with taborns and trumpets,
banners, and bagpipes; and who was there to lead the ring but the Queen Regent
herself, with all her shavelings, for honour of that feast. West about goes it,
and comes down the High Street, and down to the Canno Cross.” As long as the
Queen was present, all went to the heart’s content of the priests and their
partisans. But no sooner had majesty retired to dine, than some in the crowd,
who had viewed the whole concern with an evil eye, ”drew nigh to the idol, as
willing to help to bear him, and getting the fertour (or barrow) on their
shoulders, began to shudder, thinking that thereby the idol should have fallen.
But that was provided and prevented by the iron nails [with which it was
fastened to the fertour]; and so began one to cry, ‘Down with the idol, down
with it’; and so without delay it was pulled down. Some brag made the priests’
patrons at the first; but when they saw the feebleness of their god, for one
took him by the heels, and dadding [knocking] his head to the calsay
[pavement], left Dagon without head or hands, and said, ‘Fye upon thee, thou
young Sanct Geyle, thy father would have tarried [withstood] four such
[blows]‘; this considered, we say, the priests and friars fled faster than they
did at Pinkey Cleuch. There might have been seen so sudden a fray as seldom has
been seen amongst that sort of men within this realm; for down goes the
crosses, off goes the surplice, round caps corner with the crowns. The Grey
friars gaped, the Black friars blew, the priests panted and fled, and happy was
he that first gat the house; for such ane sudden fray came never amongst the
generation of Antichrist within this realm before.”
Such an idol procession among a people who had begun to study and relish
the Word of God, elicited nothing but indignation and scorn. But in Popish
lands, among a people studiously kept in the dark, such processions are among
the favourite means which the Romish Church employs to bind its votaries to
itself. The long processions with images borne on men’s shoulders, with the
gorgeous dresses of the priests, and the various habits of different orders of
monks and nuns, with the aids of flying banners and the thrilling strains of
instrumental music, if not too closely scanned, are well fitted ”plausibly to
amuse” the worldly mind, to gratify the love for the picturesque, and when the
emotions thereby called forth are dignified with the names of piety and
religion, to minister to the purposes of spiritual despotism. Accordingly,
Popery has ever largely availed itself of such pageants. On joyous occasions,
it has sought to consecrate the hilarity and excitement created by such
processions to the service of its idols; and in seasons of sorrow, it has made use
of the same means to draw forth the deeper wail of distress from the multitudes
that throng the procession, as if the mere loudness of the cry would avert the
displeasure of a justly offended God. Gregory, commonly called the Great, seems
to have been the first who, on a large scale, introduced those
religious processions into the Roman Church. In 590, when Rome was suffering
under the heavy hand of God from the pestilence, he exhorted the people to
unite publicly in supplication to God, appointing that they should meet at
daybreak in SEVEN DIFFERENT COMPANIES, according to their respective ages,
SEXES, and stations, and walk in seven different processions, reciting litanies
or supplications, till they all met at one place. They did so, and proceeded singing
and uttering the words, ”Lord, have mercy upon us,” carrying along with them,
as Baronius relates, by Gregory’s express command, an image of the Virgin. The
very idea of such processions was an affront to the majesty of heaven; it
implied that God who is a Spirit ”saw with eyes of flesh,” and might be moved
by the imposing picturesqueness of such a spectacle, just as sensuous mortals
might. As an experiment it had but slender success. In the space of one hour,
while thus engaged, eighty persons fell to the ground, and breathed their last.
Yet this is now held up to Britons as ”the more excellent way” for deprecating
the wrath of God in a season of national distress. ”Had this calamity,” says
Dr. Wiseman, referring to the Indian disasters, ”had this calamity fallen upon
our forefathers in Catholic days, one would have seen the streets of this city
[London] trodden in every direction by penitential processions, crying out,
like David, when pestilence had struck the people.” If this allusion to David
has any pertinence or meaning, it must imply that David, in the time of
pestilence, headed some such ”penitential procession.” But Dr. Wiseman knows,
or ought to know, that David did nothing of the sort, that his penitence was
expressed in no such way as by processions, and far less by idol processions,
as ”in the Catholic days of our forefathers,” to which we are invited to turn
back. This reference to David, then, is a mere blind, intended to mislead those
who are not given to Bible reading, as if such ”penitential processions” had
something of Scripture warrant to rest upon. The Times, commenting
on this recommendation of the Papal dignitary, has hit the nail on the head.
”The historic idea,” says that journal, ”is simple enough, and as old as old
can be. We have it in Homer–the procession of Hecuba and the ladies of Troy to
the shrine of Minerva, in the Acropolis of that city.” It was a time of terror
and dismay in Troy, when Diomede, with resistless might, was driving everything
before him, and the overthrow of the proud city seemed at hand. To avert the
apparently inevitable doom, the Trojan Queen was divinely directed.
”To lead the assembled train
Of Troy’s chief matron’s to Minerva’s fane.”
And she did so:–
”Herself…the long procession
leads;
The train majestically slow proceeds.
Soon as to Ilion’s topmost tower they come,
And awful reach the high Palladian dome,
Antenor’s consort, fair Theano, waits
As Pallas’ priestess, and unbars the gates.
With hands uplifted and imploring eyes,
They fill the dome with supplicating cries.”
Here is a precedent for ”penitential processions” in connection with
idolatry entirely to the point, such as will be sought for in vain in the
history of David, or any of the Old Testament saints. Religious processions,
and especially processions with images, whether of a jubilant or sorrowful
description, are purely Pagan. In the Word of God we find two instances in
which there were processions practised with Divine sanction; but when the
object of these processions is compared with the avowed object and character of
Romish processions, it will be seen that there is no analogy between them and
the processions of Rome. The two cases to which I refer are the seven days’
encompassing of Jericho, and the procession at the bringing up of the ark of
God from Kirjath-jearim to the city of David. The processions, in the first
case, though attended with the symbols of Divine worship, were not intended as
acts of religious worship, but were a miraculous mode of conducting war, when a
signal interposition of Divine power was to be vouchsafed. In the other, there
was simply the removing of the ark, the symbol of Jehovah’s presence, from the
place where, for a long period, it had been allowed to lie in obscurity, to the
place which the Lord Himself had chosen for its abode; and on such an occasion
it was entirely fitting and proper that the transference should be made with
all religious solemnity. But these were simply occasional things, and have
nothing at all in common with Romish processions, which form a regular part of
the Papal ceremonial. But, though Scripture speaks nothing of religious
processions in the approved worship of God, it refers once and again to Pagan
processions, and these, too, accompanied with images; and it vividly exposes
the folly of those who can expect any good from gods that cannot move from one
place to another, unless they are carried. Speaking of the gods of Babylon,
thus saith the prophet Isaiah (46:6), ”They lavish gold out of the bag, and
weigh silver in the balance, and hire a goldsmith; and he maketh it a god: they
fall down, yea, they worship. They bear him upon the shoulder, they
carry him, and set him in his place, and he standeth; from his place he
shall not remove.” In the sculptures of Nineveh these processions of idols,
borne on men’s shoulders, are forcibly represented, and form at once a striking
illustration of the prophetic language, and of the real origin of
the Popish processions. In Egypt, the same practice was observed. In ”the
procession of shrines,” says Wilkinson, ”it was usual to carry the statue of
the principal deity, in whose honour the procession took place, together with
that of the king, and the figures of his ancestors, borne in the same manner,
on men’s shoulders.” But not only are the processions in general identified
with the Babylonian system. We have evidence that these processions trace their
origin to that very disastrous event in the history of Nimrod, which has
already occupied so much of our attention. Wilkinson says ”that Diodorus speaks
of an Ethiopian festival of Jupiter, when his statue was carried in procession,
probably to commemorate the supposed refuge of the gods in that country,
which,” says he, ”may have been a memorial of the flight of the Egyptians with
their gods.” The passage of Diodorus, to which Wilkinson refers, is not very
decisive as to the object for which the statues of Jupiter and Juno (for
Diodorus mentions the shrine of Juno as well as of Jupiter) were annually
carried into the land of Ethiopia, and then, after a certain period of sojourn
there, were brought back to Egypt again. But, on comparing it with other
passages of antiquity, its object very clearly appears. Eustathius says, that
at the festival in question, ”according to some, the Ethiopians used
to fetch the images of Zeus, and other gods from the great temple of Zeus at
Thebes. With these images they went about at a certain period in Libya, and
celebrated a splendid festival for twelve gods.” As the festival was called an
Ethiopian festival; and as it was Ethiopians that both carried away the idols
and brought them back again, this indicates that the idols must have been
Ethiopian idols; and as we have seen that Egypt was under the power of Nimrod,
and consequently of the Cushites or Ethiopians, when idolatry was for a time
put down in Egypt, what would this carrying of the idols into Ethiopia, the
land of the Cushites, that was solemnly commemorated every year, be, but just
the natural result of the temporary suppression of the idol-worship inaugurated
by Nimrod. In Mexico, we have an account of an exact counterpart of this
Ethiopian festival. There, at a certain period, the images of the gods were
carried out of the country in a mourning procession, as if taking their leave
of it, and then, after a time, they were brought back to it again with every
demonstration of joy. In Greece, we find a festival of an entirely similar
kind, which, while it connects itself with the Ethiopian festival of Egypt on
the one hand, brings that festival, on the other, into the closest relation to
the penitential procession of Pope Gregory. Thus we find Potter referring first
to a ”Delphian festival in memory of a JOURNEY of Apollo”; and then under the
head of the festival called Apollonia, we thus read: ”To Apollo, at Aegialea on
this account: Apollo having obtained a victory over Python, went to Aegialea,
accompanied with his sister Diana; but, being frightened from thence,
fled into Crete. After this, the Aegialeans were infected with an
epidemical distemper; and, being advised by the prophets to appease the two
offended deities, sent SEVEN boys and as many virgins to entreat them to
return. [Here is the typical germ of 'The Sevenfold Litany' of Pope Gregory.]
Apollo and Diana accepted their piety,…and it became a custom to
appoint chosen boys and virgins, to make a solemn procession, in show, as if
they designed to bring back Apollo and Diana, which continued till Pausanias’
time.” The contest between Python and Apollo, in Greece, is just the
counterpart of that between Typho and Osiris in Egypt; in other words, between
Shem and Nimrod. Thus we see the real meaning and origin of the Ethiopian
festival, when the Ethiopians carried away the gods from the Egyptian temples.
That festival evidently goes back to the time when Nimrod being cut off,
idolatry durst not show itself except among the devoted adherents of the
”Mighty hunter” (who were found in his own family–the family of Cush), when,
with great weepings and lamentations, the idolaters fled with their gods on
their shoulders, to hide themselves where they might. In commemoration of the
suppression of idolatry, and the unhappy consequences that were supposed to
flow from that suppression, the first part of the festival, as we get light
upon it both from Mexico and Greece, had consisted of a procession of mourners;
and then the mourning was turned into joy, in memory of the happy return of
these banished gods to their former exaltation. Truly a worthy origin for Pope
Gregory’s ”Sevenfold Litany” and the Popish processions.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter V
Section II
Relic Worship
Nothing is more characteristic of Rome than the worship of relics. Wherever
a chapel is opened, or a temple consecrated, it cannot be thoroughly complete
without some relic or other of he-saint or she-saint to give sanctity to it.
The relics of the saints and rotten bones of the martyrs form a great part of
the wealth of the Church. The grossest impostures have been practised in regard
to such relics; and the most drivelling tales have been told of their
wonder-working powers, and that too by Fathers of high name in the records of
Christendom. Even Augustine, with all his philosophical acuteness and zeal
against some forms of false doctrine, was deeply infected with the grovelling
spirit that led to relic worship. Let any one read the stuff with which he
concludes his famous ”City of God,” and he will in no wise wonder that Rome has
made a saint of him, and set him up for the worship of her devotees. Take only
a specimen or two of the stories with which he bolsters up the prevalent
delusions of his day: ”When the Bishop Projectius brought the relics of St.
Stephen to the town called Aquae Tibiltinae, the people came in great crowds to
honour them. Amongst these was a blind woman, who entreated the people to lead
her to the bishop who had the HOLY RELICS. They did so, and the bishop gave her
some flowers which he had in his hand. She took them, and put them to her eyes,
and immediately her sight was restored, so that she passed speedily on before
all the others, no longer requiring to be guided.” In Augustine’s day, the formal
”worship” of the relics was not yet established; but the martyrs to whom they
were supposed to have belonged were already invoked with prayers and
supplications, and that with the high approval of the Bishop of Hippo, as the
following story will abundantly show: Here, in Hippo, says he, there was a poor
and holy old man, by name Florentius, who obtained a living by tailoring. This
man once lost his coat, and not being able to purchase another to replace it,
he came to the shrine of the Twenty Martyrs, in this city, and prayed aloud to
them, beseeching that they would enable him to get another garment. A crowd of
silly boys who overheard him, followed him at his departure, scoffing at him,
and asking him whether he had begged fifty pence from the martyrs to buy a
coat. The poor man went silently on towards home, and as he passed near the
sea, he saw a large fish which had been cast up on the sand, and was still
panting. The other persons who were present allowed him to take up this fish,
which he brought to one Catosus, a cook, and a good Christian, who bought it
from him for three hundred pence. With this he meant to purchase wool, which
his wife might spin, and make into a garment for him. When the cook cut up the
fish, he found within its belly a ring of gold, which his conscience persuaded
him to give to the poor man from whom he bought the fish. He did so, saying, at
the same time, ”Behold how the Twenty Martyrs have clothed you!” *
* De Civitate. The story of the fish and the ring is an old Egyptian story.
(WILKINSON) Catosus, ”the good Christian,” was evidently a tool of the priests,
who could afford to give him a ring to put into the fish’s belly. The miracle
would draw worshippers to the shrine of the Twenty Martyrs, and thus bring
grist to their mill, and amply repay them.
Thus did the great Augustine inculcate the worship of dead men, and the
honouring of their wonder-working relics. The ”silly children” who ”scoffed” at
the tailor’s prayer seem to have had more sense than either the ”holy old
tailor” or the bishop. Now, if men professing Christianity were thus, in the
fifth century, paving the way for the worship of all manner of rags and rotten
bones; in the realms of Heathendom the same worship had flourished for ages
before Christian saints or martyrs had appeared in the world. In Greece, the
superstitious regard to relics, and especially to the bones of the deified
heroes, was a conspicuous part of the popular idolatry. The work of Pausanias,
the learned Grecian antiquary, is full of reference to this superstition. Thus,
of the shoulder-blade of Pelops, we read that, after passing through divers
adventures, being appointed by the oracle of Delphi, as a divine means of
delivering the Eleans from a pestilence under which they suffered, it ”was committed,”
as a sacred relic, ”to the custody” of the man who had fished it out of the
sea, and of his posterity after him. The bones of the Trojan Hector were
preserved as a precious deposit at Thebes. ”They” [the Thebans], says
Pausanias, ”say that his [Hector's] bones were brought hither from Troy, in
consequence of the following oracle: ‘Thebans, who inhabit the city of Cadmus,
if you wish to reside in your country, blest with the possession of blameless
wealth, bring the bones of Hector, the son of Priam, into your dominions from
Asia, and reverence the hero agreeably to the mandate of Jupiter.’” Many other
similar instances from the same author might be adduced. The bones thus
carefully kept and reverenced were all believed to be miracle-working bones. From
the earliest periods, the system of Buddhism has been propped up by relics,
that have wrought miracles at least as well vouched as those wrought by the
relics of St. Stephen, or by the ”Twenty Martyrs.” In the ”Mahawanso,” one of
the great standards of the Buddhist faith, reference is thus made to the
enshrining of the relics of Buddha: ”The vanquisher of foes having perfected
the works to be executed within the relic receptacle, convening an assembly of
the priesthood, thus addressed them: ‘The works that were to be executed by me,
in the relic receptacle, are completed. Tomorrow, I shall enshrine the relics.
Lords, bear in mind the relics.’” Who has not heard of the Holy Coat of Treves,
and its exhibition to the people? From the following, the reader will see that
there was an exactly similar exhibition of the Holy Coat of Buddha: ”Thereupon
(the nephew of the Naga Rajah) by his supernatural gift, springing up into the
air to the height of seven palmyra trees, and stretching out his arm brought to
the spot where he was poised, the Dupathupo (or shrine) in which the DRESS laid
aside by Buddho, as Prince Siddhatto, on his entering the priesthood, was
enshrined…and EXHIBITED IT TO THE PEOPLE.” This ”Holy Coat” of Buddha was no
doubt as genuine, and as well entitled to worship, as the ”Holy Coat” of
Treves. The resemblance does not stop here. It is only a year or two ago since
the Pope presented to his beloved son, Francis Joseph of Austria, a ”TOOTH” of
”St. Peter,” as a mark of his special favour and regard. The teeth of Buddha
are in equal request among his worshippers. ”King of Devas,” said a Buddhist
missionary, who was sent to one of the principal courts of Ceylon to demand a
relic or two from the Rajah, ”King of Devas, thou possessest the right canine
tooth relic (of Buddha), as well as the right collar bone of the divine
teacher. Lord of Devas, demur not in matter involving the salvation of the land
of Lanka.” Then the miraculous efficacy of these relics is shown in the
following: ”The Saviour of the world (Buddha) even after he had attained to
Parinibanan or final emancipation (i.e., after his death), by means of a
corporeal relic, performed infinite acts to the utmost perfection, for the
spiritual comfort and mundane prosperity of mankind. While the Vanquisher
(Jeyus) yet lived, what must he not have done?” Now, in the Asiatic Researches,
a statement is made in regard to these relics of Buddha, which marvellously
reveals to us the real origin of this Buddhist relic worship. The statement is
this: ”The bones or limbs of Buddha were scattered all over the world, like
those of Osiris and Jupiter Zagreus. To collect them was the first duty of his
descendants and followers, and then to entomb them. Out of filial piety, the
remembrance of this mournful search was yearly kept up by a fictitious one,
with all possible marks of grief and sorrow till a priest announced that the
sacred relics were at last found. This is practised to this day by several
Tartarian tribes of the religion of Buddha; and the expression of the bones of
the Son of the Spirit of heaven is peculiar to the Chinese and some tribes in
Tartary.” Here, then, it is evident that the worship of relics is just a part
of those ceremonies instituted to commemorate the tragic death of Osiris or
Nimrod, who, as the reader may remember, was divided into fourteen pieces,
which were sent into so many different regions infected by his apostacy and
false worship, to operate in terrorem upon all who might seek to follow his
example. When the apostates regained their power, the very first thing they did
was to seek for these dismembered relics of the great ringleader in idolatry,
and to entomb them with every mark of devotion. Thus does Plutarch describe the
search: ”Being acquainted with this even [viz., the dismemberment of Osiris],
Isis set out once more in search of the scattered members of her husband’s
body, using a boat made of the papyrus rush in order more easily to pass
through the lower and fenny parts of the country…And one reason assigned for
the different sepulchres of Osiris shown in Egypt is, that wherever any one of
his scattered limbs was discovered she buried it on the spot; though others
suppose that it was owing to an artifice of the queen, who presented each of
those cities with an image of her husband, in order that, if Typho should
overcome Horus in the approaching contest, he might be unable to find the real
sepulchre. Isis succeeded in recovering all the different members, with the
exception of one, which had been devoured by the Lepidotus, the Phagrus, and
the Oxyrhynchus, for which reason these fish are held in abhorrence by the
Egyptians. To make amends, she consecrated the Phallus, and instituted a solemn
festival to its memory.” Not only does this show the real origin of relic
worship it shows also that the multiplication of relics can pretend to the most
venerable antiquity. If, therefore, Rome can boast that she has sixteen or
twenty holy coats, seven or eight arms of St. Matthew, two or three heads of
St. Peter, this is nothing more than Egypt could do in regard to the relics of
Osiris. Egypt was covered with sepulchres of its martyred god; and many a leg
and arm and skull, all vouched to be genuine, were exhibited in the rival
burying-places for the adoration of the Egyptian faithful. Nay, not only were
these Egyptian relics sacred themselves, they CONSECRATED THE VERY GROUND in
which they were entombed. This fact is brought out by Wilkinson, from a
statement of Plutarch: ”The Temple of this deity at Abydos,” says he, ”was also
particularly honoured, and so holy was the place considered by the Egyptians,
that persons living at some distance from it sought, and perhaps with
difficulty obtained, permission to possess a sepulchre within its Necropolis,
in order that, after death, they might repose in GROUND HALLOWED BY THE TOMB of
this great and mysterious deity.” If the places where the relics of Osiris were
buried were accounted peculiarly holy, it is easy to see how naturally this
would give rise to the pilgrimages so frequent among the heathen. The reader
does not need to be told what merit Rome attaches to such pilgrimages to the
tombs of saints, and how, in the Middle Ages, one of the most favourite ways of
washing away sin was to undertake a pilgrimage to the shrine of St. Jago di
Compostella in Spain, or the Holy Sepulchre in Jerusalem. Now, in the Scripture
there is not the slightest trace of any such thing as a pilgrimage to the tomb
of saint, martyr, prophet, or apostle. The very way in which the Lord saw fit
to dispose of the body of Moses in burying it Himself in the plains of Moab, so
that no man should ever known where his sepulchre was, was evidently designed
to rebuke every such feeling as that from which such pilgrimages arise. And
considering whence Israel had come, the Egyptian ideas with which they were
infected, as shown in the matter of the golden calf, and the high reverence
they must have entertained for Moses, the wisdom of God in so disposing of his
body must be apparent. In the land where Israel had so long sojourned, there
were great and pompous pilgrimages at certain season of the year, and these
often attended with gross excesses. Herodotus tells us, that in his time the
multitude who went annually on pilgrimage to Bubastis amounted to 700,000
individuals, and that then more wine was drunk than at any other time in the
year. Wilkinson thus refers to a similar pilgrimage to Philae: ”Besides the
celebration of the great mysteries which took place at Philae, a grand ceremony
was performed at a particular time, when the priests, in solemn procession,
visited his tomb, and crowned it with flowers. Plutarch even pretends that all
access to the island was forbidden at every other period, and that no bird
would fly over it, or fish swim near this CONSECRATED GROUND.” This seems not
to have been a procession merely of the priests in the immediate neighbourhood
of the tomb, but a truly national pilgrimage; for, says Diodorus, ”the
sepulchre of Osiris at Philae is revered by all the priests throughout Egypt.”
We have not the same minute information about the relic worship in Assyria or
Babylon; but we have enough to show that, as it was the Babylonian god that was
worshipped in Egypt under the name of Osiris, so in his own country there was
the same superstitious reverence paid to his relics. We have seen already, that
when the Babylonian Zoroaster died, he was said voluntarily to have given his
life as a sacrifice, and to have ”charged his countrymen to preserve his
remains,” assuring them that on the observance or neglect of this dying
command, the fate of their empire would hinge. And, accordingly, we learn from
Ovid, that the ”Busta Nini,” or ”Tomb of Ninus,” long ages thereafter, was one
of the monuments of Babylon. Now, in comparing the death and fabled
resurrection of the false Messiah with the death and resurrection of the true,
when he actually appeared, it will be found that there is a very remarkable
contrast. When the false Messiah died, limb was severed from limb, and his
bones were scattered over the country. When the death of the true Messiah took
place, Providence so arranged it that the body should be kept entire, and that
the prophetic word should be exactly fulfilled–”a bone of Him shall not be
broken.” When, again, the false Messiah was pretended to have had a resurrection,
that resurrection was in a new body, while the old body, with all its members,
was left behind, thereby showing that the resurrection was nothing but a
pretence and a sham. When, however, the true Messiah was ”declared to be the
Son of God with power, by the resurrection from the dead,” the tomb, though
jealously watched by the armed unbelieving soldiery of Rome, was found to be
absolutely empty, and no dead body of the Lord was ever afterwards found, or
even pretended to have been found. The resurrection of Christ, therefore,
stands on a very different footing from the resurrection of Osiris. Of the body
of Christ, of course, in the nature of the case, there could be no relics.
Rome, however to carry out the Babylonian system, has supplied the deficiency
by means of the relics of the saints; and now the relics of St. Peter and St.
Paul, of St. Thomas A’ Beckett and St. Lawrence O’Toole, occupy the very same
place in the worship of the Papacy as the relics of Osiris in Egypt, or of
Zoroaster in Babylon.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter V
Section III
The Clothing and Crowning of Images
In the Church of Rome, the clothing and crowning of images form no
insignificant part of the ceremonial. The sacred images are not represented,
like ordinary statues, with the garments formed of the same material as
themselves, but they have garments put on them from time to time, like ordinary
mortals of living flesh and blood. Great expense is often lavished on their
drapery; and those who present to them splendid robes are believed thereby to
gain their signal favour, and to lay up a large stock of merit for themselves.
Thus, in September, 1852, we find the duke and Duchess of Montpensier
celebrated in the Tablet, not only for their charity in ”giving 3000 reals in
alms to the poor,” but especially, and above all, for their piety in ”presenting
the Virgin with a magnificent dress of tissue of gold, with white lace and a
silver crown.” Somewhat about the same time the piety of the dissolute Queen of
Spain was testified by a similar benefaction, when she deposited at the feet of
the Queen of Heaven the homage of the dress and jewels she wore on a previous
occasion of solemn thanksgiving, as well as the dress in which she was attired
when she was stabbed by the assassin Merino. ”The mantle,” says the Spanish
journal Espana, ”exhibited the marks of the wound, and its ermine lining was
stained with the precious blood of Her Majesty. In the basket (that bore the
dresses) were likewise the jewels which adorned Her Majesty’s head and breast.
Among them was a diamond stomacher, so exquisitely wrought, and so dazzling,
that it appeared to be wrought of a single stone.” This is all sufficiently
childish, and presents human nature in a most humiliating aspect; but it is
just copied from the old Pagan worship. The same clothing and adorning of the gods
went on in Egypt, and there were sacred persons who alone could be permitted to
interfere with so high a function. Thus, in the Rosetta Stone we find these
sacred functionaries distinctly referred to: ”The chief priests and prophets,
and those who have access to the adytum to clothe the gods,…assembled in the
temple at Memphis, established the following decree.” The ”clothing of the
gods” occupied an equally important place in the sacred ceremonial of ancient
Greece. Thus, we find Pausanias referring to a present made to Minerva: ”In
after times Laodice, the daughter of Agapenor, sent a veil to Tegea, to Minerva
Alea.” The epigram [inscription] on this offering indicates, at the same time,
the origin of Laodice:–
”Laodice, from Cyprus, the
divine,
To her paternal wide-extended land,
This veil–an offering to Minerva–sent.”
Thus, also, when Hecuba, the Trojan queen, in the instance already referred
to, was directed to lead the penitential procession through the streets of Troy
to Minverva’s temple, she was commanded not to go empty-handed, but to carry
along with her, as her most acceptable offering:–
”The largest mantle your full
wardrobes hold,
Most prized for art, and laboured o’er with gold.”
The royal lady punctually obeyed:–
”The Phrygian queen to her rich
wardrobe went,
Where treasured odours breathed a costly scent;
There lay the vestures of no vulgar art;
Sidonian maids embroidered every part,
Whom from soft Sydon youthful Paris bore,
With Helen touching on the Tyrian shore.
Here, as the Queen revolved with careful eyes
The various textures and the various dyes,
She chose a veil that shone superior far,
And glowed refulgent as the morning star.”
There is surely a wonderful resemblance here between the piety of the Queen
of Troy and that of the Queen of Spain. Now, in ancient Paganism there was a
mystery couched under the clothing of the gods. If gods and goddesses were so
much pleased by being clothed, it was because there had once been a time in
their history when they stood greatly in need of clothing. Yes, it can be
distinctly established, as has been already hinted, that ultimately the great
god and great goddess of Heathenism, while the facts of their own history were
interwoven with their idolatrous system, were worshipped also as incarnations
of our great progenitors, whose disastrous fall stripped them of their primeval
glory, and made it needful that the hand Divine should cover their nakedness
with clothing specially prepared for them. I cannot enter here into an
elaborate proof of this point; but let the statement of Herodotus be pondered
in regard to the annual ceremony, observed in Egypt, of slaying a ram, and
clothing the FATHER OF THE GODS with its skin. Compare this statement with the
Divine record in Genesis about the clothing of the ”Father of Mankind” in a
coat of sheepskin; and after all that we have seen of the deification of dead
men, can there be a doubt what it was that was thus annually commemorated?
Nimrod himself, when he was cut in pieces, was necessarily stripped. That
exposure was identified with the nakedness of Noah, and ultimately with that of
Adam. His sufferings were represented as voluntarily undergone for the good of
mankind. His nakedness, therefore, and the nakedness of the ”Father of the
gods,” of whom he was an incarnation, was held to be a voluntary humiliation
too. When, therefore, his suffering was over, and his humiliation past, the
clothing in which he was invested was regarded as a meritorious clothing,
available not only for himself, but for all who were initiated in his
mysteries. In the sacred rites of the Babylonian god, both the exposure and the
clothing that were represented as having taken place, in his own history, were
repeated on all his worshippers, in accordance with the statement of Firmicus,
that the initiated underwent what their god had undergone. First, after being
duly prepared by magic rites and ceremonies, they were ushered, in a state of
absolute nudity, into the innermost recesses of the temple. This appears from
the following statement of Proclus: ”In the most holy of the mysteries, they
say that the mystics at first meet with the many-shaped genera [i.e., with evil
demons], which are hurled forth before the gods: but on entering the interior
parts of the temple, unmoved and guarded by the mystic rites, they genuinely
receive in their bosom divine illumination, and, DIVESTED OF THEIR GARMENTS,
participate, as they would say, of a divine nature.” When the initiated, thus
”illuminated” and made partakers of a ”divine nature,” after being ”divested of
their garments,” were clothed anew, the garments with which they were invested
were looked upon as ”sacred garments,” and possessing distinguished virtues.
”The coat of skin” with which the Father of mankind was divinely invested after
he was made so painfully sensible of his nakedness, was, as all intelligent
theologians admit, a typical emblem of the glorious righteousness of
Christ–”the garment of salvation,” which is ”unto all and upon all them that
believe.” The garments put upon the initiated after their disrobing of their
former clothes, were evidently intended as a counterfeit of the same. ”The
garments of those initiated in the Eleusinian Mysteries,” says Potter, ”were
accounted sacred, and of no less efficacy to avert evils than charms and incantations.
They were never cast off till completely worn out.” And of course, if possible,
in these ”sacred garments” they were buried; for Herodotus, speaking of Egypt,
whence these mysteries were derived, tells us that ”religion” prescribed the
garments of the dead. The efficacy of ”sacred garments” as a means of salvation
and delivering from evil in the unseen and eternal world, occupies a foremost
place in many religions. Thus the Parsees, the fundamental elements of whose
system came from the Chaldean Zoroaster, believe that ”the sadra or sacred
vest” tends essentially to ”preserve the departed soul from the calamities
accruing from Ahriman,” or the Devil; and they represent those who neglect the
use of this ”sacred vest” as suffering in their souls, and ”uttering the most
dreadful and appalling cries,” on account of the torments inflicted on them ”by
all kinds of reptiles and noxious animals, who assail them with their teeth and
stings, and give them not a moment’s respite.” What could have ever led mankind
to attribute such virtue to a ”sacred vest”? If it be admitted that it is just
a perversion of the ”sacred garment” put on our first parents, all is clear.
This, too, accounts for the superstitious feeling in the Papacy, otherwise so
unaccountable, that led so many in the dark ages to fortify themselves against
the fears of the judgment to come, by seeking to be buried in a monk’s dress.
”To be buried in a friar’s cast-off habit, accompanied by letters enrolling the
deceased in a monastic order, was accounted a sure deliverance from eternal
condemnation! In ‘Piers the Ploughman’s Creed,’ a friar is described as
wheedling a poor man out of his money by assuring him that, if he will only
contribute to his monastery,
‘St. Francis himself shall
fold thee in his cope,
And present thee to the Trinity, and pray for thy sins.’”
In virtue of the same superstitious belief, King John of England was buried
in a monk’s cowl; and many a royal and noble personage besides, ”before life
and immortality” were anew ”brought to light” at the Reformation, could think
of no better way to cover their naked and polluted souls in prospect of death,
than by wrapping themselves in the garment of some monk or friar as unholy as
themselves. Now, all these refuges of lies, in Popery as well as Paganism,
taken in connection with the clothing of the saints of the one system, and of
the gods of the other, when traced to their source, show that since sin entered
the world, man has ever felt the need of a better righteousness than his own to
cover him, and that the time was when all the tribes of the earth knew that the
only righteousness that could avail for such a purpose was ”the righteousness
of God,” and that of ”God manifest in the flesh.”
Intimately connected with the ”clothing of the images of the saints” is
also the ”crowning” of them. For the last two centuries, in the Popish
communion, the festivals for crowning the ”sacred images” have been more and
more celebrated. In Florence, a few years ago, the image of the Madonna with
the child in her arms was ”crowned” with unusual pomp and solemnity. Now, this
too arose out of the facts commemorated in the history of Bacchus or Osiris. As
Nimrod was the first king after the Flood, so Bacchus was celebrated as the
first who wore a crown. *
* PLINY, Hist. Nat. Under the name of Saturn, also, the same thing was
attributed to Nimrod.
When, however, he fell into the hands of his enemies, as he was stripped of
all his glory and power, he was stripped also of his crown. The ”Falling of the
crown from the head of Osiris” was specially commemorated in Egypt. That crown
at different times was represented in different ways, but in the most famous
myth of Osiris it was represented as a ”Melilot garland.” Melilot is a species
of trefoil; and trefoil in the Pagan system was one of the emblems of the
Trinity. Among the Tractarians at this day, trefoil is used in the same
symbolical sense as it has long been in the Papacy, from which Puseyism has
borrowed it. Thus, in a blasphemous Popish representation of what is called God
the Father (of the fourteenth century), we find him represented as wearing a
crown with three points, each of which is surmounted with a leaf of white
clover. But long before Tractarianism or Romanism was known, trefoil was a
sacred symbol. The clover leaf was evidently a symbol of high import among the
ancient Persians; for thus we find Herodotus referring to it, in describing the
rites of the Persian Magi–”If any (Persian) intends to offer to a god, he leads
the animal to a consecrated spot. Then, dividing the victim into parts, he
boils the flesh, and lays it upon the most tender herbs, especially TREFOIL.
This done, a magus–without a magus no sacrifice can be performed–sings a sacred
hymn.” In Greece, the clover, or trefoil, in some form or other, had also
occupied an important place; for the rod of Mercury, the conductor of souls, to
which such potency was ascribed, was called ”Rabdos Tripetelos,” or ”the
three-leaved rod.” Among the British Druids the white clover leaf was held in
high esteem as an emblem of their Triune God, and was borrowed from the same
Babylonian source as the rest of their religion. The Melilot, or trefoil
garland, then, with which the head of Osiris was bound, was the crown of the
Trinity–the crown set on his head as the representative of the Eternal–”The
crown of all the earth,” in accordance with the voice divine at his birth, ”The
Lord of all the earth is born.” Now, as that ”Melilot garland,” that crown of
universal dominion, fell ”from his head” before his death, so, when he rose to
new life, the crown must be again set upon his head, and his universal dominion
solemnly avouched. Hence, therefore, came the solemn crowning of the statues of
the great god, and also the laying of the ”chaplet” on his altar, as a trophy
of his recovered ”dominion.” But if the great god was crowned, it was needful
also that the great goddess should receive a similar honour. Therefore it was
fabled that when Bacchus carried his wife Ariadne to heaven, in token of the
high dignity bestowed upon her, he set a crown upon her head; and the
remembrance of this crowning of the wife of the Babylonian god is perpetuated
to this hour by the well-known figure in the sphere called Ariadnoea corona, or
”Ariadne’s crown.” This is, beyond question, the real source of the Popish rite
of crowning the image of the Virgin.
From the fact that the Melilot garland occupied so conspicuous a place in
the myth of Osiris, and that the ”chaplet” was laid on his altar, and his tomb
was ”crowned” with flowers, arose the custom, so prevalent in heathenism, of
adorning the altars of the gods with ”chaplets” of all sorts, and with a gay
profusion of flowers. Side by side with this reason for decorating the altars
with flowers, there was also another. When in
”That fair field
Of Enna, Proserpine gathering flowers,
Herself, a fairer flower, by gloom Dis,
Was gathered;”
and all the flowers she had stored up in her lap were lost, the loss
thereby sustained by the world not only drew forth her own tears, but was
lamented in the Mysteries as a loss of no ordinary kind, a loss which not only
stripped her of her own spiritual glory, but blasted the fertility and beauty
of the earth itself. *
* OVID, Metamorphoses. Ovid speaks of the tears which Proserpine shed when,
on her robe being torn from top to bottom, all the flowers which she had been
gathering up in it fell to the ground, as showing only the simplicity of a
girlish mind. But this is evidently only for the uninitiated. The lamentations
of Ceres, which were intimately connected with the fall of these flowers, and
the curse upon the ground that immediately followed, indicated something
entirely different. But on that I cannot enter here.
That loss, however, the wife of Nimrod, under the name of Astarte, or
Venus, was believed to have more than repaired. Therefore, while the sacred
”chaplet” of the discrowned god was placed in triumph anew on his head and on
his altars, the recovered flowers which Proserpine had lost were also laid on
these altars along with it, in token of gratitude to that mother of grace and
goodness, for the beauty and temporal blessings that the earth owed to her
interposition and love. In Pagan Rome especially this was the case. The altars
were profusely adorned with flowers. From that source directly the Papacy has
borrowed the custom of adorning the altar with flowers; and from the Papacy,
Puseyism, in Protestant England, is labouring to introduce the custom among
ourselves. But, viewing it in connection with its source, surely men with the
slightest spark of Christian feeling may well blush to think of such a thing.
It is not only opposed to the genius of the Gospel dispensation, which requires
that they who worship God, who is a Spirit, ”worship Him in spirit and in
truth”; but it is a direct symbolising with those who rejoiced in the
re-establishment of Paganism in opposition to the worship of the one living and
true God.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter V
Section IV
The Rosary and the Worship of the Sacred Heart
Every one knows how thoroughly Romanist is the use of the rosary; and how
the devotees of Rome mechanically tell their prayers upon their beads. The
rosary, however, is no invention of the Papacy. It is of the highest antiquity,
and almost universally found among Pagan nations. The rosary was used as a
sacred instrument among the ancient Mexicans. It is commonly employed among the
Brahmins of Hindustan; and in the Hindoo sacred books reference is made to it
again and again. Thus, in an account of the death of Sati, the wife of Shiva,
we find the rosary introduced: ”On hearing of this event, Shiva fainted from
grief; then, having recovered, he hastened to the banks of the river of heaven,
where he beheld lying the body of his beloved Sati, arrayed in white garments,
holding a rosary in her hand, and glowing with splendour, bright as burnished
gold.” In Thibet it has been used from time immemorial, and among all the
millions in the East that adhere to the Buddhist faith. The following, from Sir
John F. Davis, will show how it is employed in China: ”From the Tartar religion
of the Lamas, the rosary of 108 beads has become a part of the ceremonial dress
attached to the nine grades of official rank. It consists of a necklace of
stones and coral, nearly as large as a pigeon’s egg, descending to the waist,
and distinguished by various beads, according to the quality of the wearer.
There is a small rosary of eighteen beads, of inferior size, with which the
bonzes count their prayers and ejaculations exactly as in the Romish ritual.
The laity in China sometimes wear this at the wrist, perfumed with musk, and
give it the name of Heang-choo, or fragrant beads.” In Asiatic Greece the
rosary was commonly used, as may be seen from the image of the Ephesian Diana.
In Pagan Rome the same appears to have been the case. The necklaces which the
Roman ladies wore were not merely ornamental bands about the neck, but hung
down the breast, just as the modern rosaries do; and the name by which they
were called indicates the use to which they were applied. ”Monile,” the
ordinary word for a necklace, can have no other meaning than that of a
”Remembrancer.” Now, whatever might be the pretence, in the first instance, for
the introduction of such ”Rosaries” or ”Remembrancers,” the very idea of such a
thing is thoroughly Pagan. * It supposes that a certain number of prayers must
be regularly gone over; it overlooks the grand demand which God makes for the
heart, and leads those who use them to believe that form and routine are
everything, and that ”they must be heard for their much speaking.”
* ”Rosary” itself seems to be from the Chaldee ”Ro,” ”thought,” and
”Shareh,” ”director.”
In the Church of Rome a new kind of devotion has of late been largely
introduced, in which the beads play an important part, and which shows what new
and additional strides in the direction of the old Babylonian Paganism the
Papacy every day is steadily making. I refer to the ”Rosary of the Sacred
Heart.” It is not very long since the worship of the ”Sacred Heart” was first
introduced; and now, everywhere it is the favourite worship. It was so in
ancient Babylon, as is evident from the Babylonian system as it appeared in
Egypt. There also a ”Sacred Heart” was venerated. The ”Heart” was one of the
sacred symbols of Osiris when he was born again, and appeared as Harpocrates,
or the infant divinity, * borne in the arms of his mother Isis.
* The name Harpocrates, as shown by Bunsen, signifies ”Horus, the child.”
Therefore, the fruit of the Egyptian Persea was peculiarly sacred to him,
from its resemblance to the ”HUMAN HEART.” Hence this infant divinity was
frequently represented with a heart, or the heart-shaped fruit of the Persea,
in one of his hands. The following extract, from John Bell’s criticism on the
antiques in the Picture Gallery of Florence, will show that the boyish divinity
had been represented elsewhere also in ancient times in the same manner.
Speaking of a statue of Cupid, he says it is ”a fair, full, fleshy, round boy,
in fine and sportive action, tossing back a heart.” Thus the boy-god came to be
regarded as the ”god of the heart,” in other words, as Cupid, or the god of
love. To identify this infant divinity, with his father ”the mighty hunter,” he
was equipped with ”bow and arrows”; and in the hands of the poets, for the
amusement of the profane vulgar, this sportive boy-god was celebrated as taking
aim with his gold-tipped shafts at the hearts of mankind. His real character,
however, as the above statement shows, and as we have seen reason already to
conclude, was far higher and of a very different kind. He was the woman’s seed.
Venus and her son Cupid, then, were none other than the Madonna and the child.
Looking at the subject in this light, the real force and meaning of the
language will appear, which Virgil puts into the mouth of Venus, when
addressing the youthful Cupid:–
”My son, my strength, whose
mighty power alone
Controls the thunderer on his awful throne,
To thee thy much afflicted mother flies,
And on thy succour and thy faith relies.”
From what we have seen already as to the power and glory of the Goddess
Mother being entirely built on the divine character attributed to her Son, the
reader must see how exactly this is brought out, when the Son is called ”THE
STRENGTH” of his Mother. As the boy-god, whose symbol was the heart, was
recognised as the god of childhood, this very satisfactorily accounts for one
of the peculiar customs of the Romans. Kennett tells us, in his Antiquities,
that the Roman youths, in their tender years, used to wear a golden ornament
suspended from their necks, called bulla, which was hollow, and heart-shaped.
Barker, in his work on Cilicia, while admitting that the Roman bulla was
heart-shaped, further states, that ”it was usual at the birth of a child to
name it after some divine personage, who was supposed to receive it under his
care”; but that the ”name was not retained beyond infancy, when the bulla was
given up.” Who so likely to be the god under whose guardianship the Roman
children were put, as the god under one or other of his many names whose
express symbol they wore, and who, while he was recognised as the great and mighty
war-god, who also exhibited himself in his favourite form as a little child?
The veneration of the ”sacred heart” seems also to have extended to India,
for there Vishnu, the Mediatorial god, in one of his forms, with the mark of
the wound in his foot, in consequence of which he died, and for which such
lamentation is annually made, is represented as wearing a heart suspended on
his breast. It is asked, How came it that the ”Heart” became the recognised
symbol of the Child of the great Mother? The answer is, ”The Heart” in Chaldee
is ”BEL”; and as, at first, after the check given to idolatry, almost all the
most important elements of the Chaldean system were introduced under a veil, so
under that veil they continued to be shrouded from the gaze of the uninitiated,
after the first reason–the reason of fear–had long ceased to operate. Now, the
worship of the ”Sacred Heart” was just, under a symbol, the worship of the
”Sacred Bel,” that mighty one of Babylon, who had died a martyr for idolatry;
for Harpocrates, or Horus, the infant god, was regarded as Bel, born again.
That this was in very deed the case, the following extract from Taylor, in one
of his notes to his translation of the Orphic Hymns, will show. ”While
Bacchus,” says he, was ”beholding himself” with admiration ”in a mirror, he was
miserably torn to pieces by the Titans, who, not content with this cruelty,
first boiled his members in water, and afterwards roasted them in the fire; but
while they were tasting his flesh thus dressed, Jupiter, excited by the steam,
and perceiving the cruelty of the deed, hurled his thunder at the Titans, but
committed his members to Apollo, the brother of Bacchus, that they might be
properly interred. And this being performed, Dionysius [i.e., Bacchus], (whose
HEART, during his laceration, was snatched away by Minerva and preserved) by a
new REGENERATION, again emerged, and he being restored to his pristine life and
integrity, afterwards filled up the number of the gods.” This surely shows, in
a striking light, the peculiar sacredness of the heart of Bacchus; and that the
regeneration of his heart has the very meaning I have attached to it–viz., the
new birth or new incarnation of Nimrod or Bel. When Bel, however was born again
as a child, he was, as we have seen, represented as an incarnation of the sun.
Therefore, to indicate his connection with the fiery and burning sun, the
”sacred heart” was frequently represented as a ”heart of flame.” So the ”Sacred
Heart” of Rome is actually worshipped as a flaming heart, as may be seen on the
rosaries devoted to that worship. Of what use, then, is it to say that the
”Sacred Heart” which Rome worships is called by the name of ”Jesus,” when not
only is the devotion given to a material image borrowed from the worship of the
Babylonian Antichrist, but when the attributes ascribed to that ”Jesus” are not
the attributes of the living and loving Saviour, but the genuine attributes of
the ancient Moloch or Bel?
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter V
Section V
Lamps and Wax-Candles
Another peculiarity of the Papal worship is the use of lamps and wax-candles.
If the Madonna and child are set up in a niche, they must have a lamp to burn
before them; if mass is to be celebrated, though in broad daylight, there must
be wax-candles lighted on the altar; if a grand procession is to be formed, it
cannot be thorough and complete without lighted tapers to grace the goodly
show. The use of these lamps and tapers comes from the same source as all the
rest of the Papal superstition. That which caused the ”Heart,” when it became
an emblem of the incarnate Son, to be represented as a heart on fire, required
also that burning lamps and lighted candles should form part of the worship of
that Son; for so, according to the established rites of Zoroaster, was the
sun-god worshipped. When every Egyptian on the same night was required to light
a lamp before his house in the open air, this was an act of homage to the sun,
that had veiled its glory by enshrouding itself in a human form. When the
Yezidis of Koordistan, at this day, once a year celebrate their festival of
”burning lamps,” that, too, is to the honour of Sheikh Shems, or the Sun. Now,
what on these high occasions was done on a grand scale was also done on a
smaller scale, in the individual acts of worship to their god, by the lighting
of lamps and tapers before the favourite divinity. In Babylon, this practice
had been exceedingly prevalent, as we learn from the Apocryphal writer of the
Book of Baruch. ”They (the Babylonians),” says he, ”light up lamps to their
gods, and that in greater numbers, too, than they do for themselves, although
the gods cannot see one of them, and are senseless as the beams of their
houses.” In Pagan Rome, the same practice was observed. Thus we find Licinius,
the Pagan Emperor, before joining battle with Constantine, his rival, calling a
council of his friends in a thick wood, and there offering sacrifices to his
gods, ”lighting up wax-tapers” before them, and at the same time, in his
speech, giving his gods a hint, that if they did not give him the victory
against Constantine, his enemy and theirs, he would be under the necessity of
abandoning their worship, and lighting up no more ”wax-tapers to their honour.”
In the Pagan processions, also, at Rome, the wax-candles largely figured. ”At
these solemnities,” says Dr. Middleton, referring to Apuleius as his authority,
”at these solemnities, the chief magistrate used frequently to assist, in robes
of ceremony, attended by the priests in surplices, with wax-candles in their
hands, carrying upon a pageant or thensa, the images of their gods, dressed out
in their best clothes; these were usually followed by the principal youth of
the place, in white linen vestments or surplices, singing hymns in honour of
the gods whose festivals they were celebrating, accompanied by crowds of all
sorts that were initiated in the same religion, all with flambeaux or
wax-candles in their hands.” Now, so thoroughly and exclusively Pagan was this
custom of lighting up lamps and candles in daylight, that we find Christian
writers, such as Lactantius, in the fourth century, exposing the absurdity of
the practice, and deriding the Romans ”for lighting up candles to God, as if He
lived in the dark.” Had such a custom at that time gained the least footing
among Christians, Lactantius could never have ridiculed it as he does, as a
practice peculiar to Paganism. But what was unknown to the Christian Church in
the beginning of the fourth century, soon thereafter began to creep in, and now
forms one of the most marked peculiarities of that community that boasts that
it is the ”Mother and mistress of all Churches.”
While Rome uses both lamps and wax-candles in her sacred rites, it is
evident, however, that she attributes some pre-eminent virtue to the latter
above all other lights. Up to the time of the Council of Trent, she thus prayed
on Easter Eve, at the blessing of the Easter candles: ”Calling upon thee in thy
works, this holy Eve of Easter, we offer most humbly unto thy Majesty this
sacrifice; namely, a fire not defiled with the fat of flesh, nor polluted with
unholy oil or ointment, nor attained with any profane fire; but we offer unto
thee with obedience, proceeding from perfect devotion, a fire of wrought WAX
and wick, kindled and made to burn in honour of thy name. This so great a
MYSTERY therefore, and the marvellous sacrament of this holy eve, must needs be
extolled with due and deserved praises.” That there was some occult ”Mystery,”
as is here declared, couched under the ”wax-candles,” in the original system of
idolatry, from which Rome derived its ritual, may be well believed, when it is
observed with what unanimity nations the most remote have agreed to use
wax-candles in their sacred rites. Among the Tungusians, near the Lake Baikal
in Siberia, ”wax-tapers are placed before the Burchans,” the gods or idols of
that country. In the Molucca Islands, wax-tapers are used in the worship of
Nito, or Devil, whom these islanders adore. ”Twenty or thirty persons having
assembled,” says Hurd, ”they summon the Nito, by beating a small consecrated
drum, whilst two or more of the company light up wax-tapers, and pronounce
several mysterious words, which they consider as able to conjure him up.” In
the worship of Ceylon, the use of wax-candles is an indispensable requisite.
”In Ceylon,” says the same author, ”some devotees, who are not priests, erect
chapels for themselves, but in each of them they are obliged to have an image
of Buddha, and light up tapers or wax-candles before it, and adorn it with
flowers.” A practice thus so general must have come from some primeval source,
and must have originally had some mystic reason at the bottom of it. The
wax-candle was, in fact, a hieroglyphic, like so many other things which we
have already seen, and was intended to exhibit the Babylonian god in one of the
essential characters of the Great Mediator. The classic reader may remember
that one of the gods of primeval antiquity was called Ouranos, * that is, ”The
Enlightener.”
* For Aor or our, ”light,” and an, ”to act upon” or produce, the same as
our English particle en, ”to make.” Ouranos, then, is ”The Enlightener.” This
Ouranos is, by Sanchuniathon, the Phoenician, called the son of Elioun–i.e., as
he himself, or Philo-Byblius, interprets the name, ”The Most High.” (SANCH)
Ouranos, in the physical sense, is ”The Shiner”; and by Hesychius it is made
equivalent to Kronos, which also has the same meaning, for Krn, the verb from
which it comes, signifies either ”to put forth horns,” or ”to send forth rays
of light”; and, therefore, while the epithet Kronos, or ”The Horned One,” had
primarily reference to the physical power of Nimrod as a ”mighty” king; when
that king was deified, and made ”Lord of Heaven,” that name, Kronos, was still
applied to him in his new character as ”The Shiner or Lightgiver.” The
distinction made by Hesiod between Ouranos and Kronos, is no argument against
the real substantial identity of these divinities originally as Pagan
divinities; for Herodotus states that Hesiod had a hand in ”inventing a
theogony” for the Greeks, which implies that some at least of the details of
that theogony must have come from his own fancy; and, on examination, it will
be found, when the veil of allegory is removed, that Hesiod’s ”Ouranos,” though
introduced as one of the Pagan gods, was really at bottom the ”God of Heaven,”
the living and true God.
In this very character was Nimrod worshipped when he was deified. As the
Sun-god he was regarded not only as the illuminator of the material world, but
as the enlightener of the souls of men, for he was recognised as the revealer
of ”goodness and truth.” It is evident, from the Old Testament, not less than
the New, that the proper and personal name of our Lord Jesus Christ is, ”The
Word of God,” as the Revealer of the heart and counsels of the Godhead. Now, to
identify the Sun-god with the Great Revealer of the Godhead, while under the
name of Mithra, he was exhibited in sculpture as a Lion; that Lion had a Bee
represented between his lips. The bee between the lips of the sun-god was
intended to point him out as ”the Word”; for Dabar, the expression which signifies
in Chaldee a ”Bee,” signifies also a ”Word”; and the position of that bee in
the mouth leaves no doubt as to the idea intended to be conveyed. It was
intended to impress the belief that Mithra (who, says Plutarch, was worshipped
as Mesites, ”The Mediator”), in his character as Ouranos, ”The Enlightener,”
was no other than that glorious one of whom the Evangelist John says, ”In the
beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God, and the Word was God. The
same was in the beginning with God…In Him was life; and the life was THE LIGHT
OF MEN.” The Lord Jesus Christ ever was the revealer of the Godhead, and must
have been known to the patriarchs as such; for the same Evangelist says, ”No
man hath seen God at any time: the only-begotten Son, which is in the bosom of
the Father, He hath declared,” that is, He hath revealed ”Him.” Before the
Saviour came, the ancient Jews commonly spoke of the Messiah, or the Son of
God, under the name of Dabar, or the ”Word.” This will appear from a
consideration of what is stated in the 3rd chapter of 1st Samuel. In the first
verse of that chapter it is said, ”The WORD of the Lord was precious in those
days; there was no open vision,” that is, in consequence of the sin of Eli, the
Lord had not, for a long time, revealed Himself in vision to him, as He did to
the prophets. When the Lord had called Samuel, this ”vision” of the God of
Israel was restored (though not to Eli), for it is said in the last verse (v
21), ”And the Lord APPEARED again in Shiloh; for the Lord revealed Himself to
Samuel by the WORD of the Lord.” Although the Lord spake to Samuel, this
language implies more than speech, for it is said, ”The LORD appeared”–i.e.,
was seen. When the Lord revealed Himself, or was seen by Samuel, it is said
that it was ”by (Dabar) the Word of the Lord.” The ”Word of the Lord” to be
visible, must have been the personal ”Word of God,” that is, Christ. *
* After the Babylonish captivity, as the Chaldee Targums or Paraphrases of
the Old Testament show, Christ was commonly called by the title ”The Word of
the Lord.” In these Targums of later Chaldee, the term for ”The Word” is
”Mimra”; but this word, though a synonym for that which is used in the Hebrew
Scriptures, is never used there. Dabar is the word employed. This is so well
recognised that, in the Hebrew translation of John’s Gospel in Bagster’s
Polyglott, the first verse runs thus: ”In the beginning was the Word (Dabar).”
This had evidently been a primitive name by which He was known; and
therefore it is not wonderful that Plato should speak of the second person of
his Trinity under the name of the Logos, which is just a translation of
”Dabar,” or ”the Word.” Now, the light of the wax-candle, as the light from
Dabar, ”the Bee,” was set up as the substitute of the light of Dabar, ”the
Word.” Thus the apostates turned away from the ”True Light,” and set up a
shadow in His stead. That this was really the case is plain; for, says Crabb,
speaking of Saturn, ”on his altars were placed wax-tapers lighted, because by
Saturn men were reduced from the darkness of error to the light of truth.” In
Asiatic Greece, the Babylonian god was evidently recognised as the Light-giving
”Word,” for there we find the Bee occupying such a position as makes it very
clear that it was a symbol of the great Revealer. Thus we find Muller referring
to the symbols connected with the worship of the Ephesian Diana: ”Her constant
symbol is the bee, which is not otherwise attributed to Diana…The chief priest
himself was called Essen, or the king-bee.” The character of the chief priest
shows the character of the god he represented. The contemplar divinity of
Diana, the tower-bearing goddess, was of course the same divinity as invariably
accompanied the Babylonian goddess: and this title of the priest shows that the
Bee which appeared on her medals was just another symbol for her child, as the
”Seed of the Woman,” in his assumed character, as Dabar, ”The Word” that
enlightened the souls of men. That this is the precise ”Mystery” couched under
the wax-candles burning on the altars of the Papacy, we have very remarkable
evidence from its own formularies; for, in the very same place in which the
”Mystery” of the wax-candle is spoken of, thus does Rome refer to the Bee, by
which the wax is produced: ”Forasmuch as we do marvellously wonder, in
considering the first beginning of this substance, to wit, wax-tapers, then
must we of necessity greatly extol the original of Bees, for…they gather the
flowers with their feet, yet the flowers are not injured thereby; they bring
forth no young ones, but deliver their young swarms through their mouths, like
as Christ (for a wonderful example) is proceeded from His Father’s MOUTH.” *
* Review of Epistle of DR. GENTIANUS HARVET of Louvaine. This work, which
is commonly called The Beehive of the Roman Church, contains the original Latin
of the passage translated above. The passage in question is to be found in at
least two Roman Missals, which, however, are now very rare–viz., one printed at
Vienna in 1506, with which the quotation in the text has been compared and
verified; and one printed at Venice in 1522. These dates are antecedent to the
establishment of the Reformation; and it appears that this passage was expunged
from subsequent editions, as being unfit to stand the searching scrutiny to which
everything in regard to religion was subjected in consequence of that great
event. The ceremonial of blessing the candles, however, which has no place in
the Pontificale Romanum in the Edinburgh Advocates’ Library, is to be found in
the Pontificale Romanum, Venice, 1542, and in Pontificale Romanum, Venice,
1572. In the ceremony of blessing the candles, given in the Roman Missal,
printed at Paris, 1677, there is great praise of the Bee, strongly resembling
the passage quoted in the text. The introduction of such an extraordinary
formula into a religious ceremony is of very ancient date, and is distinctly
traced to an Italian source; for, in the words of the Popish Bishop Ennodius,
who occupied an Italian diocese in the sixth century, we find the counterpart
of that under consideration. Thus, in a prayer in regard to the ”Easter
Candle,” the reason for offering up the wax-candle is expressly declared to be,
because that through means of the bees that produce the wax of which it is
made, ”earth has an image of what is PECULIAR TO HEAVEN,” and that in regard to
the very subject of GENERATION; the bees being able, ”through the virtue of
herbs, to pour forth their young through their MOUTHS with less waste of time
than all other creatures do in the ordinary way.” This prayer contains the
precise idea of the prayer in the text; and there is only one way of accounting
for the origin of such an idea. It must have come from a Chaldean Liturgy.
Here it is evident that Christ is referred to as the ”Word of God”; and how
could any imagination ever have conceived such a parallel as is contained in
this passage, had it not been for the equivoque [wordplay, double meaning]
between ”Dabar,” ”the Bee,” and ”Dabar,” ”The Word.” In a Popish work already
quoted, the Pancarpium Marianum, I find the Lord Jesus expressly called by the
name of the Bee. Referring to Mary, under the title of ”The Paradise of
Delight,” the author thus speaks: ”In this Paradise that celestial Bee, that
is, the incarnate Wisdom, did feed. Here it found that dropping honeycomb, with
which the whole bitterness of the corrupted world has been turned into
sweetness.” This blasphemously represents the Lord Jesus as having derived
everything necessary to bless the world from His mother! Could this ever have come
from the Bible? No. It must have come only from the source where the writer
learned to call ”the incarnate Wisdom” by the name of the Bee. Now, as the
equivoque from which such a name applied to the Lord Jesus springs, is founded
only on the Babylonian tongue, it shows whence his theology has come, and it
proves also to demonstration that this whole prayer about the blessing of
wax-candles must have been drawn from a Babylonian prayer-book. Surely, at
every step, the reader must see more and more the exactitude of the Divine name
given to the woman on the seven mountains, ”Mystery, Babylon the Great”!
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter V
Section VI
The Sign of the Cross
There is yet one more symbol of the Romish worship to be noticed, and that
is the sign of the cross. In the Papal system as is well known, the sign of the
cross and the image of the cross are all in all. No prayer can be said, no
worship engaged in, no step almost can be taken, without the frequent use of
the sign of the cross. The cross is looked upon as the grand charm, as the
great refuge in every season of danger, in every hour of temptation as the
infallible preservative from all the powers of darkness. The cross is adored
with all the homage due only to the Most High; and for any one to call it, in
the hearing of a genuine Romanist, by the Scriptural term, ”the accursed tree,”
is a mortal offence. To say that such superstitious feeling for the sign of the
cross, such worship as Rome pays to a wooden or a metal cross, ever grew out of
the saying of Paul, ”God forbid that I should glory, save in the cross of our
Lord Jesus Christ”–that is, in the doctrine of Christ crucified–is a mere
absurdity, a shallow subterfuge and pretence. The magic virtues attributed to
the so-called sign of the cross, the worship bestowed on it, never came from
such a source. The same sign of the cross that Rome now worships was used in
the Babylonian Mysteries, was applied by Paganism to the same magic purposes,
was honoured with the same honours. That which is now called the Christian
cross was originally no Christian emblem at all, but was the mystic Tau of the
Chaldeans and Egyptians–the true original form of the letter T–the initial of
the name of Tammuz–which, in Hebrew, radically the same as ancient Chaldee, was
found on coins. That mystic Tau was marked in baptism on the foreheads of those
initiated in the Mysteries, * and was used in every variety of way as a most
sacred symbol.
* TERTULLIAN, De Proescript. Hoeret. The language of Tertullian implies
that those who were initiated by baptism in the Mysteries were marked on the
forehead in the same way, as his Christian countrymen in Africa, who had begun
by this time to be marked in baptism with the sign of the cross.
To identify Tammuz with the sun it was joined sometimes to the circle of
the sun; sometimes it was inserted in the circle. Whether the Maltese cross,
which the Romish bishops append to their names as a symbol of their episcopal
dignity, is the letter T, may be doubtful; but there seems no reason to doubt
that that Maltese cross is an express symbol of the sun; for Layard found it as
a sacred symbol in Nineveh in such a connection as led him to identify it with
the sun. The mystic Tau, as the symbol of the great divinity, was called ”the
sign of life”; it was used as an amulet over the heart; it was marked on the official
garments of the priests, as on the official garments of the priests of Rome; it
was borne by kings in their hand, as a token of their dignity or
divinely-conferred authority. The Vestal virgins of Pagan Rome wore it
suspended from their necklaces, as the nuns do now. The Egyptians did the same,
and many of the barbarous nations with whom they had intercourse, as the
Egyptian monuments bear witness. In reference to the adorning of some of these
tribes, Wilkinson thus writes: ”The girdle was sometimes highly ornamented; men
as well as women wore earrings; and they frequently had a small cross suspended
to a necklace, or to the collar of their dress. The adoption of this last was
not peculiar to them; it was also appended to, or figured upon, the robes of
the Rot-n-no; and traces of it may be seen in the fancy ornaments of the Rebo,
showing that it was already in use as early as the fifteenth century before the
Christian era.” There is hardly a Pagan tribe where the cross has not been
found. The cross was worshipped by the Pagan Celts long before the incarnation
and death of Christ. ”It is a fact,” says Maurice, ”not less remarkable than
well-attested, that the Druids in their groves were accustomed to select the
most stately and beautiful tree as an emblem of the Deity they adored, and
having cut the side branches, they affixed two of the largest of them to the
highest part of the trunk, in such a manner that those branches extended on
each side like the arms of a man, and, together with the body, presented the
appearance of a HUGE CROSS, and on the bark, in several places, was also
inscribed the letter Thau.” It was worshipped in Mexico for ages before the
Roman Catholic missionaries set foot there, large stone crosses being erected,
probably to the ”god of rain.” The cross thus widely worshipped, or regarded as
a sacred emblem, was the unequivocal symbol of Bacchus, the Babylonian Messiah,
for he was represented with a head-band covered with crosses. This symbol of
the Babylonian god is reverenced at this day in all the wide wastes of Tartary,
where Buddhism prevails, and the way in which it is represented among them
forms a striking commentary on the language applied by Rome to the Cross. ”The
cross,” says Colonel Wilford, in the Asiatic Researches, ”though not an object
of worship among the Baud’has or Buddhists, is a favourite emblem and device
among them. It is exactly the cross of the Manicheans, with leaves and flowers
springing from it. This cross, putting forth leaves and flowers (and fruit
also, as I am told), is called the divine tree, the tree of the gods, the tree
of life and knowledge, and productive of whatever is good and desirable, and is
placed in the terrestrial paradise.” Compare this with the language of Rome
applied to the cross, and it will be seen how exact is the coincidence. In the
Office of the Cross, it is called the ”Tree of life,” and the worshippers are
taught thus to address it: ”Hail, O Cross, triumphal wood, true salvation of
the world, among trees there is none like thee in leaf, flower, and bud…O
Cross, our only hope, increase righteousness to the godly and pardon the
offences of the guilty.” *
* The above was actually versified by the Romanisers in the Church of
England, and published along with much besides from the same source, some years
ago, in a volume entitled Devotions on the Passion. The London Record, of
April, 1842, gave the following as a specimen of the ”Devotions” provided by
these ”wolves in sheep’s clothing” for members of the Church of England:–
”O faithful cross, thou
peerless tree,
No forest yields the like of thee,
Leaf, flower, and bud;
Sweet is the wood, and sweet the weight,
And sweet the nails that penetrate
Thee, thou sweet wood.”
Can any one, reading the gospel narrative of the crucifixion, possibly believe
that that narrative of itself could ever germinate into such extravagance of
”leaf, flower, and bud,” as thus appears in this Roman Office? But when it is
considered that the Buddhist, like the Babylonian cross, was the recognised
emblem of Tammuz, who was known as the mistletoe branch, or ”All-heal,” then it
is easy to see how the sacred Initial should be represented as covered with
leaves, and how Rome, in adopting it, should call it the ”Medicine which
preserves the healthful, heals the sick, and does what mere human power alone
could never do.”
Now, this Pagan symbol seems first to have crept into the Christian Church
in Egypt, and generally into Africa. A statement of Tertullian, about the
middle of the third century, shows how much, by that time, the Church of
Carthage was infected with the old leaven. Egypt especially, which was never
thoroughly evangelised, appears to have taken the lead in bringing in this
Pagan symbol. The first form of that which is called the Christian Cross, found
on Christian monuments there, is the unequivocal Pagan Tau, or Egyptian ”Sign
of life.” Let the reader peruse the following statement of Sir G. Wilkinson: ”A
still more curious fact may be mentioned respecting this hieroglyphical
character [the Tau], that the early Christians of Egypt adopted it in lieu of
the cross, which was afterwards substituted for it, prefixing it to
inscriptions in the same manner as the cross in later times. For, though Dr.
Young had some scruples in believing the statement of Sir A. Edmonstone, that
it holds that position in the sepulchres of the great Oasis, I can attest that
such is the case, and that numerous inscriptions, headed by the Tau, are
preserved to the present day on early Christian monuments.” The drift of this
statement is evidently this, that in Egypt the earliest form of that which has
since been called the cross, was no other than the ”Crux Ansata,” or ”Sign of
life,” borne by Osiris and all the Egyptian gods; that the ansa or ”handle” was
afterwards dispensed with, and that it became the simple Tau, or ordinary
cross, as it appears at this day, and that the design of its first employment
on the sepulchres, therefore, could have no reference to the crucifixion of the
Nazarene, but was simply the result of the attachment to old and long-cherished
Pagan symbols, which is always strong in those who, with the adoption of the
Christian name and profession, are still, to a large extent, Pagan in heart and
feeling. This, and this only, is the origin of the worship of the ”cross.”
This, no doubt, will appear all very strange and very incredible to those
who have read Church history, as most have done to a large extent, even amongst
Protestants, through Romish spectacles; and especially to those who call to
mind the famous story told of the miraculous appearance of the cross to
Constantine on the day before the decisive victory at the Milvian bridge, that
decided the fortunes of avowed Paganism and nominal Christianity. That story,
as commonly told, if true, would certainly give a Divine sanction to the
reverence for the cross. But that story, when sifted to the bottom, according
to the common version of it, will be found to be based on a delusion–a
delusion, however, into which so good a man as Milner has allowed himself to
fall. Milner’s account is as follows: ”Constantine, marching from France into
Italy against Maxentius, in an expedition which was likely either to exalt or
to ruin him, was oppressed with anxiety. Some god he thought needful to protect
him; the God of the Christians he was most inclined to respect, but he wanted
some satisfactory proof of His real existence and power, and he neither
understood the means of acquiring this, nor could he be content with the
atheistic indifference in which so many generals and heroes since his time have
acquiesced. He prayed, he implored with such vehemence and importunity, and God
left him not unanswered. While he was marching with his forces in the
afternoon, the trophy of the cross appeared very luminous in the heavens,
brighter than the sun, with this inscription, ‘Conquer by this.’ He and his
soldiers were astonished at the sight; but he continued pondering on the event
till night. And Christ appeared to him when asleep with the same sign of the
cross, and directed him to make use of the symbol as his military ensign.” Such
is the statement of Milner. Now, in regard to the ”trophy of the cross,” a few
words will suffice to show that it is utterly unfounded. I do not think it
necessary to dispute the fact of some miraculous sign having been given. There
may, or there may not, have been on this occasion a ”dignus vindice nodus,” a
crisis worthy of a Divine interposition. Whether, however, there was anything
out of the ordinary course, I do not inquire. But this I say, on the
supposition that Constantine in this matter acted in good faith, and that there
actually was a miraculous appearance in the heavens, that it as not the sign of
the cross that was seen, but quite a different thing, the name of Christ. That
this was the case, we have at once the testimony of Lactantius, who was the
tutor of Constantine’s son Crispus–the earliest author who gives any account of
the matter, and the indisputable evidence of the standards of Constantine
themselves, as handed down to us on medals struck at the time. The testimony of
Lactantius is most decisive: ”Constantine was warned in a dream to make the
celestial sign of God upon his solders’ shields, and so to join battle. He did
as he was bid, and with the transverse letter X circumflecting the head of it,
he marks Christ on their shields. Equipped with this sign, his army takes the
sword.” Now, the letter X was just the initial of the name of Christ, being
equivalent in Greek to CH. If, therefore, Constantine did as he was bid, when
he made ”the celestial sign of God” in the form of ”the letter X,” it was that
”letter X,” as the symbol of ”Christ” and not the sign of the cross, which he
saw in the heavens. When the Labarum, or far-famed standard of Constantine
itself, properly so called, was made, we have the evidence of Ambrose, the
well-known Bishop of Milan, that that standard was formed on the very principle
contained in the statement of Lactantius–viz., simply to display the Redeemer’s
name. He calls it ”Labarum, hoc est Christi sacratum nomine signum.”–”The
Labarum, that is, the ensign consecrated by the NAME of Christ.” *
* Epistle of Ambrose to the Emperor Theodosius about the proposal to
restore the Pagan altar of Victory in the Roman Senate. The subject of the
Labarum has been much confused through ignorance of the meaning of the word.
Bryant assumes (and I was myself formerly led away by the assumption) that it
was applied to the standard bearing the crescent and the cross, but he produces
no evidence for the assumption; and I am now satisfied that none can be
produced. The name Labarum, which is generally believed to have come from the
East, treated as an Oriental word, gives forth its meaning at once. It
evidently comes from Lab, ”to vibrate,” or ”move to and fro,” and ar ”to be
active.” Interpreted thus, Labarum signifies simply a banner or flag, ”waving
to and fro” in the wind, and this entirely agrees with the language of Ambrose
”an ensign consecrated by the name of Christ,” which implies a banner.
There is not the slightest allusion to any cross–to anything but the simple
name of Christ. While we have these testimonies of Lactantius and Ambrose, when
we come to examine the standard of Constantine, we find the accounts of both
authors fully borne out; we find that that standard, bearing on it these very
words, ”Hoc signo victor eris,” ”In this sign thou shalt be a conqueror,” said
to have been addressed from heaven to the emperor, has nothing at all in the
shape of a cross, but ”the letter X.” In the Roman Catacombs, on a Christian
monument to ”Sinphonia and her sons,” there is a distinct allusion to the story
of the vision; but that allusion also shows that the X, and not the cross, was
regarded as the ”heavenly sign.” The words at the head of the inscription are
these: ”In Hoc Vinces [In this thou shalt overcome] X.” Nothing whatever but
the X is here given as the ”Victorious Sign.” There are some examples, no
doubt, of Constantine’s standard, in which there is a cross-bar, from which the
flag is suspended, that contains that ”letter X”; and Eusebius, who wrote when
superstition and apostacy were working, tries hard to make it appear that that
cross-bar was the essential element in the ensign of Constantine. But this is
obviously a mistake; that cross-bar was nothing new, nothing peculiar to Constantine’s
standard. Tertullian shows that that cross-bar was found long before on the
vexillum, the Roman Pagan standard, that carried a flag; and it was used simply
for the purpose of displaying that flag. If, therefore, that cross-bar was the
”celestial sign,” it needed no voice from heaven to direct Constantine to make
it; nor would the making or displaying of it have excited any particular
attention on the part of those who saw it. We find no evidence at all that the
famous legend, ”In this overcome,” has any reference to this cross-bar; but we
find evidence the most decisive that that legend does refer to the X. Now, that
that X was not intended as the sign of the cross, but as the initial of
Christ’s name, is manifest from this, that the Greek P, equivalent to our R, is
inserted in the middle of it, making by their union CHR. The standard of
Constantine, then, was just the name of Christ. Whether the device came from
earth or from heaven–whether it was suggested by human wisdom or Divine,
supposing that Constantine was sincere in his Christian profession, nothing
more was implied in it than a literal embodiment of the sentiment of the
Psalmist, ”In the name of the Lord will we display our banners.” To display
that name on the standards of Imperial Rome was a thing absolutely new; and the
sight of that name, there can be little doubt, nerved the Christian soldiers in
Constantine’s army with more than usual fire to fight and conquer at the
Milvian bridge.
In the above remarks I have gone on the supposition that Constantine acted
in good faith as a Christian. His good faith, however, has been questioned; and
I am not without my suspicions that the X may have been intended to have one
meaning to the Christians and another to the Pagans. It is certain that the X was
the symbol of the god Ham in Egypt, and as such was exhibited on the breast of
his image. Whichever view be taken, however, of Constantine’s sincerity, the
supposed Divine warrant for reverencing the sign of the cross entirely falls to
the ground. In regard to the X, there is no doubt that, by the Christians who
knew nothing of secret plots or devices, it was generally taken, as Lactantius
declares, as equivalent to the name of ”Christ.” In this view, therefore, it
had no very great attractions for the Pagans, who, even in worshipping Horus,
had always been accustomed to make use of the mystic tau or cross, as the ”sign
of life,” or the magical charm that secured all that was good, and warded off
everything that was evil. When, therefore, multitudes of the Pagans, on the
conversion of Constantine, flocked into the Church, like the semi-Pagans of
Egypt, they brought along with them their predilection for the old symbol. The
consequence was, that in no great length of time, as apostacy proceeded, the X
which in itself was not an unnatural symbol of Christ, the true Messiah, and
which had once been regarded as such, was allowed to go entirely into disuse,
and the Tau, the sign of the cross, the indisputable sign of Tammuz, the false
Messiah, was everywhere substituted in its stead. Thus, by the ”sign of the
cross,” Christ has been crucified anew by those who profess to be His
disciples. Now, if these things be matter of historic fact, who can wonder
that, in the Romish Church, ”the sign of the cross” has always and everywhere
been seen to be such an instrument of rank superstition and delusion?
There is more, much more, in the rites and ceremonies of Rome that might be
brought to elucidate our subject. But the above may suffice. *
* If the above remarks be well founded, surely it cannot be right that this
sign of the cross, or emblem of Tammuz, should be used in Christian baptism. At
the period of the Revolution, a Royal Commission, appointed to inquire into the
Rites and Ceremonies of the Church of England, numbering among its members
eight or ten bishops, strongly recommended that the use of the cross, as
tending to superstition, should be laid aside. If such a recommendation was
given then, and that by such authority as members of the Church of England must
respect, how much ought that recommendation to be enforced by the new light
which Providence has cast on the subject!
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VI
Section I
The Sovereign Pontiff
The gift of the ministry is one of the greatest gifts which Christ has
bestowed upon the world. It is in reference to this that the Psalmist,
predicting the ascension of Christ, thus loftily speaks of its blessed results:
”Thou hast ascended up on high: Thou hast led captivity captive; Thou hast
received gifts for men, even for the rebellious, that the Lord God might dwell
among them” (Eph 4:8-11). The Church of Rome, at its first planting, had the
divinely bestowed gift of a Scriptural ministry and government; and then ”its
faith was spoken of throughout the whole world”; its works of righteousness
were both rich and abundant. But, in an evil hour, the Babylonian element was
admitted into its ministry, and thenceforth, that which had been intended as a
blessing, was converted into a curse. Since then, instead of sanctifying men,
it has only been the means of demoralising them, and making them ”twofold more
the children of hell” than they would have been had they been left simply to
themselves.
If there be any who imagine that there is some occult and mysterious virtue
in an apostolic succession that comes through the Papacy, let them seriously
consider the real character of the Pope’s own orders, and of those of his
bishops and clergy. From the Pope downwards, all can be shown to be now
radically Babylonian. The College of Cardinals, with the Pope at its head, is
just the counterpart of the Pagan College of Pontiffs, with its ”Pontifex
Maximus,” or ”Sovereign Pontiff,” which had existed in Rome from the earliest
times, and which is known to have been framed on the model of the grand
original Council of Pontiffs at Babylon. The Pope now pretends to supremacy in
the Church as the successor of Peter, to whom it is alleged that our Lord
exclusively committed the keys of the kingdom of heaven. But here is the
important fact that, till the Pope was invested with the title, which for a
thousand years had had attached to it the power of the keys of Janus and
Cybele, * no such claim to pre-eminence, or anything approaching to it, was
ever publicly made on his part, on the ground of his being the possessor of the
keys bestowed on Peter.
* It was only in the second century before the Christian era that the
worship of Cybele, under that name, was introduced into Rome; but the same
goddess, under the name of Cardea, with the ”power of the key,” was worshipped
in Rome, along with Janus, ages before. OVID’s Fasti
Very early, indeed, did the bishop of Rome show a proud and ambitious
spirit; but, for the first three centuries, their claim for superior honour was
founded simply on the dignity of their see, as being that of the imperial city,
the capital of the Roman world. When, however, the seat of empire was removed
to the East, and Constantinople threatened to eclipse Rome, some new ground for
maintaining the dignity of the Bishop of Rome must be sought. That new ground
was found, when, about 378, the Pope fell heir to the keys that were the
symbols of two well-known Pagan divinities at Rome. Janus bore a key, and
Cybele bore a key; and these are the two keys that the Pope emblazons on his
arms as the ensigns of his spiritual authority. How the Pope came to be regarded
as wielding the power of these keys will appear in the sequel; but that he did,
in the popular apprehension, become entitled to that power at the period
referred to is certain. Now, when he had come, in the estimation of the Pagans,
to occupy the place of the representatives of Janus and Cybele, and therefore
to be entitled to bear their keys, the Pope saw that if he could only get it
believed among the Christians that Peter alone had the power of the keys, and
that he was Peter’s successor, then the sight of these keys would keep up the
delusion, and thus, though the temporal dignity of Rome as a city should decay,
his own dignity as the Bishop of Rome would be more firmly established than
ever. On this policy it is evident he acted. Some time was allowed to pass
away, and then, when the secret working of the Mystery of iniquity had prepared
the way for it, for the first time did the Pope publicly assert his
pre-eminence, as founded on the keys given to Peter. About 378 was he raised to
the position which gave him, in Pagan estimation, the power of the keys
referred to. In 432, and not before, did he publicly lay claim to the
possession of Peter’s keys. This, surely, is a striking coincidence. Does the
reader ask how it was possible that men could give credit to such a baseless
assumption? The words of Scripture, in regard to this very subject, give a very
solemn but satisfactory answer (2 Thess 2:10,11): ”Because they received not
the love of the truth, that they might be saved…For this cause God shall send
them strong delusion, that they should believe a lie.” Few lies could be more
gross; but, in course of time, it came to be widely believed; and now, as the
statue of Jupiter is worshipped at Rome as the veritable image of Peter, so the
keys of Janus and Cybele have for ages been devoutly believed to represent the
keys of the same apostle.
While nothing but judicial infatuation can account for the credulity of the
Christians in regarding these keys as emblems of an exclusive power given by
Christ to the Pope through Peter, it is not difficult to see how the Pagans
would rally round the Pope all the more readily when they heard him found his
power on the possession of Peter’s keys. The keys that the Pope bore were the
keys of a ”Peter” well known to the Pagans initiated in the Chaldean Mysteries.
That Peter the apostle was ever Bishop of Rome has been proved again and again
to be an arrant fable. That he ever even set foot in Rome is at the best highly
doubtful. His visit to that city rests on no better authority than that of a
writer at the end of the second century or beginning of the third–viz., the
author of the work called The Clementines, who gravely tells us that on the
occasion of his visit, finding Simon Magus there, the apostle challenged him to
give proof of his miraculous or magical powers, whereupon the sorcerer flew up
into the air, and Peter brought him down in such hast that his leg was broken.
All historians of repute have at once rejected this story of the apostolic
encounter with the magician as being destitute of all contemporary evidence;
but as the visit of Peter to Rome rests on the same authority, it must stand or
fall along with it, or, at least, it must be admitted to be extremely doubtful.
But, while this is the case with Peter the Christian, it can be shown to be by
no means doubtful that before the Christian era, and downwards, there was a
”Peter” at Rome, who occupied the highest place in the Pagan priesthood. The
priest who explained the Mysteries to the initiated was sometimes called by a
Greek term, the Hierophant; but in primitive Chaldee, the real language of the
Mysteries, his title, as pronounced without the points, was ”Peter”–i.e., ”the
interpreter.” As the revealer of that which was hidden, nothing was more
natural than that, while opening up the esoteric doctrine of the Mysteries, he
should be decorated with the keys of the two divinities whose mysteries he
unfolded. *
* The Turkish Mufties, or ”interpreters” of the Koran, derive that name
from the very same verb as that from which comes Miftah, a key.
Thus we may see how the keys of Janus and Cybele would come to be known as
the keys of Peter, the ”interpreter” of the Mysteries. Yea, we have the
strongest evidence that, in countries far removed from one another, and far distant
from Rome, these keys were known by initiated Pagans not merely as the ”keys of
Peter,” but as the keys of a Peter identified with Rome. In the Eleusinian
Mysteries at Athens, when the candidates for initiation were instructed in the
secret doctrine of Paganism, the explanation of that doctrine was read to them
out of a book called by ordinary writers the ”Book Petroma”; that is, as we are
told, a book formed of stone. But this is evidently just a play upon words,
according to the usual spirit of Paganism, intended to amuse the vulgar. The
nature of the case, and the history of the Mysteries, alike show that this book
could be none other than the ”Book Pet-Roma”; that is, the ”Book of the Grand
Interpreter,” in other words, of Hermes Trismegistus, the great ”Interpreter of
the Gods.” In Egypt, from which Athens derived its religion, the books of
Hermes were regarded as the divine fountain of all true knowledge of the
Mysteries. * In Egypt, therefore, Hermes was looked up to in this very
character of Grand Interpreter, or ”Peter-Roma.” ** In Athens, Hermes, as its
well known, occupied precisely the same place, *** and, of course, in the
sacred language, must have been known by the same title.
* The following are the authorities for the statement in the text:
”Jamblichus says that Hermes [i.e., the Egyptian] was the god of all celestial
knowledge, which, being communicated by him to his priests, authorised them to
inscribe their commentaries with the name of Hermes” (WILKINSON). Again,
according to the fabulous accounts of the Egyptian Mercury, he was reported…to
have taught men the proper mode of approaching the Deity with prayers and
sacrifice (WILKINSON). Hermes Trismegistus seems to have been regarded as a new
incarnation of Thoth, and possessed of higher honours. The principal books of
this Hermes, according to Clemens of Alexandria, were treated by the Egyptians
with the most profound respect, and carried in their religious processions
(CLEM., ALEX., Strom.).
** In Egypt, ”Petr” was used in this very sense. See BUNSEN, Hieroglyph,
where Ptr is said to signify ”to show.” The interpreter was called
Hierophantes, which has the very idea of ”showing” in it.
*** The Athenian or Grecian Hermes is celebrated as ”The source of
invention…He bestows, too, mathesis on souls, by unfolding the will of the
father of Jupiter, and this he accomplishes as the angel or messenger of
Jupiter…He is the guardian of disciplines, because the invention of geometry,
reasoning, and language is referred to this god. He presides, therefore, over
every species of erudition, leading us to an intelligible essence from this
mortal abode, governing the different herds of souls” (PROCLUS in Commentary on
First Alcibiades, TAYLOR’S Orphic Hymns). The Grecian Hermes was so essentially
the revealer or interpreter of divine things, that Hermeneutes, an interpreter,
was currently said to come from his name (HYGINUS).
The priest, therefore, that in the name of Hermes explained the Mysteries,
must have been decked not only with the keys of Peter, but with the keys of
”Peter-Roma.” Here, then, the famous ”Book of Stone” begins to appear in a new
light, and not only so, but to shed new light on one of the darkest and most
puzzling passages of Papal history. It has always been a matter of amazement to
candid historical inquirers how it could ever have come to pass that the name
of Peter should be associated with Rome in the way in which it is found from
the fourth century downwards–how so many in different countries had been led to
believe that Peter, who was an ”apostle of the circumcision,” had apostatised
from his Divine commission, and become bishop of a Gentile Church, and that he
should be the spiritual ruler in Rome, when no satisfactory evidence could be
found for his ever having been in Rome at all. But the book of ”Peter-Roma”
accounts for what otherwise is entirely inexplicable. The existence of such a
title was too valuable to be overlooked by the Papacy; and, according to its
usual policy, it was sure, if it had the opportunity, to turn it to the account
of its own aggrandisement. And that opportunity it had. When the Pope came, as
he did, into intimate connection with the Pagan priesthood; when they came at
last, as we shall see they did, under his control, what more natural than to
seek not only to reconcile Paganism and Christianity, but to make it appear
that the Pagan ”Peter-Roma,” with his keys, meant ”Peter of Rome,” and that
that ”Peter of Rome” was the very apostle to whom the Lord Jesus Christ gave
the ”keys of the kingdom of heaven”? Hence, from the mere jingle of words,
persons and things essentially different were confounded; and Paganism and
Christianity jumbled together, that the towering ambition of a wicked priest
might be gratified; and so, to the blinded Christians of the apostacy, the Pope
was the representative of Peter the apostle, while to the initiated pagans, he
was only the representative of Peter, the interpreter of their well known
Mysteries. Thus was the Pope the express counterpart of ”Janus, the
double-faced.” Oh! what an emphasis of meaning in the Scriptural expression, as
applied to the Papacy, ”The Mystery of Iniquity”!
The reader will now be prepared to understand how it is that the Pope’s
Grand Council of State, which assists him in the government of the Church, comes
to be called the College of Cardinals. The term Cardinal is derived from Cardo,
a hinge. Janus, whose key the Pope bears, was the god of doors and hinges, and
was called Patulcius, and Clusius ”the opener and the shutter.” This had a
blasphemous meaning, for he was worshipped at Rome as the grand mediator.
Whatever important business was in hand, whatever deity was to be invoked, an
invocation first of all must be addressed to Janus, who was recognised as the
”God of gods,” in whose mysterious divinity the characters of father and son
were combined, and without that no prayer could be heard–the ”door of heaven”
could not be opened. It was this same god whose worship prevailed so
exceedingly in Asia Minor at the time when our Lord sent, by his servant John,
the seven Apocalyptic messages to the churches established in that region. And,
therefore, in one of these messages we find Him tacitly rebuking the profane
ascription of His own peculiar dignity to that divinity, and asserting His
exclusive claim to the prerogative usually attributed to His rival. Thus,
Revelation 3:7 ”And to the angel of the church in Philadelphia write: These
things saith he that is holy, he that is true, he that hath the key of David,
he that openeth, and no man shutteth; and shutteth, and no man openeth.” Now,
to this Janus, as Mediator, worshipped in Asia Minor, and equally, from very
early times, in Rome, belonged the government of the world; and, ”all power in
heaven, in earth, and the sea,” according to Pagan ideas, was vested in him. In
this character he was said to have ”jus vertendi cardinis”–the ”power of
turning the hinge”–of opening the doors of heaven, or of opening or shutting
the gates of peace or war upon earth. The Pope, therefore, when he set up as
the High-priest of Janus, assumed also the ”jus vertendi cardinis,” ”the power
of turning the hinge,”–of opening and shutting in the blasphemous Pagan sense.
Slowly and cautiously at first was this power asserted; but the foundation
being laid, steadily, century after century, was the grand superstructure of
priestly power erected upon it. The Pagans, who saw what strides, under Papal
directions, Christianity, as professed in Rome, was making towards Paganism,
were more than content to recognise the Pope as possessing this power; they
gladly encouraged him to rise, step by step, to the full height of the
blasphemous pretensions befitting the representative of Janus–pretensions
which, as all men know, are now, by the unanimous consent of Western Apostate
Christendom, recognised as inherent in the office of the Bishop of Rome. To
enable the Pope, however, to rise to the full plenitude of power which he now
asserts, the co-operation of others was needed. When his power increased, when
his dominion extended, and especially after he became a temporal sovereign, the
key of Janus became too heavy for his single hand–he needed some to share with
him the power of the ”hinge.” Hence his privy councillors, his high
functionaries of state, who were associated with him in the government of the
Church and the world, got the now well known title of ”Cardinals”–the priests
of the ”hinge.” This title had been previously borne by the high officials of
the Roman Emperor, who, as ”Pontifex Maximus,” had been himself the
representative of Janus, and who delegated his powers to servants of his own.
Even in the reign of Theodosius, the Christian Emperor of Rome, the title of
Cardinal was borne by his Prime Minister. But now both the name and the power
implied in the name have long since disappeared from all civil functionaries of
temporal sovereigns; and those only who aid the Pope in wielding the key of
Janus–in opening and shutting–are known by the title of Cardinals, or priests
of the ”hinge.”
I have said that the Pope became the representative of Janus, who, it is
evident, was none other than the Babylonian Messiah. If the reader only
considers the blasphemous assumptions of the Papacy, he will see how exactly it
has copied from its original. In the countries where the Babylonian system was
most thoroughly developed, we find the Sovereign Pontiff of the Babylonian god
invested with the very attributes now ascribed to the Pope. Is the Pope called
”God upon earth,” the ”Vice-God,” and ”Vicar of Jesus Christ”? The King in
Egypt, who was Sovereign Pontiff, * was, says Wilkinson, regarded with the
highest reverence as ”THE REPRESENTATIVE OF THE DIVINITY ON EARTH.”
* Wilkinson shows that the king had the right of enacting laws, and of
managing all the affairs of religion and the State, which proves him to have
been Sovereign Pontiff.
Is the Pope ”Infallible,” and does the Church of Rome, in consequence,
boast that it has always been ”unchanged and unchangeable”? The same was the
case with the Chaldean Pontiff, and the system over which he presided. The
Sovereign Pontiff, says the writer just quoted, was believed to be ”INCAPABLE
OF ERROR,” * and, in consequence, there was ”the greatest respect for the
sanctity of old edicts”; and hence, no doubt, also the origin of the custom
that ”the laws of the Medes and Persians could not be altered.” Does the Pope
receive the adorations of the Cardinals? The king of Babylon, as Sovereign
Pontiff, was adored in like manner. **
* WILKINSON’S Egyptians. ”The Infallibility” was a natural result of the
popular belief in regard to the relation in which the Sovereign stood to the
gods: for, says Diodorus Siculus, speaking of Egypt, the king was believed to
be ”a partaker of the divine nature.”
** From the statement of LAYARD (Nineveh and its Remains and Nineveh and
Babylon), it appears that as the king of Egypt was the ”Head of the religion
and the state,” so was the king of Assyria, which included Babylon. Then we
have evidence that he was worshipped. The sacred images are represented as
adoring him, which could not have been the case if his own subjects did not pay
their homage in that way. Then the adoration claimed by Alexander the Great
evidently came from this source. It was directly in imitation of the adoration
paid to the Persian kings that he required such homage. From Xenophon we have
evidence that this Persian custom came from Babylon. It was when Cyrus had
entered Babylon that the Persians, for the first time, testified their homage
to him by adoration; for, ”before this,” says Xenophon (Cyropoed), ”none of the
Persians had given adoration to Cyrus.”
Are kings and ambassadors required to kiss the Pope’s slipper? This, too,
is copied from the same pattern; for, says Professor Gaussen, quoting Strabo
and Herodotus, ”the kings of Chaldea wore on their feet slippers which the
kings they conquered used to kiss.” In kind, is the Pope addressed by the title
of ”Your Holiness”? So also was the Pagan Pontiff of Rome. The title seems to
have been common to all Pontiffs. Symmachus, the last Pagan representative of
the Roman Emperor, as Sovereign Pontiff, addressing one of his colleagues or
fellow-pontiffs, on a step of promotion he was about to obtain, says, ”I hear
that YOUR HOLINESS (sanctitatem tuam) is to be called out by the sacred
letters.”
Peter’s keys have now been restored to their rightful owner. Peter’s chair
must also go along with them. That far-famed chair came from the very same
quarter as the cross-keys. The very same reason that led the Pope to assume the
Chaldean keys naturally led him also to take possession of the vacant chair of
the Pagan Pontifex Maximus. As the Pontifex, by virtue of his office, had been
the Hierophant, or Interpreter of the Mysteries, his chair of office was as
well entitled to be called ”Peter’s” chair as the Pagan keys to be called ”the
keys of Peter”; and so it was called accordingly. The real pedigree of the
far-famed chair of Peter will appear from the following fact: ”The Romans had,”
says Bower, ”as they thought, till the year 1662, a pregnant proof, not only of
Peter’s erecting their chair, but of his sitting in it himself; for, till that
year, the very chair on which they believed, or would make others believe, he
had sat, was shown and exposed to public adoration on the 18th of January, the
festival of the said chair. But while it was cleaning, in order to set it up in
some conspicuous place of the Vatican, the twelve labours of Hercules unluckily
appeared on it!” and so it had to be laid aside. The partisans of the Papacy
were not a little disconcerted by this discovery; but they tried to put the
best face on the matter they could. ”Our worship,” said Giacomo Bartolini, in
his Sacred Antiquities of Rome, while relating the circumstances of the
discovery, ”Our worship, however, was not misplaced, since it was not to the
wood we paid it, but to the prince of the apostles, St. Peter,” that had been
supposed to sit in it. Whatever the reader may think of this apology for
chair-worship, he will surely at least perceive, taking this in connection with
what we have already seen, that the hoary fable of Peter’s chair is fairly
exploded. In modern times, Rome seems to have been rather unfortunate in regard
to Peter’s chair; for, even after that which bore the twelve labours of
Hercules had been condemned and cast aside, as unfit to bear the light that the
Reformation had poured upon the darkness of the Holy See, that which was chosen
to replace it was destined to reveal still more ludicrously the barefaced
impostures of the Papacy. The former chair was borrowed from the Pagans; the
next appears to have been purloined from the Mussulmans; for when the French
soldiers under General Bonaparte took possession of Rome in 1795, they found on
the back of it, in Arabic, this well known sentence of the Koran, ”There is no
God but God, and Mahomet is His Prophet.”
The Pope has not merely a chair to sit in; but he has a chair to be carried
in, in pomp and state, on men’s shoulders, when he pays a visit to St. Peter’s,
or any of the churches of Rome. Thus does an eye-witness describe such a
pageant on the Lord’s Day, in the headquarters of Papal idolatry: ”The drums
were heard beating without. The guns of the soldiers rung on the stone pavement
of the house of God, as, at the bidding of their officer, they grounded,
shouldered, and presented arms. How unlike the Sabbath–how unlike religion–how
unlike the suitable preparation to receive a minister of the meek and lowly
Jesus! Now, moving slowly up, between the two armed lines of soldiers, appeared
a long procession of ecclesiastics, bishops, canons, and cardinals, preceding
the Roman pontiff, who was borne on a gilded chair, clad in vestments
resplendent as the sun. His bearers were twelve men clad in crimson, being
immediately preceded by several persons carrying a cross, his mitre, his triple
crown, and other insignia of his office. As he was borne along on the shoulders
of men, amid the gaping crowds, his head was shaded or canopied by two immense
fans, made of peacocks’ feathers, which were borne by two attendants.” Thus it
is with the Sovereign Pontiff of Rome at this day; only that, frequently, over
and above being shaded by the fan, which is just the ”Mystic fan of Bacchus,”
his chair of state is also covered with a regular canopy. Now, look back
through the vista of three thousand years, and see how the Sovereign Pontiff of
Egypt used to pay a visit to the temple of his god. ”Having reached the
precincts of the temple,” says Wilkinson, ”the guards and royal attendants
selected to be the representatives of the whole army entered the
courts…Military bands played the favourite airs of the country; and the
numerous standards of the different regiments, the banners floating on the
wind, the bright lustre of arms, the immense concourse of people, and the
imposing majesty of the lofty towers of the propylaea, decked with their
bright-coloured flags, streaming above the cornice, presented a scene seldom,
we may say, equalled on any occasion, in any country. The most striking feature
of this pompous ceremony was the brilliant cortege of the monarch, who was
either borne in his chair of state by the principal officers of state, under a
rich canopy, or walked on foot, overshadowed with rich flabella and fans of
waving plumes.”
So much for Peter’s chair and Peter’s keys. Now Janus, whose key the Pope
usurped with that of his wife or mother Cybele, was also Dagon. Janus, the
two-headed god, ”who had lived in two worlds,” was the Babylonian divinity as
an incarnation of Noah. Dagon, the fish-god, represented that deity as a
manifestation of the same patriarch who had lived so long in the waters of the
deluge. As the Pope bears the key of Janus, so he wears the mitre of Dagon. The
excavations of Nineveh have put this beyond all possibility of doubt. The Papal
mitre is entirely different from the mitre of Aaron and the Jewish high priests.
That mitre was a turban. The two-horned mitre, which the Pope wears, when he
sits on the high altar at Rome and receives the adoration of the Cardinals, is
the very mitre worn by Dagon, the fish-god of the Philistines and Babylonians.
There were two ways in which Dagon was anciently represented. The one was when
he was depicted as half-man half-fish; the upper part being entirely human, the
under part ending in the tail of a fish. The other was, when, to use the words
of Layard, ”the head of the fish formed a mitre above that of the man, while
its scaly, fan-like tail fell as a cloak behind, leaving the human limbs and
feet exposed.” Of Dagon in this form Layard gives a representation in his last
work; and no one who examines his mitre, and compares it with the Pope’s as
given in Elliot’s Horoe, can doubt for a moment that from that, and no other
source, has the pontifical mitre been derived. The gaping jaws of the fish
surmounting the head of the man at Nineveh are the unmistakable counterpart of
the horns of the Pope’s mitre at Rome. Thus was it in the East, at least five
hundred years before the Christian era. The same seems to have been the case
also in Egypt; for Wilkinson, speaking of a fish of the species of Siluris,
says ”that one of the Genii of the Egyptian Pantheon appears under a human
form, with the head of this fish.” In the West, at a later period, we have
evidence that the Pagans had detached the fish-head mitre from the body of the
fish, and used that mitre alone to adorn the head of the great Mediatorial god;
for on several Maltese Pagan coins that god, with the well-known attributes of
Osiris, is represented with nothing of the fish save the mitre on his head;
very nearly in the same form as the mitre of the Pope, or of a Papal bishop at
this day. Even in China, the same practice of wearing the fish-head mitre had
evidently once prevailed; for the very counterpart of the Papal mitre, as worn
by the Chinese Emperor, has subsisted to modern times. ”Is it known,” asks a
well-read author of the present day, in a private communication to me, ”that
the Emperor of China, in all ages, even to the present year, as high priest of
the nation, once a year prays for and blesses the whole nation, having his
priestly robes on and his mitre on his head, the same, the very same, as that
worn by the Roman Pontiff for near 1200 years? Such is the fact.” The reader
must bear in mind, that even in Japan, still farther distant from Babel than
China itself, one of the divinities is represented with the same symbol of
might as prevailed in Assyria–even the bull’s horns, and is called ”The
ox-headed Prince of Heaven.” If the symbol of Nimrod, as Kronos, ”The Horned
one,” is thus found in Japan, it cannot be surprising that the symbol of Dagon
should be found in China.
But there is another symbol of the Pope’s power which must not be
overlooked, and that is the pontifical crosier. Whence came the crosier? The
answer to this, in the first place, is, that the Pope stole it from the Roman
augur. The classical reader may remember, that when the Roman augurs consulted
the heavens, or took prognostics from the aspect of the sky, there was a
certain instrument with which it was indispensable that they should be
equipped. That instrument with which they described the portion of the heavens
on which their observations were to be made, was curved at the one end, and was
called ”lituus.” Now, so manifestly was the ”lituus,” or crooked rod of the
Roman augurs, identical with the pontifical crosier, that Roman Catholic
writers themselves, writing in the Dark Ages, at a time when disguise was
thought unnecessary, did not hesitate to use the term ”lituus” as a synonym for
the crosier. Thus a Papal writer describes a certain Pope or Papal bishop as
”mitra lituoque decorus,” adorned with the mitre and the augur’s rod, meaning
thereby that he was ”adorned with the mitre and the crosier.” But this lituus,
or divining-rod, of the Roman augurs, was, as is well known, borrowed from the
Etruscans, who, again, had derived it, along with their religion, from the
Assyrians. As the Roman augur was distinguished by his crooked rod, so the
Chaldean soothsayers and priests, in the performance of their magic rites, were
generally equipped with a crook or crosier. This magic crook can be traced up
directly to the first king of Babylon, that is, Nimrod, who, as stated by
Berosus, was the first that bore the title of a Shepherd-king. In Hebrew, or
the Chaldee of the days of Abraham, ”Nimrod the Shepherd,” is just Nimrod
”He-Roe”; and from this title of the ”mighty hunter before the Lord,” have no
doubt been derived, both the name of Hero itself, and all that Hero-worship
which has since overspread the world. Certain it is that Nimrod’s deified
successors have generally been represented with the crook or crosier. This was
the case in Babylon and Nineveh, as the extant monuments show. In Layard, it
may be seen in a more ornate form, and nearly resembling the papal crosier as
borne at this day. * This was the case in Egypt, after the Babylonian power was
established there, as the statues of Osiris with his crosier bear witness, **
Osiris himself being frequently represented as a crosier with an eye above it.
* Nineveh and Babylon. Layard seems to think the instrument referred to,
which is borne by the king, ”attired as high priest in his sacrificial robes,”
a sickle; but any one who attentively examines it will see that it is a
crosier, adorned with studs, as is commonly the case even now with the Roman
crosiers, only, that instead of being held erect, it is held downwards.
** The well known name Pharaoh, the title of the Pontiff-kings of Egypt, is
just the Egyptian form of the Hebrew He-Roe. Pharaoh in Genesis, without the
points, is ”Phe-Roe.” Phe is the Egyptian definite article. It was not
shepherd-kings that the Egyptians abhorred, but Roi-Tzan, ”shepherds of cattle”
(Gen 46:34). Without the article Roe, a ”shepherd,” is manifestly the original
of the French Roi, a king, whence the adjective royal; and from Ro, which
signifies to ”act the shepherd,” which is frequently pronounced Reg–(with Sh,
which signifies ”He who is,” or ”who does,” affixed)–comes Regah, ”He who acts
the shepherd,” whence the Latin Rex, and Regal.
This is the case among the Negroes of Africa, whose god, called the
Fetiche, is represented in the form of a crosier, as is evident from the
following words of Hurd: ”They place Fetiches before their doors, and these
titular deities are made in the form of grapples or hooks, which we generally
make use of to shake our fruit trees.” This is the case at this hour in Thibet,
where the Lamas or Theros bear, as stated by the Jesuit Huc, a crosier, as the
ensign of their office. This is the case even in the far-distant Japan, where,
in a description of the idols of the great temple of Miaco, the spiritual capital,
we find this statement: ”Their heads are adorned with rays of glory, and some
of them have shepherds’ crooks in their hands, pointing out that they are the
guardians of mankind against all the machinations of evil spirits.” The crosier
of the Pope, then, which he bears as an emblem of his office, as the great
shepherd of the sheep, is neither more nor less than the augur’s crooked staff,
or magic rod of the priests of Nimrod.
Now, what say the worshippers of the apostolic succession to all this? What
think they now of their vaunted orders as derived from Peter of Rome? Surely
they have much reason to be proud of them. But what, I further ask, would even
the old Pagan priests say who left the stage of time while the martyrs were
still battling against their gods, and, rather than symbolise with them, ”loved
not their lives unto the death,” if they were to see the present aspect of the
so-called Church of European Christendom? What would Belshazzar himself say, if
it were possible for him to ”revisit the glimpses of the moon,” and enter St.
Peter’s at Rome, and see the Pope in his pontificals, in all his pomp and
glory? Surely he would conclude that he had only entered one of his own well
known temples, and that all things continued as they were at Babylon, on that
memorable night, when he saw with astonished eyes the handwriting on the wall:
”Mene, mene, tekel, Upharsin.”
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VI
Section II
Priests, Monks, and Nuns
If the head be corrupt, so also must be the
members. If the Pope be essentially Pagan, what else can be the character
of his clergy? If they derive their orders from a radically corrupted
source, these orders must partake of the corruption of the source from which
they flow. This might be inferred independently of any special evidence; but
the evidence in regard to the Pagan character of the Pope’s clergy is as
complete as that in regard to the Pope himself. In whatever light the subject
is viewed, this will be very apparent.
There is a direct contrast between the character of the ministers of
Christ, and that of the Papal priesthood. When Christ commissioned His
servants, it was ”to feed His sheep, to feed His lambs,” and that with the Word
of God, which testifies of Himself, and contains the words of eternal life.
When the Pope ordains his clergy, he takes them bound to prohibit, except in
special circumstances, the reading of the Word of God ”in the vulgar tongue,”
that is, in a language which the people can understand. He gives them, indeed,
a commission; and what is it? It is couched in these astounding words: ”Receive
the power of sacrificing for the living and the dead.” What blasphemy could be
worse than this? What more derogatory to the one sacrifice of Christ, whereby
”He hath perfected for ever them that are sanctified”? (Heb 10:14) This is the
real distinguishing function of the popish priesthood. At the remembrance that
this power, in these very words, had been conferred on him, when ordained to
the priesthood, Luther used, in after years, with a shudder, to express his
astonishment that ”the earth had not opened its mouth and swallowed up both him
who uttered these words, and him to whom they were addressed.” The sacrifice
which the papal priesthood are empowered to offer, as a ”true propitiatory
sacrifice” for the sins of the living and the dead, is just the ”unbloody sacrifice”
of the mass, which was offered up in Babylon long before it was ever heard of
in Rome.
Now, while Semiramis, the real original of the Chaldean Queen of Heaven, to
whom the ”unbloody sacrifice” of the mass was first offered, was in her own
person, as we have already seen, the very paragon of impurity, she at the same
time affected the greatest favour for that kind of sanctity which looks down
with contempt on God’s holy ordinance of marriage. The Mysteries over which she
presided were scenes of the rankest pollution; and yet the higher orders of the
priesthood were bound to a life of celibacy, as a life of peculiar and
pre-eminent holiness. Strange though it may seem, yet the voice of antiquity
assigns to that abandoned queen the invention of clerical celibacy, and that in
the most stringent form. In some countries, as in Egypt, human nature asserted
its rights, and though the general system of Babylon was retained, the yoke of
celibacy was abolished, and the priesthood were permitted to marry. But every
scholar knows that when the worship of Cybele, the Babylonian goddess, was
introduced into Pagan Rome, it was introduced in its primitive form, with its
celibate clergy. When the Pope appropriated to himself so much that was
peculiar to the worship of that goddess, from the very same source, also, he
introduced into the priesthood under his authority the binding obligation of
celibacy. The introduction of such a principle into the Christian Church had
been distinctly predicted as one grand mark of the apostacy, when men should
”depart from the faith, and speaking lies in hypocrisy, having their
consciences seared with a hot iron, should forbid to marry.” The effects of its
introduction were most disastrous. The records of all nations where priestly celibacy
has been introduced have proved that, instead of ministering to the purity of
those condemned to it, it has only plunged them in the deepest pollution. The
history of Thibet, and China, and Japan, where the Babylonian institute of
priestly celibacy has prevailed from time immemorial, bears testimony to the
abominations that have flowed from it. The excesses committed by the celibate
priests of Bacchus in Pagan Rome in their secret Mysteries, were such that the
Senate felt called upon to expel them from the bounds of the Roman republic. In
Papal Rome the same abominations have flowed from priestly celibacy, in
connection with the corrupt and corrupting system of the confessional, insomuch
that all men who have examined the subject have been compelled to admire the
amazing significance of the name divinely bestowed on it, both in a literal and
figurative sense, ”Babylon the Great, THE MOTHER OF HARLOTS AND ABOMINATIONS OF
THE EARTH.” *
* Revelation 17:5. The Rev. M. H. Seymour shows that in 1836 the whole number
of births in Rome was 4373, while of these no fewer than 3160 were foundlings!
What enormous profligacy does this reveal!–”Moral Results of the Romish
System,” in Evenings with Romanists.
Out of a thousand facts of a similar kind, let one only be adduced, vouched
for by the distinguished Roman Catholic historian De Thou. When Pope Paul V
meditated the suppression of the licensed brothels in the ”Holy City,” the
Roman Senate petitioned against his carrying his design into effect, on the
ground that the existence of such places was the only means of hindering the
priests from seducing their wives and daughters!!
These celibate priests have all a certain mark set upon them at their
ordination; and that is the clerical tonsure. The tonsure is the first part of
the ceremony of ordination; and it is held to be a most important element in
connection with the orders of the Romish clergy. When, after long contendings,
the Picts were at last brought to submit to the Bishop of Rome, the acceptance
of this tonsure as the tonsure of St. Peter on the part of the clergy was the
visible symbol of that submission. Naitan, the Pictish king, having assembled
the nobles of his court and the pastors of his church, thus addressed them: ”I
recommend all the clergy of my kingdom to receive the tonsure.” Then, without
delay, as Bede informs us, this important revolution was accomplished by royal
authority. He sent agents into every province, and caused all the ministers and
monks to receive the circular tonsure, according to the Roman fashion, and thus
to submit to Peter, ”the most blessed Prince of the apostles.” ”It was the
mark,” says Merle D’Aubigne, ”that Popes stamped not on the forehead, but on
the crown. A royal proclamation, and a few clips of the scissors, placed the Scotch,
like a flock of sheep, beneath the crook of the shepherd of the Tiber.” Now, as
Rome set so much importance on this tonsure, let it be asked what was the
meaning of it? It was the visible inauguration of those who submitted to it as
the priests of Bacchus. This tonsure cannot have the slightest pretence to
Christian authority. It was indeed the ”tonsure of Peter,” but not of the Peter
of Galilee, but of the Chaldean ”Peter” of the Mysteries. He was a tonsured
priest, for so was the god whose Mysteries he revealed. Centuries before the
Christian era, thus spoke Herodotus of the Babylonian tonsure: ”The Arabians
acknowledge no other gods than Bacchus and Urania [i.e., the Queen of Heaven],
and they say that their hair was cut in the same manner as Bacchus’ is cut;
now, they cut it in a circular form, shaving it around the temples.” What,
then, could have led to this tonsure of Bacchus? Everything in his history was
mystically or hieroglyphically represented, and that in such a way as none but
the initiated could understand. One of the things that occupied the most
important place in the Mysteries was the mutilation to which he was subjected
when he was put to death. In memory of that, he was lamented with bitter
weeping every year, as ”Rosh-Gheza,” ”the mutilated Prince.” But ”Rosh-Gheza”
also signified the ”clipped or shaved head.” Therefore he was himself
represented either with the one or the other form of tonsure; and his priests,
for the same reason, at their ordination had their heads either clipped or
shaven. Over all the world, where the traces of the Chaldean system are found,
this tonsure or shaving of the head is always found along with it. The priests
of Osiris, the Egyptian Bacchus, were always distinguished by the shaving of
their heads. In Pagan Rome, in India, and even in China, the distinguishing
mark of the Babylonian priesthood was the shaven head. Thus Gautama Buddha, who
lived at least 540 years before Christ, when setting up the sect of Buddhism in
India which spread to the remotest regions of the East, first shaved his own
head, in obedience, as he pretended, to a Divine command, and then set to work
to get others to imitate his example. One of the very titles by which he was
called was that of the ”Shaved-head.” ”The shaved-head,” says one of the
Purans, ”that he might perform the orders of Vishnu, formed a number of
disciples, and of shaved-heads like himself.” The high antiquity of this
tonsure may be seen from the enactment in the Mosaic law against it. The Jewish
priests were expressly forbidden to make any baldness upon their heads (Lev
21:5), which sufficiently shows that, even so early as the time of Moses, the
”shaved-head” had been already introduced. In the Church of Rome the heads of
the ordinary priests are only clipped, the heads of the monks or regular clergy
are shaven, but both alike, at their consecration, receive the circular
tonsure, thereby identifying them, beyond all possibility of doubt, with
Bacchus, ”the mutilated Prince.” *
* It has been already shown that among the Chaldeans the one term ”Zero”
signified at once ”a circle” and ”the seed.” ”Suro,” ”the seed,” in India, as
we have seen, was the sun-divinity incarnate. When that seed was represented in
human form, to identify him with the sun, he was represented with the circle,
the well known emblem of the sun’s annual course, on some part of his person.
Thus our own god Thor was represented with a blazing circle on his breast.
(WILSON’S Parsi Religion) In Persia and Assyria the circle was represented
sometimes on the breast, sometimes round the waist, and sometimes in the hand
of the sun-divinity. (BRYANT and LAYARD’S Nineveh and Babylon) In India it is
represented at the tip of the finger. (MOOR’S Pantheon, ”Vishnu”) Hence the
circle became the emblem of Tammuz born again, or ”the seed.” The circular
tonsure of Bacchus was doubtless intended to point him out as ”Zero,” or ”the
seed,” the grand deliverer. And the circle of light around the head of the
so-called pictures of Christ was evidently just a different form of the very
same thing, and borrowed from the very same source. The ceremony of tonsure,
says Maurice, referring to the practice of that ceremony in India, ”was an old
practice of the priests of Mithra, who in their tonsures imitated the solar
disk.” (Antiquities) As the sun-god was the great lamented god, and had his
hair cut in a circular form, and the priests who lamented him had their hair
cut in a similar manner, so in different countries those who lamented the dead
and cut off their hair in honour of them, cut it in a circular form. There were
traces of that in Greece, as appears from the Electra of Sophocles; and
Herodotus particularly refers to it as practised among the Scythians when
giving an account of a royal funeral among that people. ”The body,” says he,
”is enclosed in wax. They then place it on a carriage, and remove it to another
district, where the persons who receive it, like the Royal Scythians, cut off a
part of their ear, shave their heads in a circular form,” &c. (Hist.) Now,
while the Pope, as the grand representative of the false Messiah, received the
circular tonsure himself, so all his priests to identify them with the same
system are required to submit to the same circular tonsure, to mark them in
their measure and their own sphere as representatives of that same false
Messiah.
Now, if the priests of Rome take away the key of knowledge, and lock up the
Bible from the people; if they are ordained to offer the Chaldean sacrifice in
honour of the Pagan Queen of Heaven; if they are bound by the Chaldean law of
celibacy, that plunges them in profligacy; if, in short, they are all marked at
their consecration with the distinguishing mark of the priests of the Chaldean
Bacchus, what right, what possible right, can they have to be called ministers
of Christ?
But Rome has not only her ordinary secular clergy, as they are called; she
has also, as every one knows, other religious orders of a different kind. She
has innumerable armies of monks and nuns all engaged in her service. Where can
there be shown the least warrant for such an institution in Scripture? In the
religion of the Babylonian Messiah their institution was from the earliest
times. In that system there were monks and nuns in abundance. In Thibet and
Japan, where the Chaldean system was early introduced, monasteries are still to
be found, and with the same disastrous results to morals as in Papal Europe. *
* There are some, and Protestants, too, who begin to speak of what they
call the benefits of monasteries in rude times, as if they were hurtful only
when they fall into ”decrepitude and corruption”! Enforced celibacy, which lies
at the foundation of the monastic system, is of the very essence of the
Apostacy, which is divinely characterised as the ”Mystery of Iniquity.” Let
such Protestants read 1 Timothy 4:1-3, and surely they will never speak more of
the abominations of the monasteries as coming only from their ”decrepitude”!
In Scandinavia, the priestesses of Freya, who were generally kings’
daughters, whose duty it was to watch the sacred fire, and who were bound to
perpetual virginity, were just an order of nuns. In Athens there were virgins
maintained at the public expense, who were strictly bound to single life. In
Pagan Rome, the Vestal virgins, who had the same duty to perform as the
priestesses of Freya, occupied a similar position. Even in Peru, during the
reign of the Incas, the same system prevailed, and showed so remarkable an
analogy, as to indicate that the Vestals of Rome, the nuns of the Papacy, and
the Holy Virgins of Peru, must have sprung from a common origin. Thus does
Prescott refer to the Peruvian nunneries: ”Another singular analogy with Roman
Catholic institutions is presented by the virgins of the sun, the elect, as
they were called. These were young maidens dedicated to the service of the
deity, who at a tender age were taken from their homes, and introduced into
convents, where they were placed under the care of certain elderly matrons,
mamaconas, * who had grown grey within their walls. It was their duty to watch
over the sacred fire obtained at the festival of Raymi. From the moment they
entered the establishment they were cut off from all communication with the
world, even with their own family and friends…Woe to the unhappy maiden who was
detected in an intrigue! by the stern law of the Incas she was to be buried
alive.”
* Mamacona, ”Mother Priestess,” is almost pure Hebrew, being derived from
Am a ”mother,” and Cohn, ”a priest,” only with the feminine termination. Our
own Mamma, as well as that of Peru, is just the Hebrew Am reduplicated. It is
singular that the usual style and title of the Lady Abbess in Ireland is the
”Reverend Mother.” The term Nun itself is a Chaldean word. Ninus, the son in
Chaldee is either Nin or Non. Now, the feminine of Non, a ”son,” is Nonna, a
”daughter,” which is just the Popish canonical name for a ”Nun,” and Nonnus, in
like manner, was in early times the designation for a monk in the East.
(GIESELER)
This was precisely the fate of the Roman Vestal who was proved to have
violated her vow. Neither in Peru, however, nor in Pagan Rome was the
obligation to virginity so stringent as in the Papacy. It was not perpetual,
and therefore not so exceedingly demoralising. After a time, the nuns might be
delivered from their confinement, and marry; from all hopes of which they are
absolutely cut off in the Church of Rome. In all these cases, however, it is
plain that the principle on which these institutions were founded was
originally the same. ”One is astonished,” adds Prescott, ”to find so close a
resemblance between the institutions of the American Indian, the ancient Roman,
and the modern Catholic.”
Prescott finds it difficult to account for this resemblance; but the one
little sentence from the prophet Jeremiah, which was quoted at the commencement
of this inquiry, accounts for it completely: ”Babylon hath been a golden cup in
the Lord’s hand, that hath made ALL THE EARTH drunken” (Jer 51:7). This is the
Rosetta stone that has helped already to bring to light so much of the secret
iniquity of the Papacy, and that is destined still further to decipher the dark
mysteries of every system of heathen mythology that either has been or that is.
The statement of this text can be proved to be a literal fact. It can be proved
that the idolatry of the whole earth is one, that the sacred language of all
nations is radically Chaldean–that the GREAT GODS of every country and clime
are called by Babylonian names–and that all the Paganisms of the human race are
only a wicked and deliberate, but yet most instructive corruption of the
primeval gospel first preached in Eden, and through Noah, afterwards conveyed
to all mankind. The system, first concocted in Babylon, and thence conveyed to
the ends of the earth, has been modified and diluted in different ages and countries.
In Papal Rome only is it now found nearly pure and entire. But yet, amid all
the seeming variety of heathenism, there is an astonishing oneness and
identity, bearing testimony to the truth of God’s Word. The overthrow of all
idolatry cannot now be distant. But before the idols of the heathens shall be
finally cast to the moles and to the bats, I am persuaded that they will be
made to fall down and worship ”the Lord the king,” to bear testimony to His
glorious truth, and with one loud and united acclaim, ascribe salvation, and
glory, and honour, and power unto Him that sitteth upon the throne, and to the
Lamb, for ever and ever.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VII
The Two Developments Historically and Prophetically Considered
Hitherto we have considered the history of the Two Babylons chiefly in
detail. Now we are to view them as organised systems. The idolatrous system of
the ancient Babylon assumed different phases in different periods of its
history. In the prophetic description of the modern Babylon, there is evidently
also a development of different powers at different times. Do these two
developments bear any typical relation to each other? Yes, they do. When we
bring the religious history of the ancient Babylonian Paganism to bear on the
prophetic symbols that shadow forth the organised working of idolatry in Rome,
it will be found that it casts as much light on this view of the subject as on
that which has hitherto engaged our attention. The powers of iniquity at work
in the modern Babylon are specifically described in chapters 12 and 13 of the
Revelation; and they are as follows:–I. The Great Red Dragon; II. The Beast
that comes up out of the sea; III. The Beast that ascendeth out of the earth;
and IV. The Image of the Beast. In all these respects it will be found, on
inquiry, that, in regard to succession and order of development, the Paganism
of the Old Testament Babylon was the exact type of the Paganism of the new.
____________________
Section I
The Great Red Dragon
This formidable enemy of the truth is particularly described in Revelation
12:3–”And there appeared another wonder in heaven, a great red dragon.” It is
admitted on all hands that this is the first grand enemy that in Gospel times
assaulted the Christian Church. If the terms in which it is described, and the
deeds attributed to it, are considered, it will be found that there is a great
analogy between it and the first enemy of all, that appeared against the
ancient Church of God soon after the Flood. The term dragon, according to the
associations currently connected with it, is somewhat apt to mislead the
reader, by recalling to his mind the fabulous dragons of the Dark Ages,
equipped with wings. At the time this Divine description was given, the term
dragon had no such meaning among either profane or sacred writers. ”The dragon
of the Greeks,” says Pausanias, ”was only a large snake”; and the context shows
that this is the very case here; for what in the third verse is called a
”dragon,” in the fourteenth is simply described as a ”serpent.” Then the word
rendered ”Red” properly means ”Fiery”; so that the ”Red Dragon” signifies the
”Fiery Serpent” or ”Serpent of Fire.” Exactly so does it appear to have been in
the first form of idolatry, that, under the patronage of Nimrod, appeared in
the ancient world. The ”Serpent of Fire” in the plains of Shinar seems to have
been the grand object of worship. There is the strongest evidence that apostacy
among the sons of Noah began in fire-worship, and that in connection with the
symbol of the serpent.
We have seen already, on different occasions, that fire was worshipped as
the enlightener and the purifier. Now, it was thus at the very beginning; for
Nimrod is singled out by the voice of antiquity as commencing this
fire-worship. The identity of Nimrod and Ninus has already been proved; and
under the name of Ninus, also, he is represented as originating the same
practice. In a fragment of Apollodorus it is said that ”Ninus taught the
Assyrians to worship fire.” The sun, as the great source of light and heat, was
worshipped under the name of Baal. Now, the fact that the sun, under that name,
was worshipped in the earliest ages of the world, shows the audacious character
of these first beginnings of apostacy. Men have spoken as if the worship of the
sun and of the heavenly bodies was a very excusable thing, into which the human
race might very readily and very innocently fall. But how stands the fact?
According to the primitive language of mankind, the sun was called
”Shemesh”–that is, ”the Servant”–that name, no doubt, being divinely given, to
keep the world in mind of the great truth that, however glorious was the orb of
day, it was, after all, the appointed Minister of the bounty of the great
unseen Creator to His creatures upon earth. Men knew this, and yet with the
full knowledge of it, they put the servant in the place of the Master; and
called the sun Baal–that is, the Lord–and worshipped him accordingly. What a
meaning, then, in the saying of Paul, that, ”when they knew God, they glorified
Him not as God”; but ”changed the truth of God into a lie, and worshipped and
served the creature more than the Creator, who is God over all, blessed for
ever.” The beginning, then, of sun-worship, and of the worship of the host of
heaven, was a sin against the light–a presumptuous, heaven-daring sin. As the
sun in the heavens was the great object of worship, so fire was worshipped as
its earthly representative. To this primeval fire-worship Vitruvius alludes
when he says that ”men were first formed into states and communities by meeting
around fires.” And this is exactly in conformity with what we have already seen
in regard to Phoroneus, whom we have identified with Nimrod, that while he was
said to be the ”inventor of fire,” he was also regarded as the first that
”gathered mankind into communities.”
Along with the sun, as the great fire-god, and, in due time, identified
with him, was the serpent worshipped. ”In the mythology of the primitive
world,” says Owen, ”the serpent is universally the symbol of the sun.” In
Egypt, one of the commonest symbols of the sun, or sun-god, is a disc with a
serpent around it. The original reason of that identification seems just to
have been that, as the sun was the great enlightener of the physical world, so
the serpent was held to have been the great enlightener of the spiritual, by
giving mankind the ”knowledge of good and evil.” This, of course, implies
tremendous depravity on the part of the ring-leaders in such a system,
considering the period when it began; but such appears to have been the real
meaning of the identification. At all events, we have evidence, both Scriptural
and profane, for the fact, that the worship of the serpent began side by side
with the worship of fire and the sun. The inspired statement of Paul seems
decisive on the subject. It was, he says, ”when men knew God, but glorified Him
not as God,” that they changed the glory of God, not only into an image made
like to corruptible man, but into the likeness of ”creeping things”–that is, of
serpents (Rom 1:23). With this profane history exactly coincides. Of profane
writers, Sanchuniathon, the Phoenician, who is believed to have lived about the
time of Joshua, says–”Thoth first attributed something of the divine nature to
the serpent and the serpent tribe, in which he was followed by the Phoenicians
and Egyptians. For this animal was esteemed by him to be the most spiritual of
all the reptiles, and of a FIERY nature, inasmuch as it exhibits an incredible
celerity, moving by its spirit, without either hands or feet…Moreover, it is
long-lived, and has the quality of RENEWING ITS YOUTH…as Thoth has laid down in
the sacred books; upon which accounts this animal is introduced in the sacred
rites and Mysteries.”
Now, Thoth, it will be remembered, was the counsellor of Thamus, that is,
Nimrod. From this statement, then, we are led to the conclusion that
serpent-worship was a part of the primeval apostacy of Nimrod. The ”FIERY
NATURE” of the serpent, alluded to in the above extract, is continually
celebrated by the heathen poets. Thus Virgil, ”availing himself,” as the author
of Pompeii remarks, ”of the divine nature attributed to serpents,” describes
the sacred serpent that came from the tomb of Anchises, when his son Aeneas had
been sacrificing before it, in such terms as illustrate at once the language of
the Phoenician, and the ”Fiery Serpent” of the passage before us:–
”Scarce had he finished, when,
with speckled pride,
A serpent from the tomb began to glide;
His hugy bulk on seven high volumes rolled,
Blue was his breadth of back, but streaked with scaly gold.
Thus, riding on his curls, he seemed to pass
A rolling fire along, and singe the grass.”
It is not wonderful, then, the fire-worship and serpent-worship should be
conjoined. The serpent, also, as ”renewing its youth” every year, was plausibly
represented to those who wished an excuse for idolatry as a meet emblem of the
sun, the great regenerator, who every year regenerates and renews the face of
nature, and who, when deified, was worshipped as the grand Regenerator of the
souls of men.
In the chapter under consideration, the ”great fiery serpent” is
represented with all the emblems of royalty. All its heads are encircled with
”crowns or diadems”; and so in Egypt, the serpent of fire, or serpent of the
sun, in Greek was called the Basilisk, that is, the ”royal serpent,” to identify
it with Moloch, which name, while it recalls the ideas both of fire and blood,
properly signifies ”the King.” The Basilisk was always, among the Egyptians,
and among many nations besides, regarded as ”the very type of majesty and
dominion.” As such, its image was worn affixed to the head-dress of the
Egyptian monarchs; and it was not lawful for any one else to wear it. The sun
identified with this serpent was called ”P’ouro,” which signifies at one ”the
Fire” and ”the King,” and from this very name the epithet ”Purros,” the
”Fiery,” is given to the ”Great seven-crowned serpent” of our text. *
* The word Purros in the text does not exclude the idea of ”Red,” for the
sun-god was painted red to identify him with Moloch, at once the god of fire
and god of blood.–(WILKINSON). The primary leading idea, however, is that of
Fire.
Thus was the Sun, the Great Fire-god, identified with the Serpent. But he
had also a human representative, and that was Tammuz, for whom the daughters of
Israel lamented, in other words Nimrod. We have already seen the identity of
Nimrod and Zoroaster. Now, Zoroaster was not only the head of the Chaldean
Mysteries, but, as all admit, the head of the fire-worshippers.(seenote below)
The title given to Nimrod, as the first of the Babylonian kings, by Berosus,
indicates the same thing. That title is Alorus, that is, ”the god of fire.” As
Nimrod, ”the god of fire,” was Molk-Gheber, or, ”the Mighty king,” inasmuch as he
was the first who was called Moloch, or King, and the first who began to be
”mighty” (Gheber) on the earth, we see at once how it was that the ”passing
through the fire to Moloch” originated, and how the god of fire among the
Romans came to be called ”Mulkiber.” *
* Commonly spelled Mulciber (OVID, Art. Am.); but the Roman c was hard.
From the epithet ”Gheber,” the Parsees, or fire-worshippers of India, are still
called ”Guebres.”
It was only after his death, however, that he appears to have been deified.
Then, retrospectively, he was worshipped as the child of the Sun, or the Sun
incarnate. In his own life-time, however, he set up no higher pretensions than
that of being Bol-Khan, or Priest of Baal, from which the other name of the
Roman fire-god Vulcan is evidently derived. Everything in the history of Vulcan
exactly agrees with that of Nimrod. Vulcan was ”the most ugly and deformed” of
all the gods. Nimrod, over all the world, is represented with the features and
complexion of a negro. Though Vulcan was so ugly, that when he sought a wife,
”all the beautiful goddesses rejected him with horror”; yet ”Destiny, the
irrevocable, interposed, and pronounced the decree, by which [Venus] the most
beautiful of the goddesses, was united to the most unsightly of the gods.” So,
in spite of the black and Cushite features of Nimrod, he had for his queen
Semiramis, the most beautiful of women. The wife of Vulcan was noted for her
infidelities and licentiousness; the wife of Nimrod was the very same. * Vulcan
was the head and chief of the Cyclops, that is, ”the kings of flame.” **
* Nimrod, as universal king, was Khuk-hold, ”King of the world.” As such,
the emblem of his power was the bull’s horns. Hence the origin of the
Cuckhold’s horns.
** Kuclops, from Khuk, ”king,” and Lohb, ”flame.” The image of the great
god was represented with three eyes–one in the forehead; hence the story of the
Cyclops with the one eye in the forehead.
Nimrod was the head of the fire-worshippers. Vulcan was the forger of the
thunderbolts by which such havoc was made among the enemies of the gods. Ninus,
or Nimrod, in his wars with the king of Bactria, seems to have carried on the
conflict in a similar way. From Arnobius we learn, that when the Assyrians
under Ninus made war against the Bactrians, the warfare was waged not only by
the sword and bodily strength, but by magic and by means derived from the
secret instructions of the Chaldeans. When it is known that the historical
Cyclops are, by the historian Castor, traced up to the very time of Saturn or
Belus, the first king of Babylon, and when we learn that Jupiter (who was
worshipped in the very same character as Ninus, ”the child”), when fighting
against the Titans, ”received from the Cyclops aid” by means of ”dazzling
lightnings and thunders,” we may have some pretty clear idea of the magic arts
derived from the Chaldean Mysteries, which Ninus employed against the Bactrian
king. There is evidence that, down to a late period, the priests of the
Chaldean Mysteries knew the composition of the formidable Greek fire, which
burned under water, and the secret of which has been lost; and there can be
little doubt that Nimrod, in erecting his power, availed himself of such or
similar scientific secrets, which he and his associates alone possessed.
In these, and other respects yet to be noticed, there is an exact
coincidence between Vulcan, the god of fire of the Romans, and Nimrod, the
fire-god of Babylon. In the case of the classic Vulcan, it is only in his
character of the fire-god as a physical agent that he is popularly represented.
But it was in his spiritual aspects, in cleansing and regenerating the souls of
men, that the fire-worship told most effectually on the world. The power, the
popularity, and skill of Nimrod, as well as the seductive nature of the system
itself, enabled him to spread the delusive doctrine far and wide, as he was
represented under the well-known name of Phaethon, (see note below)
as on the point of ”setting the whole world on fire,” or (without the poetical
metaphor) of involving all mankind in the guilt of fire-worship. The
extraordinary prevalence of the worship of the fire-god in the early ages of
the world, is proved by legends found over all the earth, and by facts in
almost every clime. Thus, in Mexico, the natives relate, that in primeval
times, just after the first age, the world was burnt up with fire. As their
history, like the Egyptian, was written in Hieroglyphics, it is plain that this
must be symbolically understood. In India, they have a legend to the very same
effect, though somewhat varied in its form. The Brahmins say that, in a very
remote period of the past, one of the gods shone with such insufferable
splendour, ”inflicting distress on the universe by his effulgent beams,
brighter than a thousand worlds,” * that, unless another more potent god had
interposed and cut off his head, the result would have been most disastrous.
* SKANDA PURAN, and PADMA PURAN, apud KENNEDY’S Hindoo Mythology, p. 275.
In the myth, this divinity is represented as the fifth head of Brahma; but as
this head is represented as having gained the knowledge that made him so
insufferably proud by perusing the Vedas produced by the other four heads of
Brahma, that shows that he must have been regarded as having a distinct
individuality.
In the Druidic Triads of the old British Bards, there is distinct reference
to the same event. They say that in primeval times a ”tempest of fire arose,
which split the earth asunder to the great deep,” from which none escaped but
”the select company shut up together in the enclosure with the strong door,”
with the great ”patriarch distinguished for his integrity,” that is evidently
with Shem, the leader of the faithful–who preserved their ”integrity” when so
many made shipwreck of faith and a good conscience. These stories all point to
one and the same period, and they show how powerful had been this form of
apostacy. The Papal purgatory and the fires of St. John’s Eve, which we have already
considered, and many other fables or practices still extant, are just so many
relics of the same ancient superstition.
It will be observed, however, that the Great Red Dragon, or Great Fiery
Serpent, is represented as standing before the Woman with the crown of twelve
stars, that is, the true Church of God, ”To devour her child as soon as it
should be born.” Now, this is in exact accordance with the character of the
Great Head of the system of fire-worship. Nimrod, as the representative of the
devouring fire to which human victims, and especially children, were offered in
sacrifice, was regarded as the great child-devourer. Though, at his first
deification, he was set up himself as Ninus, or the child, yet, as the first of
mankind that was deified, he was, of course, the actual father of all the
Babylonian gods; and, therefore, in that character he was afterwards
universally regarded. *
* Phaethon, though the child of the sun, is also called the Father of the
gods. (LACTANTIUS, De Falsa Religione) In Egypt, too, Vulcan was the Father of
the gods. (AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS)
As the Father of the gods, he was, as we have seen, called Kronos; and
every one knows that the classical story of Kronos was just this, that, ”he
devoured his sons as soon as they were born.” Such is the analogy between type
and antitype. This legend has a further and deeper meaning; but, as applied to
Nimrod, or ”The Horned One,” it just refers to the fact, that, as the
representative of Moloch or Baal, infants were the most acceptable offerings at
his altar. We have ample and melancholy evidence on this subject from the
records of antiquity. ”The Phenicians,” says Eusebius, ”every year sacrificed
their beloved and only-begotten children to Kronos or Saturn, and the Rhodians
also often did the same.” Diodorus Siculus states that the Carthaginians, on
one occasion, when besieged by the Sicilians, and sore pressed, in order to
rectify, as they supposed, their error in having somewhat departed from the
ancient custom of Carthage, in this respect, hastily ”chose out two hundred of
the noblest of their children, and publicly sacrificed them” to this god. There
is reason to believe that the same practice obtained in our own land in the
times of the Druids. We know that they offered human sacrifices to their bloody
gods. We have evidence that they made ”their children pass through the fire to
Moloch,” and that makes it highly probable that they also offered them in
sacrifice; for, from Jeremiah 32:35, compared with Jeremiah 19:5, we find that
these two things were parts of one and the same system. The god whom the Druids
worshipped was Baal, as the blazing Baal-fires show, and the last-cited passage
proves that children were offered in sacrifice to Baal. When ”the fruit of the
body” was thus offered, it was ”for the sin of the soul.” And it was a
principle of the Mosaic law, a principle no doubt derived from the patriarchal
faith, that the priest must partake of whatever was offered as a sin-offering
(Num 18:9,10). Hence, the priests of Nimrod or Baal were necessarily required
to eat of the human sacrifices; and thus it has come to pass that ”Cahna-Bal,”
* the ”Priest of Baal,” is the established word in our own tongue for a
devourer of human flesh. **
* The word Cahna is the emphatic form of Cahn. Cahn is ”a priest,” Cahna is
”the priest.”
** From the historian Castor (in Armenian translation of EUSEBIUS) we learn
that it was under Bel, or Belus, that is Baal, that the Cyclops lived; and the
Scholiast on Aeschylus states that these Cyclops were the brethren of Kronos,
who was also Bel or Bal, as we have elsewhere seen. The eye in their forehead
shows that originally this name was a name of the great god; for that eye in
India and Greece is found the characteristic of the supreme divinity. The
Cyclops, then, had been representatives of that God–in other words, priests,
and priests of Bel or Bal. Now, we find that the Cyclops were well-known as
cannibals, Referre ritus Cyclopum, ”to bring back the rites of the Cyclops,”
meaning to revive the practice of eating human flesh. (OVID, Metam.)
Now, the ancient traditions relate that the apostates who joined in the
rebellion of Nimrod made war upon the faithful among the sons of Noah. Power
and numbers were on the side of the fire-worshippers. But on the side of Shem
and the faithful was the mighty power of God’s Spirit. Therefore many were
convinced of their sin, arrested in their evil career; and victory, as we have
already seen, declared for the saints. The power of Nimrod came to an end, *
and with that, for a time, the worship of the sun, and the fiery serpent
associated with it.
* The wars of the giants against heaven, referred to in ancient heathen
writers, had primary reference to this war against the saints; for men cannot
make war upon God except by attacking the people of God. The ancient writer
Eupolemus, as quoted by Eusebius (Praeparatio Evang.), states, that the
builders of the tower of Babel were these giants; which statement amounts
nearly to the same thing as the conclusion to which we have already come, for
we have seen that the ”mighty ones” of Nimrod were ”the giants” of antiquity.
Epiphanius records that Nimrod was a ringleader among these giants, and that
”conspiracy, sedition, and tyranny were carried on under him.” From the very
necessity of the case, the faithful must have suffered most, as being most
opposed to his ambitious and sacrilegious schemes. That Nimrod’s reign
terminated in some very signal catastrophe, we have seen abundant reason
already to conclude. The following statement of Syncellus confirms the
conclusions to which we have already come as to the nature of that catastrophe;
referring to the arresting of the tower-building scheme, Syncellus
(Chronographia) proceeds thus: ”But Nimrod would still obstinately stay (when
most of the other tower-builders were dispersed), and reside upon the spot; nor
could he be withdrawn from the tower, still having the command over no
contemptible body of men. Upon this, we are informed, that the tower, being
beat upon by violent winds, gave way, and by the just judgment of God, crushed
him to pieces.” Though this could not be literally true, for the tower stood
for many ages, yet there is a considerable amount of tradition to the effect
that the tower in which Nimrod gloried was overthrown by wind, which gives
reason to suspect that this story, when properly understood, had a real meaning
in it. Take it figuratively, and remembering that the same word which signifies
the wind signifies also the Spirit of God, it becomes highly probable that the
meaning is, that his lofty and ambitious scheme, by which, in Scriptural
language, he was seeking to ”mount up to heaven,” and ”set his nest among the
stars,” was overthrown for a time by the Spirit of God, as we have already
concluded, and that, in that overthrow he himself perished.
The case was exactly as stated here in regard to the antitype (Rev 12:9):
”The great dragon,” or fiery serpent, was ”cast out of heaven to the earth, and
his angels were cast out with him”; that is, the Head of the fire-worship, and all
his associates and underlings, were cast down from the power and glory to which
they had been raised. Then was the time when the whole gods of the classic
Pantheon of Greece were fain to flee and hide themselves from the wrath of
their adversaries. Then it was, that, in India, Indra, the king of the gods,
Surya, the god of the sun, Agni, the god of fire, and all the rabble rout of
the Hindu Olympus, were driven from heaven, wandered over the earth, or hid
themselves, in forests, disconsolate, and ready to ”perish of hunger.” Then it
was that Phaethon, while driving the chariot of the sun, when on the point of
setting the world on fire, was smitten by the Supreme God, and cast headlong to
the earth, while his sisters, the daughters of the sun, inconsolably lamented
him, as, ”the women wept for Tammuz.” Then it was, as the reader must be
prepared to see, that Vulcan, or Molk-Gheber, the classic ”god of fire,” was so
ignominiously hurled down from heaven, as he himself relates in Homer, speaking
of the wrath of the King of Heaven, which in this instance must mean God Most
High:–
”I felt his matchless might,
Hurled headlong downwards from the ethereal height;
Tossed all the day in rapid circles round,
Nor, till the sun descended, touched the ground.
Breathless I fell, in giddy motion lost.
The Sinthians raised me on the Lemnian coast.”
The lines, in which Milton refers to this same downfall, though he gives it
another application, still more beautifully describe the greatness of the
overthrow:–
”In Ausonian land
Men called him Mulciber; and how he fell
From heaven, they fabled. Thrown by angry Jove
Sheer o’er the crystal battlements; from morn
To noon he fell, from noon to dewy eve,
A summer’s day; and, with the setting sun,
Dropped from the zenith, like a falling star.
On Lemnos, the Aegean isle.”
Paradise Lost
These words very strikingly show the tremendous fall of Molk-Gheber, or
Nimrod, ”the Mighty King,” when ”suddenly he was cast down from the height of
his power, and was deprived at once of his kingdom and his life.” *
* The Greek poets speak of two downfalls of Vulcan. In the one case he was
cast down by Jupiter, in the other by Juno. When Jupiter cast him down, it was
for rebellion; when Juno did so, one of the reasons specially singled out for
doing so was his ”malformation,” that is, his ugliness. (HOMER’S Hymn to
Apollo) How exactly does this agree with the story of Nimrod: First he was
personally cast down, when, by Divine authority, he was slain. Then he was cast
down, in effigy, by Juno, when his image was degraded from the arms of the
Queen of Heaven, to make way for the fairer child.
Now, to this overthrow there is very manifest allusion in the prophetic
apostrophe of Isaiah to the king of Babylon, exulting over his approaching
downfall: ”How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer, son of the morning”! The
Babylonian king pretended to be a representative of Nimrod or Phaethon; and the
prophet, in these words, informs him, that, as certainly as the god in whom he
gloried had been cast down from his high estate, so certainly should he. In the
classic story, Phaethon is said to have been consumed with lightning (and, as
we shall see by-and-by, Aesculapius also died the same death); but the
lightning is a mere metaphor for the wrath of God, under which his life and his
kingdom had come to an end. When the history is examined, and the figure
stripped off, it turns out, as we have already seen, that he was judicially
slain with the sword. *
* Though Orpheus was commonly represented as having been torn in pieces, he
too was fabled to have been killed by lightning. (PAUSANIAS, Boeotica) When
Zoroaster died, he also is said in the myth to have perished by lightning
(SUIDAS); and therefore, in accordance with that myth, he is represented as
charging his countrymen to preserve not his body, but his ”ashes.” The death by
lightning, however, is evidently a mere figure.
Such is the language of the prophecy, and so exactly does it correspond
with the character, and deeds, and fate of the ancient type. How does it suit the
antitype? Could the power of Pagan Imperial Rome–that power that first
persecuted the Church of Christ, that stood by its soldiers around the tomb of
the Son of God Himself, to devour Him, if it had been possible, when He should
be brought forth, as the first-begotten from the dead, * to rule all nations–be
represented by a ”Fiery Serpent”?
* The birth of the Man-child, as given above, is different from that
usually given: but let the reader consider if the view which I have taken does
not meet all the requirements of the case. I think there will be but few who
will assent to the opinion of Mr. Elliot, which in substance amounts to this,
that the Man-child was Constantine the Great, and that when Christianity, in
his person sat down on the throne of Imperial Rome, that was the fulfilment of
the saying, that the child brought forth by the woman, amid such pangs of
travail, was ”caught up to God and His throne.” When Constantine came to the
empire, the Church indeed, as foretold in Daniel 11:34, ”was holpen with a
little help”; but that was all. The Christianity of Constantine was but of a
very doubtful kind, the Pagans seeing nothing in it to hinder but that when he
died, he should be enrolled among their gods. (EUTROPIUS) But even though it
had been better, the description of the woman’s child is far too high for
Constantine, or any Christian emperor that succeeded him on the imperial
throne. ”The Man-child, born to rule all nations with a rod of iron,” is
unequivocally Christ (see Psalms 2:9; Rev 19:15). True believers, as one with
Him in a subordinate sense, share in that honour (Rev 2:27); but to Christ
alone, properly, does that prerogative belong; and I think it must be evident
that it is His birth that is here referred to. But those who have contended for
this view have done injustice to their cause by representing this passage as
referring to His literal birth in Bethlehem. When Christ was born in Bethlehem,
no doubt Herod endeavoured to cut Him off, and Herod was a subject of the Roman
Empire. But it was not from any respect to Caesar that he did so, but simply
from fear of danger to his own dignity as King of Judea. So little did Caesar
sympathise with the slaughter of the children of Bethlehem, that it is recorded
that Augustus, on hearing of it, remarked that it was ”better to be Herod’s hog
than to be his child.” (MACROBIUS, Saturnalia) Then, even if it were admitted
that Herod’s bloody attempt to cut off the infant Saviour was symbolised by the
Roman dragon, ”standing ready to devour the child as soon as it should be
born,” where was there anything that could correspond to the statement that the
child, to save it from that dragon, ”was caught up to God and His Throne”? The
flight of Joseph and Mary with the Child into Egypt could never answer to such
language. Moreover, it is worthy of special note, that when the Lord Jesus was
born in Bethlehem, He was born, in a very important sense only as ”King of the
Jews.” ”Where is He that is born King of the Jews?” was the inquiry of the wise
men that came from the East to seek Him. All His life long, He appeared in no
other character; and when He died, the inscription on His cross ran in these
terms: ”This is the King of the Jews.” Now, this was no accidental thing. Paul
tells us (Rom 15:8) that ”Jesus Christ was a minister of the circumcision for
the truth of God, to confirm the promises made unto the fathers.” Our Lord
Himself plainly declared the same thing. ”I am not sent,” said He to the
Syrophoenician woman, ”save to the lost sheep of the house of Israel”; and, in
sending out His disciples during His personal ministry, this was the charge
which He gave them: ”Go not in the way of the Gentiles, and into any city of
the Samaritans enter ye not.” It was only when He was ”begotten from the dead,”
and ”declared to be the Son of God with power,” by His victory over the grave,
that He was revealed as ”the Man-child, born to rule all nations.” Then said He
to His disciples, when He had risen, and was about to ascend on high: ”All
power is given unto Me in heaven and in earth: go ye therefore, and teach
allnations.” To this glorious ”birth” from the tomb, and to the birth-pangs of
His Church that preceded it, our Lord Himself made distinct allusion on the
night before He was betrayed (John 16:20-22). ”Verily, verily, I say unto you,
That ye shall weep and lament, but the world shall rejoice; and ye shall be
sorrowful, but your sorrow shall be turned into joy. A woman when she is in
travail hath sorrow, because her hour is come; but as soon as she is delivered
of the child, she remembereth no more the anguish, for joy that a MAN is born
into the world. And ye now therefore have sorrow; but I will see you again, and
your heart shall rejoice.” Here the grief of the apostles, and, of course, all
the true Church that sympathised with them during the hour and power of
darkness, is compared to the pangs of a travailing woman; and their joy, when
the Saviour should see them again after His resurrection, to the joy of a
mother when safely delivered of a Man-child. Can there be a doubt, then, what
the symbol before us means, when the woman is represented as travailing in pain
to be delivered of a ”Man-child, that was to rule all nations,” and when it is
said that that ”Man-child was caught up to God and His Throne”?
Nothing could more lucidly show it forth. Among the lords many, and the
gods many, worshipped in the imperial city, the two grand objects of worship
were the ”Eternal Fire,” kept perpetually burning in the temple of Vesta, and
the sacred Epidaurian Serpent. In Pagan Rome, this fire-worship and
serpent-worship were sometimes separate, sometimes conjoined; but both occupied
a pre-eminent place in Roman esteem. The fire of Vesta was regarded as one of
the grand safeguards of the empire. It was pretended to have been brought from
Troy by Aeneas, who had it confided to his care by the shade of Hector, and was
kept with the most jealous care by the Vestal virgins, who, for their charge of
it, were honoured with the highest honours. The temple where it was kept, says
Augustine, ”was the most sacred and most reverenced of all the temples of
Rome.” The fire that was so jealously guarded in that temple, and on which so
much was believed to depend, was regarded in the very same light as by the old
Babylonian fire-worshippers. It was looked upon as the purifier, and in April
every year, at the Palilia, or feast of Pales, both men and cattle, for this
purpose, were made to pass through the fire. The Epidaurian snake, that the
Romans worshipped along with the fire, was looked on as the divine
representation of Aesculapius, the child of the Sun. Aesculapius, whom that
sacred snake represented, was evidently, just another name for the great
Babylonian god. His fate was exactly the same as that of Phaethon. He was said
to have been smitten with lightning for raising the dead. It is evident that
this could never have been the case in a physical sense, nor could it easily
have been believed to be so. But view it in a spiritual sense, and then the
statement is just this, that he was believed to raise men who were dead in
trespasses and sins to newness of life. Now, this was exactly what Phaethon was
pretending to do, when he was smitten for setting the world on fire. In the
Babylonian system there was a symbolical death, that all the initiated had to
pass through, before they got the new life which was implied in regeneration,
and that just to declare that they had passed from death unto life. As the
passing through the fire was both a purgation from sin and the means of
regeneration, so it was also for raising the dead that Phaethon was smitten.
Then, as Aesculapius was the child of the Sun, so was Phaethon. *
* The birth of Aesculapius in the myth was just the same as that of
Bacchus. His mother was consumed by lightning, and the infant was rescued from
the lightning that consumed her, as Bacchus was snatched from the flames that
burnt up his mother.–LEMPRIERE
To symbolise this relationship, the head of the image of Aesculapius was
generally encircled with rays. The Pope thus encircles the heads of the
pretended images of Christ; but the real source of these irradiations is patent
to all acquainted either with the literature or the art of Rome. Thus speaks
Virgil of Latinus:–
”And now, in pomp, the
peaceful kings appear,
Four steeds the chariot of Latinus bear,
Twelve golden beams around his temples play,
To mark his lineage from the god of day.”
The ”golden beams” around the head of Aesculapius were intended to mark the
same, to point him out as the child of the Sun, or the Sun incarnate. The ”golden
beams” around the heads of pictures and images called by the name of Christ,
were intended to show the Pagans that they might safely worship them, as the
images of their well-known divinities, though called by a different name. Now
Aesculapius, in a time of deadly pestilence, had been invited from Epidaurus to
Rome. The god, under the form of a larger serpent, entered the ship that was
sent to convey him to Rome, and having safely arrived in the Tiber, was
solemnly inaugurated as the guardian god of the Romans. From that time forth,
in private as well as in public, the worship of the Epidaurian snake, the
serpent that represented the Sun-divinity incarnate, in other words, the
”Serpent of Fire,” became nearly universal. In almost every house the sacred serpent,
which was a harmless sort, was to be found. ”These serpents nestled about the
domestic altars,” says the author of Pompeii, ”and came out, like dogs or cats,
to be patted by the visitors, and beg for something to eat. Nay, at table, if
we may build upon insulated passages, they crept about the cups of the guests,
and, in hot weather, ladies would use them as live boas, and twist them round
their necks for the sake of coolness…These sacred animals made war on the rats
and mice, and thus kept down one species of vermin; but as they bore a charmed
life, and no one laid violent hands on them, they multiplied so fast, that,
like the monkeys of Benares, they became an intolerable nuisance. The frequent
fires at Rome were the only things that kept them under.” Some pictures
represent Roman fire-worship and serpent-worship at once separate and
conjoined. The reason of the double representation of the god I cannot here
enter into, but it must be evident, from the words of Virgil already quoted,
that the figures having their heads encircled with rays, represent the
fire-god, or Sun-divinity; and what is worthy of special note is, that these
fire-gods are black, * the colour thereby identifying them with the Ethiopian
or black Phaethon; while, as the author of Pompeii himself admits, these same
black fire-gods are represented by two huge serpents.
* ”All the faces in his (MAZOIS’) engraving are quite black.” (Pompeii) In
India, the infant Crishna (emphatically the black god), in the arms of the
goddess Devaki, is represented with the woolly hair and marked features of the
Negro or African race.
Now, if this worship of the sacred serpent of the Sun, the great fire-god,
was so universal in Rome, what symbol could more graphically portray the
idolatrous power of Pagan Imperial Rome than the ”Great Fiery Serpent”? No
doubt it was to set forth this very thing that the Imperial standard itself–the
standard of the Pagan Emperor of Rome, as Pontifex Maximus, Head of the great
system of fire-worship and serpent-worship–was a serpent elevated on a lofty
pole, and so coloured, as to exhibit it as a recognised symbol of
fire-worship. (see note below)
As Christianity spread in the Roman Empire, the powers of light and
darkness came into collision (Rev 12:7,8): ”Michael and his angels fought
against the dragon; and the dragon fought and his angels, and prevailed not;
neither was their place found any more in heaven. And the great dragon was cast
out;…he was cast out into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him.”
The ”great serpent of fire” was cast out, when, by the decree of Gratian,
Paganism throughout the Roman empire was abolished–when the fires of Vesta were
extinguished, and the revenues of the Vestal virgins were confiscated–when the
Roman Emperor (who though for more than a century and a half a professor of
Christianity, had been ”Pontifex Maximus,” the very head of the idolatry of
Rome, and as such, on high occasions, appearing invested with all the
idolatrous insignia of Paganism), through force of conscience abolished his own
office. While Nimrod was personally and literally slain by the sword, it was
through the sword of the Spirit that Shem overcame the system of fire-worship,
and so bowed the hearts of men, as to cause it for a time to be utterly
extinguished. In like manner did the Dragon of fire, in the Roman Empire,
receive a deadly wound from a sword, and that the sword of the Spirit, which is
the Word of God. There is thus far an exact analogy between the type and the
antitype.
But not only is there this analogy. It turns out, when the records of
history are searched to the bottom, that when the head of the Pagan idolatry of
Rome was slain with the sword by the extinction of the office of Pontifex
Maximus, the last Roman Pontifex Maximus was the ACTUAL, LEGITIMATE, SOLE
REPRESENTATIVE OF NIMROD and his idolatrous system then existing. To make this
clear, a brief glance at the Roman history is necessary. In common with all the
earth, Rome at a very early prehistoric period, had drunk deep of Babylon’s
”golden cup.” But above and beyond all other nations, it had had a connection
with the idolatry of Babylon that put it in a position peculiar and alone. Long
before the days of Romulus, a representative of the Babylonian Messiah, called
by his name, had fixed his temple as a god, and his palace as a king, on one of
those very heights which came to be included within the walls of that city
which Remus and his brother were destined to found. On the Capitoline hill, so
famed in after-days as the great high place of Roman worship, Saturnia, or the
city of Saturn, the great Chaldean god, had in the days of dim and distant
antiquity been erected. Some revolution had then taken place–the graven images
of Babylon had been abolished–the erecting of any idol had been sternly
prohibited, * and when the twin founders of the now world-renowned city reared
its humble walls, the city and the palace of their Babylonian predecessor had
long lain in ruins.
* PLUTARCH (in Hist. Numoe) states, that Numa forbade the making of images,
and that for 170 years after the founding of Rome, no images were allowed in
the Roman temples.
The ruined state of this sacred city, even in the remote age of Evander, is
alluded to by Virgil. Referring to the time when Aeneas is said to have visited
that ancient Italian king, thus he speaks:–
”Then saw two heaps of ruins;
once they stood
Two stately towns on either side the flood;
Saturnia and Janicula’s remains;
And either place the founder’s name retains.”
The deadly wound, however, thus given to the Chaldean system, was destined
to be healed. A colony of Etruscans, earnestly attached to the Chaldean
idolatry, had migrated, some say from Asia Minor, others from Greece, and
settled in the immediate neighbourhood of Rome. They were ultimately
incorporated in the Roman state, but long before this political union took
place they exercised the most powerful influence on the religion of the Romans.
From the very first their skill in augury, soothsaying, and all science, real
or pretended, that the augurs or soothsayers monopolised, made the Romans look
up to them with respect. It is admitted on all hands that the Romans derived
their knowledge of augury, which occupied so prominent a place in every public
transaction in which they engaged, chiefly from the Tuscans, that is, the
people of Etruria, and at first none but natives of that country were permitted
to exercise the office of a Haruspex, which had respect to all the rites
essentially involved in sacrifice. Wars and disputes arose between Rome and the
Etruscans; but still the highest of the noble youths of Rome were sent to
Etruria to be instructed in the sacred science which flourished there. The
consequence was, that under the influence of men whose minds were moulded by
those who clung to the ancient idol-worship, the Romans were brought back again
to much of that idolatry which they had formerly repudiated and cast off.
Though Numa, therefore, in setting up his religious system, so far deferred to
the prevailing feeling of his day and forbade image-worship, yet in consequence
of the alliance subsisting between Rome and Etruria in sacred things, matters
were put in train for the ultimate subversion of that prohibition. The college
of Pontiffs, of which he laid the foundation, in process of time came to be
substantially an Etruscan college, and the Sovereign Pontiff that presided over
that college, and that controlled all the public and private religious rites of
the Roman people in all essential respects, became in spirit and in practice an
Etruscan Pontiff.
Still the Sovereign Pontiff of Rome, even after the Etruscan idolatry was
absorbed into the Roman system, was only an offshoot from the grand original
Babylonian system. He was a devoted worshipper of the Babylonian god; but he
was not the legitimate representative of that God. The true legitimate
Babylonian Pontiff had his seat beyond the bounds of the Roman empire. That
seat, after the death of Belshazzar, and the expulsion of the Chaldean
priesthood from Babylon by the Medo-Persian kings, was at Pergamos, where
afterwards was one of the seven churches of Asia. * There, in consequence, for
many centuries was ”Satan’s seat” (Rev 2:13). There, under favour of the
deified ** kings of Pergamos, was his favourite abode, there was the worship of
Aesculapius, under the form of the serpent, celebrated with frantic orgies and
excesses, that elsewhere were kept under some measure of restraint.
* BARKER and AINSWORTH’S Lares and Penates of Cilicia. Barker says, ”The
defeated Chaldeans fled to Asia Minor, and fixed their central college at
Pergamos.” Phrygia, that was so remarkable for the worship of Cybele and Atys,
formed part of the Kingdom of Pergamos. Mysia also was another, and the
Mysians, in the Paschal Chronicle, are said to be descended from Nimrod. The
words are, ”Nebrod, the huntsman and giant–from whence came the Mysians.”
Lydia, also, from which Livy and Herodotus say the Etrurians came, formed part
of the same kingdom. For the fact that Mysia, Lydia, and Phrygia were
constituent parts of the kingdom of Pergamos, see SMITH’s Classical Dictionary.
** The kings of Pergamos, in whose dominions the Chaldean Magi found an
asylum, were evidently by them, and by the general voice of Paganism that
sympathised with them, put into the vacant place which Belshazzar and his
predecessors had occupied. They were hailed as the representatives of the old
Babylonian god. This is evident from the statements of Pausanias. First, he
quotes the following words from the oracle of a prophetess called Phaennis, in
reference to the Gauls: ”But divinity will still more seriously afflict those
that dwell near the sea. However, in a short time after, Jupiter will send them
a defender, the beloved son of a Jove-nourished bull, who will bring
destruction on all the Gauls.” Then on this he comments as follows: ”Phaennis,
in this oracle, means by the son of a bull, Attalus, king of Pergamos, whom the
oracle of Apollo called Taurokeron,” or bull-horned. This title given by the
Delphian god, proves that Attalus, in whose dominions the Magi had their seat,
had been set up and recognised in the very character of Bacchus, the Head of
the Magi. Thus the vacant seat of Belshazzar was filled, and the broken chain
of the Chaldean succession renewed.
At first, the Roman Pontiff had no immediate connection with Pergamos and
the hierarchy there; yet, in course of time, the Pontificate of Rome and the
Pontificate of Pergamos came to be identified. Pergamos itself became part and
parcel of the Roman empire, when Attalus III, the last of its kings, at his
death, left by will all his dominions to the Roman people, BC 133. For some
time after the kingdom of Pergamos was merged in the Roman dominions, there was
no one who could set himself openly and advisedly to lay claim to all the
dignity inherent in the old title of the kings of Pergamos. The original powers
even of the Roman Pontiffs seem to have been by that time abridged, but when
Julius Caesar, who had previously been elected Pontifex Maximus, became also,
as Emperor, the supreme civil ruler of the Romans, then, as head of the Roman
state, and head of the Roman religion, all the powers and functions of the true
legitimate Babylonian Pontiff were supremely vested in him, and he found himself
in a position to assert these powers. Then he seems to have laid claim to the
divine dignity of Attalus, as well as the kingdom that Attalus had bequeathed
to the Romans, as centering in himself; for his well-known watchword, ”Venus
Genetrix,” which meant that Venus was the mother of the Julian race, appears to
have been intended to make him ”The Son” of the great goddess, even as the
”Bull-horned” Attalus had been regarded. *
* The deification of the emperors that continued in succession from the
days of Divus Julius, or the ”Deified Julius,” can be traced to no cause so
likely as their representing the ”Bull-horned” Attalus both as Pontiff and
Sovereign.
Then, on certain occasions, in the exercise of his high pontifical office,
he appeared of course in all the pomp of the Babylonian costume, as Belshazzar
himself might have done, in robes of scarlet, with the crosier of Nimrod in his
hand, wearing the mitre of Dagon and bearing the keys of Janus and Cybele. *
* That the key was one of the symbols used in the Mysteries, the reader
will find on consulting TAYLOR’S Note on Orphic Hymn to Pluto, where that
divinity is spoken of as ”keeper of the keys.” Now the Pontifex, as
”Hierophant,” was ”arrayed in the habit and adorned with the symbols of the
great Creator of the world, of whom in these Mysteries he was supposed to be
the substitute.” (MAURICE’S Antiquities) The Primeval or Creative god was
mystically represented as Androgyne, as combining in his own person both sexes
(Ibid.), being therefore both Janus and Cybele at the same time. In opening up
the Mysteries, therefore, of this mysterious divinity, it was natural that the
Pontifex should bear the key of both these divinities. Janus himself, however,
as well as Pluto, was often represented with more than one key.
Thus did matter continue, as already stated, even under so-called Christian
emperors; who, as a salve to their consciences, appointed a heathen as their
substitute in the performance of the more directly idolatrous functions of the
pontificate (that substitute, however, acting in their name and by their
authority), until the reign of Gratian, who, as shown by Gibbon, was the first
that refused to be arrayed in the idolatrous pontifical attire, or to act as
Pontifex. Now, from all this it is evident that, when Paganism in the Roman
empire was abolished, when the office of Pontifex Maximus was suppressed, and
all the dignitaries of paganism were cast down from their seats of influence
and of power, which they had still been allowed in some measure to retain, that
was not merely the casting down of the Fiery Dragon of Rome, but the casting
down of the Fiery Dragon of Babylon. It was just the enacting over again, in a
symbolical sense, upon the true and sole legitimate successor of Nimrod, what
had taken place upon himself, when the greatness of his downfall gave rise to
the exclamation, ”How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer, son of the
morning”!
Notes
Zoroaster, the Head of the
Fire-Worshippers
That Zoroaster was head of the fire-worshippers, the following, among other
evidence, may prove. Not to mention that the name Zoroaster is almost a synonym
for a fire-worshipper, the testimony of Plutarch is of weight: ”Plutarch
acknowledges that Zoroaster among the Chaldeans instituted the Magi, in
imitation of whom the Persians also had their (Magi). * The Arabian History
also relates that Zaradussit, or Zerdusht, did not for the first time
institute, but (only) reform the religion of the Persians and Magi, who had
been divided into many sects.”
* The great antiquity of the institution of the Magi is proved from the
statement of Aristotle already referred to, as preserved in Theopompus, which
makes them to have been ”more ancient than the Egyptians,” whose antiquity is
well known. (Theopompi Fragmenta in MULLER).
The testimony of Agathias is to the same effect. He gives it as his opinion
that the worship of fire came from the Chaldeans to the Persians. That the Magi
among the Persians were the guardians of ”the sacred and eternal fire” may be
assumed from Curtius, who says that fire was carried before them ”on silver
altars”; from the statement of Strabo (Geograph.), that ”the Magi kept upon the
altar a quantity of ashes and an immortal fire,” and of Herodotus, that
”without them, no sacrifice could be offered.” The fire-worship was an
essential part of the system of the Persian Magi (WILSON, Parsee Religion).
This fire-worship the Persian Magi did not pretend to have invented; but their
popular story carried the origin of it up to the days of Hoshang, the father of
Tahmurs, who founded Babylon (WILSON)–i.e., the time of Nimrod. In confirmation
of this, we have seen that a fragment of Apollodorus makes Ninus the head of
the fire-worshipper, Layard, quoting this fragment, supposes Ninus to be
different from Zoroaster (Nineveh and its Remains); but it can be proved, that
though many others bore the name of Zoroaster, the lines of evidence all
converge, so as to demonstrate that Ninus and Nimrod and Zoroaster were one.
The legends of Zoroaster show that he was known not only as a Magus, but as a
Warrior (ARNOBIUS). Plato says that Eros Armenius (whom CLERICUS, De Chaldaeis,
states to have been the same as the fourth Zoroaster) died and rose again after
ten days, having been killed in battle; and that what he pretended to have
learned in Hades, he communicated to men in his new life (PLATO, De Republica).
We have seen the death of Nimrod, the original Zoroaster, was not that of a warrior
slain in battle; but yet this legend of the warrior Zoroaster is entirely in
favour of the supposition that the original Zoroaster, the original Head of the
Magi, was not a priest merely, but a warrior-king. Everywhere are the
Zoroastrians, or fire-worshippers, called Guebres or Gabrs. Now, Genesis 10:8
proves that Nimrod was the first of the ”Gabrs.”
As Zoroaster was head of the fire-worshippers, so Tammuz was evidently the
same. We have seen evidence already that sufficiently proves the identity of
Tammuz and Nimrod; but a few words may still more decisively prove it, and cast
further light on the primitive fire-worship. 1. In the first place, Tammuz and
Adonis are proved to be the same divinity. Jerome, who lived in Palestine when
the rites of Tammuz were observed, up to the very time when he wrote, expressly
identifies Tammuz and Adonis, in his Commentary on Ezekiel, where the Jewish
women are represented as weeping for Tammuz; and the testimony of Jerome on
this subject is universally admitted. Then the mode in which the rites of
Tammuz or Adonis were celebrated in Syria was essentially the same as the rites
of Osiris. The statement of Lucian (De Dea Syria) strikingly shows this, and
Bunsen distinctly admits it. The identity of Osiris and Nimrod has been largely
proved in the body of this work. When, therefore, Tammuz or Adonis is
identified with Osiris, the identification of Tammuz with Nimrod follows of
course. And then this entirely agrees with the language of Bion, in his Lament
for Adonis, where he represents Venus as going in a frenzy of grief, like a
Bacchant, after the death of Adonis, through the woods and valleys, and
”calling upon her Assyrian husband.” It equally agrees with the statement of
Maimonides, that when Tammuz was put to death, the grand scene of weeping for
that death was in the temple of Babylon. 2. Now, if Tammuz was Nimrod, the
examination of the meaning of the name confirms the connection of Nimrod with
the first fire-worship. After what has already been advanced, there needs no
argument to show that, as the Chaldeans were the first who introduced the name
and power of kings (SYNCELLUS), and as Nimrod was unquestionably the first of
these kings, and the first, consequently, that bore the title of Moloch, or
king, so it was in honour of him that the ”children were made to pass through
the fire to Moloch.” But the intention of that passing through the fire was
undoubtedly to purify. The name Tammuz has evidently reference to this, for it
signifies ”to perfect,” that is, ”to purify” * ”by fire”; and if Nimrod was, as
the Paschal Chronicle, and the general voice of antiquity, represent him to
have been, the originator of fire-worship, this name very exactly expresses his
character in that respect.
* From tam, ”to perfect,” and muz, ”to burn.” To be ”pure in heart” in
Scripture is just the same as to be ”perfect in heart.” The well-known name
Deucalion, as connected with the flood, seems to be a correlative term of the
water-worshippers. Dukh-kaleh signifies ”to purify by washing,” from Dikh, ”to
wash” (CLAVIS STOCKII), and Khaleh, ”to complete,” or ”perfect.” The noun from
the latter verb, found in 2 Chronicles 4:21, shows that the root means ”to
purify,” ”perfect gold” being in the Septuagint justly rendered ”pure gold.”
There is a name sometimes applied to the king of the gods that has some bearing
on this subject. That name is ”Akmon.” What is the meaning of it? It is
evidently just the Chaldee form of the Hebrew Khmn, ”the burner,” which becomes
Akmon in the same way as the Hebrew Dem, ”blood,” in Chaldee becomes ”Adem.”
Hesychius says that Akmon is Kronos, sub voce ”Akmon.” In Virgil (Aeneid) we
find this name compounded so as to be an exact synonym for Tammuz, Pyracmon
being the name of one of the three famous Cyclops whom the poet introduces. We
have seen that the original Cyclops were Kronos and his brethren, and deriving
the name from ”Pur,” the Chaldee form of Bur, ”to purify,” and ”Akmon,” it just
signifies ”The purifying burner.”
It is evident, however, from the Zoroastrian verse, elsewhere quoted, that
fire itself was worshipped as Tammuz, for it is called the ”Father that
perfected all things.” In one respect this represented fire as the Creative
god; but in another, there can be no doubt that it had reference to the
”perfecting” of men by ”purifying” them. And especially it perfected those whom
it consumed. This was the very idea that, from time immemorial until very
recently, led so many widows in India to immolate themselves on the funeral
piles of their husbands, the woman who thus burned herself being counted
blessed, because she became Suttee *–i.e., ”Pure by burning.”
* MOOR’S Pantheon, ”Siva.” The epithet for a woman that burns herself is
spelled ”Sati,” but is pronounced ”Suttee,” as above.
And this also, no doubt, reconciled the parents who actually sacrificed
their children to Moloch, to the cruel sacrifice, the belief being cherished
that the fire that consumed them also ”perfected” them, and made them meet for
eternal happiness. As both the passing through the fire, and the burning in the
fire, were essential rites in the worship of Moloch or Nimrod, this is an
argument that Nimrod was Tammuz. As the priest and representative of the
perfecting or purifying fire, it was he that carried on the work of perfecting
or purifying by fire, and so he was called by its name.
When we turn to the legends of India, we find evidence to the very same
effect as that which we have seen with regard to Zoroaster and Tammuz as head
of the fire-worshippers. The fifth head of Brahma, that was cut off for
inflicting distress on the three worlds, by the ”effulgence of its dazzling
beams,” referred to in the text of this work, identifies itself with Nimrod.
The fact that that fifth head was represented as having read the Vedas, or
sacred books produced by the other four heads, shows, I think, a succession. *
* The Indian Vedas that now exist do not seem to be of very great antiquity
as written documents; but the legend goes much further back than anything that
took place in India. The antiquity of writing seems to be very great, but
whether or not there was any written religious document in Nimrod’s day, a Veda
there must have been; for what is the meaning of the word ”Veda”? It is
evidently just the same as the Anglo-Saxon Edda with the digamma prefixed, and
both alike evidently come from ”Ed” a ”Testimony,” a ”Religious Record,” or
”confession of Faith.” Such a ”Record” or ”Confession,” either ”oral” or
”written,” must have existed from the beginning.
Now, coming down from Noah, what would that succession be? We have evidence
from Berosus, that, in the days of Belus–that is, Nimrod–the custom of making
representations like that of two-headed Janus, had begun. Assume, then, that
Noah, as having lived in two worlds, has his two heads. Ham is the third, Cush
the fourth, and Nimrod is, of course, the fifth. And this fifth head was cut
off for doing the very thing for which Nimrod actually was cut off. I suspect
that this Indian myth is the key to open up the meaning of a statement of
Plutarch, which, according to the terms of it, as it stands, is visibly absurd.
It is as follows: Plutarch (in the fourth book of his Symposiaca) says that
”the Egyptians were of the opinion that darkness was prior to light, and that
the latter [viz. light] was produced from mice, in the fifth generation, at the
time of the new moon.” In India, we find that ”a new moon” was produced in a
different sense from the ordinary meaning of that term, and that the production
of that new moon was not only important in Indian mythology, but evidently
agreed in time with the period when the fifth head of Brahma scorched the world
with its insufferable splendour. The account of its production runs thus: that
the gods and mankind were entirely discontented with the moon which they had got,
”Because it gave no light,” and besides the plants were poor and the fruits of
no use, and that therefore they churned the White sea [or, as it is commonly
expressed, "they churned the ocean"], when all things were
mingled–i.e., were thrown into confusion, and that then a new moon, with a new
regent, was appointed, which brought in an entirely new system of things
(Asiatic Researches). From MAURICE’s Indian Antiquities, we learn that at this
very time of the churning of the ocean, the earth was set on fire, and a great
conflagration was the result. But the name of the moon in India is Soma, or Som
(for the final a is only a breathing, and the word is found in the name of the
famous temple of Somnaut, which name signifies ”Lord of the Moon”), and the
moon in India is male. As this transaction is symbolical, the question
naturally arises, who could be meant by the moon, or regent of the moon, who
was cast off in the fifth generation of the world? The name Som shows at once
who he must have been. Som is just the name of Shem; for Shem’s name comes from
Shom, ”to appoint,” and is legitimately represented either by the name Som, or
Sem, as it is in Greek; and it was precisely to get rid of Shem (either after
his father’s death, or when the infirmities of old age were coming upon him) as
the great instructor of the world, that is, as the great diffuser of spiritual
light, that in the fifth generation the world was thrown into confusion and the
earth set on fire. The propriety of Shem’s being compared to the moon will
appear if we consider the way in which his father Noah was evidently
symbolised. The head of a family is divinely compared to the sun, as in the
dream of Joseph (Gen 37:9), and it may be easily conceived how Noah would, by
his posterity in general, be looked up to as occupying the paramount place as
the Sun of the world; and accordingly Bryant, Davies, Faber, and others, have
agreed in recognising Noah as so symbolised by Paganism. When, however, his
younger son–for Shem was younger than Japhet–(Gen 10:21) was substituted for
his father, to whom the world had looked up in comparison of the ”greater
light,” Shem would naturally, especially by those who disliked him and rebelled
against him, be compared to ”the lesser light,” or the moon. *
* ”As to the kingdom, the Oriental Oneirocritics, jointly say, that the sun
is the symbol of the king, and the moon of the next to him in power.” This
sentence extracted from DAUBUZ’s Symbolical Dictionary, illustrated with
judicious notes by my learned friend, the Rev. A. Forbes, London, shows that
the conclusion to which I had come before seeing it, in regard to the
symbolical meaning of the moon, is entirely in harmony with Oriental modes of
thinking.
Now, the production of light by mice at this period, comes in exactly to
confirm this deduction. A mouse in Chaldee is ”Aakbar”; and Gheber, or Kheber,
in Arabic, Turkish, and some of the other eastern dialects, becomes ”Akbar,” as
in the well-known Moslem saying, ”Allar Akbar,” ”God is Great.” So that the
whole statement of Plutarch, when stripped of its nonsensical garb, just
amounts to this, that light was produced by the Guebres or fire-worshippers,
when Nimrod was set up in opposition to Shem, as the representative of Noah,
and the great enlightener of the world.
____________________
The Story of Phaethon
The identity of Phaethon and Nimrod has much to support it besides the
prima facie evidence arising from the statement that Phaethon was an Ethiopian
or Cushite, and the resemblance of his fate, in being cast down from heaven
while driving the chariot of the sun, as ”the child of the Sun,” to the casting
down of Molk-Gheber, whose very name, as the god of fire, identifies him with
Nimrod. 1. Phaethon is said by Apollodorus to have been the son of Tithonus;
but if the meaning of the name Tithonus be examined, it will be evident that he
was Tithonus himself. Tithonus was the husband of Aurora (DYMOCK). In the
physical sense, as we have already seen, Aur-ora signifies ”The awakener of the
light”; to correspond with this Tithonus signifies ”The kindler of light,” or
”setter on fire.” *
* From Tzet or Tzit, ”to kindle,” or ”set on fire,” which in Chaldee
becomes Tit, and Thon, ”to give.”
Now ”Phaethon, the son of Tithonus,” is in Chaldee ”Phaethon Bar Tithon.”
But this also signifies ”Phaethon, the son that set on fire.” Assuming, then,
the identity of Phaethon and Tithonus, this goes far to identify Phaethon with
Nimrod; for Homer, as we have seen (Odyssey), mentions the marriage of Aurora
with Orion, the mighty Hunter, whose identity with Nimrod is established. Then
the name of the celebrated son that sprang from the union between Aurora and
Tithonus, shows that Tithonus, in his original character, must have been indeed
the same as ”the mighty hunter” of Scripture, for the name of that son was
Memnon (MARTIAL and OVID, Metam.), which signifies ”The son of the spotted
one,” * thereby identifying the father with Nimrod, whose emblem was the
spotted leopard’s skin.
* From Mem or Mom, ”spotted,” and Non, ”a son.”
As Ninus or Nimrod, was worshipped as the son of his own wife, and that
wife Aurora, the goddess of the dawn, we see how exact is the reference to
Phaethon, when Isaiah, speaking of the King of Babylon, who was his
representative, says, ”How art thou fallen from heaven, O Lucifer, son of the
morning” (Isa 14:12). The marriage of Orion with Aurora; in other words, his
setting up as ”The kindler of light,” or becoming the ”author of fire-worship,”
is said by Homer to have been the cause of his death, he having in consequence
perished under the wrath of the gods. 2. That Phaethon was currently
represented as the son of Aurora, the common story, as related by Ovid,
sufficiently proves. While Phaethon claimed to be the son of Phoebus, or the
sun, he was reproached with being only the son of Merops–i.e., of the mortal
husband of his mother Clymene (OVID, Metam.). The story implies that that
mother gave herself out to be Aurora, not in the physical sense of that term,
but in its mystical sense; as ”The woman pregnant with light”; and,
consequently, her son was held up as the great ”Light-bringer” who was to
enlighten the world,–”Lucifer, the son of the morning,” who was the pretended
enlightener of the souls of men. The name Lucifer, in Isaiah, is the very word
from which Eleleus, one of the names of Bacchus, evidently comes. It comes from
”Helel,” which signifies ”to irradiate” or ”to bring light,” and is equivalent
to the name Tithon. Now we have evidence that Lucifer, the son of Aurora, or
the morning, was worshipped in the very same character as Nimrod, when he
appeared in his new character as a little child.
This Phaethon, or Lucifer, who was cast down is further proved to be Janus;
for Janus is called ”Pater Matutinus” (HORACE); and the meaning of this name
will appear in one of its aspects when the meaning of the name of the Dea
Matuta is ascertained. Dea Matuta signifies ”The kindling or Light-bringing
goddess,” * and accordingly, by Priscian, she is identified with Aurora.
* Matuta comes from the same word as Tithonus–i.e., Tzet, Tzit, or Tzut,
which in Chaldee becomes Tet, Tit, or Tut, ”to light” or ”set on fire.” From
Tit, ”to set on fire,” comes the Latin Titio, ”a firebrand”; and from Tut, with
the formative M prefixed, comes Matuta–just as from Nasseh, ”to forget,” with
the same formative prefixed, comes Manasseh, ”forgetting,” the name of the
eldest son of Joseph (Gen 41:51). The root of this verb is commonly given as
”Itzt”; but see BAKER’S Lexicon, where it is also given as ”Tzt.” It is
evidently from this root that the Sanscrit ”Suttee” already referred to comes.
Matutinus is evidently just the correlate of Matuta, goddess of the
morning; Janus, therefore, as Matutinus, is ”Lucifer, son of the morning.” But
further, Matuta is identified with Ino, after she had plunged into the sea, and
had, along with her son Melikerta, been changed into a sea-divinity.
Consequently her son Melikerta, ”king of the walled city,” is the same as Janus
Matutinus, or Lucifer, Phaethon, or Nimrod.
There is still another link by which Melikerta, the sea-divinity, or Janus
Matutinus, is identified with the primitive god of the fire-worshippers. The
most common name of Ino, or Matuta, after she had passed through the waters,
was Leukothoe (OVID, Metam.). Now, Leukothoe or Leukothea has a double meaning,
as it is derived either from ”Lukhoth,” which signifies ”to light,” or ”set on
fire,” or from Lukoth ”to glean.” In the Maltese medal, the ear of corn, at the
side of the goddess, which is more commonly held in her hand, while really
referring in its hidden meaning to her being the Mother of Bar, ”the son,” to
the uninitiated exhibits her as Spicilega, or ”The Gleaner,”–”the popular
name,” says Hyde, ”for the female with the ear of wheat represented in the
constellation Virgo.” In Bryant, Cybele is represented with two or three ears
of corn in her hand; for as there were three peculiarly distinguished
Bacchuses, there were consequently as many ”Bars,” and she might therefore be
represented with one, two, or three ears in her hand. But to revert to the
Maltese medal just referred to, the flames coming out of the head of Lukothea,
the ”Gleaner,” show that, though she has passed through the waters, she is
still Lukhothea, ”the Burner,” or ”Light-giver.” And the rays around the mitre
of the god on the reverse entirely agree with the character of that god as
Eleleus, or Phaethon–in other words, as ”The Shining Bar.” Now, this ”Shining
Bar,” as Melikerta, ”king of the walled city,” occupies the very place of
”Ala-Mahozim,” whose representative the Pope is elsewhere proved to be. But he
is equally the sea-divinity, who in that capacity wears the mitre of Dagon. The
fish-head mitre which the Pope wears shows that, in this character also, as the
”Beast from the sea,” he is the unquestionable representative of Melikerta.
____________________
The Roman Imperial Standard of
the Dragon a Symbol of Fire- worship
The passage of Ammianus Marcellinus, that speaks of that standard, calls it
”purpureum signum draconis.” On this may be raised the question, Has the
epithet purpureum, as describing the colour of the dragon, any reference to
fire? The following extract from Salverte may cast some light upon it: ”The
dragon figured among the military ensigns of the Assyrians. Cyrus caused it to
be adopted by the Persians and Medes. Under the Roman emperors, and under the
emperors of Byzantium, each cohort or centuria bore for an ensign a dragon.”
There is no doubt that the dragon or serpent standard of the Assyrians and
Persians had reference to fire-worship, the worship of fire and the serpent
being mixed up together in both these countries. As the Romans, therefore, borrowed
these standards evidently from these sources, it is to be presumed that they
viewed them in the very same light as those from whom they borrowed them,
especially as that light was so exactly in harmony with their own system of
fire-worship. The epithet purpureus or ”purple” does not indeed naturally
convey the idea of fire-colour to us. But it does convey the idea of red; and
red in one shade or another, among idolatrous nations, has almost with one
consent been used to represent fire. The Egyptians (BUNSEN), the Hindoos
(MOOR’S Pantheon, ”Brahma”), the Assyrians (LAYARD’S Nineveh), all represented
fire by red. The Persians evidently did the same, for when Quintus Curtius
describes the Magi as following ”the sacred and eternal fire,” he describes the
365 youths, who formed the train of these Magi, as clad in ”scarlet garments,”
the colour of these garments, no doubt, having reference to the fire whose
ministers they were. Puniceus is equivalent to purpureus, for it was in
Phenicia [six] that the purpura, or purple-fish, was originally found. The
colour derived from that purple-fish was scarlet, and it is the very name of
that Phoenician purple-fish, ”arguna,” that is used in Daniel 5:16 and 19,
where it is said that he that should interpret the handwriting on the wall
should ”be clothed in scarlet.” The Tyrians had the art of making true purples,
as well as scarlet; and there seems no doubt that purpureus is frequently used
in the ordinary sense attached to our word purple. But the original meaning of
the epithet is scarlet; and as bright scarlet colour is a natural colour to
represent fire, so we have reason to believe that that colour, when used for
robes of state among the Tyrians, had special reference to fire; for the Tyrian
Hercules, who was regarded as the inventor of purple (BRYANT), was regarded as
”King of Fire,” (NONNUS, Dionysiaca). Now, when we find that the purpura of
Tyre produced the scarlet colour which naturally represented fire, and that
puniceus, which is equivalent to purpureus, is evidently used for scarlet,
there is nothing that forbids us to understand purpureus in the same sense
here, but rather requires it. But even though it were admitted that the tinge
was deeper, and purpureus meant the true purple, as red, of which it is a shade,
is the established colour of fire, and as the serpent was the universally
acknowledged symbol of fire-worship, the probability is strong that the use of
a red dragon as the Imperial standard of Rome was designed as an emblem of that
system of fire-worship on which the safety of the empire was believed so
vitally to hinge.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VII
Section II
The Beast from the Sea
The next great enemy introduced to our notice is the Beast from the Sea
(Rev 13:1): ”I stood,” says John, ”upon the sand of the sea-shore, and saw a
beast rise up out of the sea.” The seven heads and ten horns on this beast, as
on the great dragon, show that this power is essentially the same beast, but
that it has undergone a circumstantial change. In the old Babylonian system,
after the worship of the god of fire, there speedily followed the worship of
the god of water or the sea. As the world formerly was in danger of being burnt
up, so now it was in equal danger of being drowned. In the Mexican story it is
said to have actually been so. First, say they, it was destroyed by fire, and
then it was destroyed by water. The Druidic mythology gives the same account;
for the Bards affirm that the dreadful tempest of fire that split the earth
asunder, was rapidly succeeded by the bursting of the Lake Llion, when the
waters of the abyss poured forth and ”overwhelmed the whole world.” In Greece
we meet with the very same story. Diodorus Siculus tells us that, in former
times, ”a monster called Aegides, who vomited flames, appeared in Phrygia;
hence spreading along Mount Taurus, the conflagration burnt down all the woods
as far as India; then, with a retrograde course, swept the forests of Mount
Lebanon, and extended as far as Egypt and Africa; at last a stop was put to it
by Minerva. The Phrygians remembered well this CONFLAGRATION and the FLOOD
which FOLLOWED it.” Ovid, too, has a clear allusion to the same fact of the
fire-worship being speedily followed by the worship of water, in his fable of
the transformation of Cycnus. He represents King Cycnus, an attached friend of
Phaethon, and consequently of fire-worship, as, after his friend’s death,
hating the fire, and taking to the contrary element that of water, through
fear, and so being transformed into a swan. In India, the great deluge, which
occupies so conspicuous a place in its mythology, evidently has the same
symbolical meaning, although the story of Noah is mixed up with it; for it was
during that deluge that ”the lost Vedas,” or sacred books, were recovered, by
means of the great god, under the form of a FISH. The ”loss of the Vedas” had
evidently taken place at that very time of terrible disaster to the gods, when,
according to the Purans, a great enemy of these gods, called Durgu, ”abolished
all religious ceremonies, the Brahmins, through fear, forsook the reading of
the Veda,…fire lost its energy, and the terrified stars retired from sight”; in
other words, when idolatry, fire-worship, and the worship of the host of heaven
had been suppressed. When we turn to Babylon itself, we find there also
substantially the same account. In Berosus, the deluge is represented as coming
after the time of Alorus, or the ”god of fire,” that is, Nimrod, which shows
that there, too, this deluge was symbolical. Now, out of this deluge emerged
Dagon, the fish-god, or god of the sea. The origin of the worship of Dagon, as
shown by Berosus, was founded upon a legend, that, at a remote period of the
past, when men were sunk in barbarism, there came up a BEAST CALLED OANNES FROM
THE RED SEA, or Persian Gulf–half-man, half-fish–that civilised the
Babylonians, taught them arts and sciences, and instructed them in politics and
religion. The worship of Dagon was introduced by the very parties–Nimrod, of
course, excepted–who had previously seduced the world into the worship of fire.
In the secret Mysteries that were then set up, while in the first instance, no
doubt, professing the greatest antipathy to the prescribed worship of fire,
they sought to regain their influence and power by scenic representations of
the awful scenes of the Flood, in which Noah was introduced under the name of
Dagon, or the Fish-god–scenes in which the whole family of man, both from the
nature of the event and their common connection with the second father of the
human race, could not fail to feel a deep interest. The concocters of these Mysteries
saw that if they could only bring men back again to idolatry in any shape, they
could soon work that idolatry so as substantially to re-establish the very
system that had been put down. Thus it was, that, as soon as the way was
prepared for it, Tammuz was introduced as one who had allowed himself to be
slain for the good of mankind. A distinction was made between good serpents and
bad serpents, one kind being represented as the serpent of Agathodaemon, or the
good divinity, another as the serpent of Cacodaemon, or the evil one. *
* WILKINSON. In Egypt, the Uraeus, or the Cerastes, was the good serpent,
the Apophis the evil one.
It was easy, then, to lead men on by degrees to believe that, in spite of
all appearances to the contrary, Tammuz, instead of being the patron of
serpent-worship in any evil sense, was in reality the grand enemy of the
Apophis, or great malignant serpent that envied the happiness of mankind, and
that in fact he was the very seed of the woman who was destined to bruise the
serpent’s head. By means of the metempsychosis, it was just as easy to identify
Nimrod and Noah, and to make it appear that the great patriarch, in the person
of this his favoured descendant, had graciously condescended to become
incarnate anew, as Dagon, that he might bring mankind back again to the
blessings they had lost when Nimrod was slain. Certain it is, that Dagon was
worshipped in the Chaldean Mysteries, wherever they were established, in a
character that represented both the one and the other.
In the previous system, the grand mode of purification had been by fire.
Now, it was by water that men were to be purified. Then began the doctrine of
baptismal regeneration, connected, as we have seen, with the passing of Noah
through the waters of the Flood. Then began the reverence for holy wells, holy
lakes, holy rivers, which is to be found wherever these exist on the earth;
which is not only to be traced among the Parsees, who, along with the worship
of fire, worship also the Zereparankard, or Caspian Sea, and among the Hindoos,
who worship the purifying waters of the Ganges, and who count it the grand
passport to heaven, to leave their dying relatives to be smothered in its
stream; but which is seen in full force at this day in Popish Ireland, in the
universal reverence for holy wells, and the annual pilgrimages to Loch Dergh,
to wash away sin in its blessed waters; and which manifestly lingers also among
ourselves, in the popular superstition about witches which shines out in the
well-known line of Burns–
”A running stream they daurna
cross.”
So much for the worship of water. Along with the water-worship, however,
the old worship of fire was soon incorporated again. In the Mysteries, both
modes of purification were conjoined. Though water-baptism was held to regenerate,
yet purification by fire was still held to be indispensable; * and, long ages
after baptismal regeneration had been established, the children were still made
”to pass through the fire to Moloch.” This double purification both by fire and
water was practised in Mexico, among the followers of Wodan. This double
purification was also commonly practised among the old Pagan Romans; ** and, in
course of time, almost everywhere throughout the Pagan world, both the
fire-worship and serpent-worship of Nimrod, which had been put down, was
re-established in a new form, with all its old and many additional abominations
besides.
* The name Tammuz, as applied to Nimrod or Osiris, was equivalent to Alorus
or the ”god of fire,” and seems to have been given to him as the great purifier
by fire. Tammuz is derived from tam, ”to make perfect,” and muz, ”fire,” and
signifies ”Fire the perfecter,” or ”the perfecting fire.” To this meaning of
the name, as well as to the character of Nimrod as the Father of the gods, the
Zoroastrian verse alludes when it says: ”All things are the progeny of ONE
FIRE. The Father perfected all things, and delivered them to the second mind,
whom all nations of men call the first.” (CORY’S Fragments) Here Fire is
declared to be the Father of all; for all things are said to be its progeny,
and it is also called the ”perfecter of all things.” The second mind is
evidently the child who displaced Nimrod’s image as an object of worship; but
yet the agency of Nimrod, as the first of the gods, and the fire-god, was held
indispensable for ”perfecting” men. And hence, too, no doubt, the necessity of
the fire of Purgatory to ”perfect” men’s souls at last, and to purge away all
the sins that they have carried with them into the unseen world.
** OVID, Fasti. It was not a little interesting to me, after being led by
strict induction from circumstantial evidence to the conclusion that the
purgation by fire was derived from the fire-worship of Adon or Tammuz, and that
by water had reference to Noah’s Flood, to find an express statement in Ovid,
that such was the actual belief at Rome in his day. After mentioning, in the
passage to which the above citation refers, various fanciful reasons for the
twofold purgation by fire and water, he concludes thus: ”For my part, I do not
believe them; there are some (however) who say that the one is intended to
commemorate Phaethon, and the other the flood of Deucalion.”
If, however, any one should still think it unlikely that the worship of
Noah should be mingled in the ancient world with the worship of the Queen of
Heaven and her son, let him open his eyes to what is taking place in Italy at
this hour [in 1856] in regard to the worship of that patriarch and the Roman
Queen of Heaven. The following, kindly sent me by Lord John Scott, as
confirmatory of the views propounded in these pages, appeared in the Morning
Herald, October 26, 1855: ”AN ARCHBISHOP’S PRAYER TO THE PATRIARCH NOAH.-POPERY
IN TURIN.–For several consecutive years the vintage has been almost entirely
destroyed in Tuscany, in consequence of the prevalent disease. The Archbishop
of Florence has conceived the idea of arresting this plague by directing
prayers to be offered, not to God, but to the patriarch Noah; and he has just
published a collection, containing eight forms of supplication, addressed to
this distinguished personage of the ancient covenant. ‘Most holy patriarch
Noah!’ is the language of one of these prayers, ‘who didst employ thyself in
thy long career in cultivating the vine, and gratifying the human race with
that precious beverage, which allays the thirst, restores the strength, and
enlivens the spirits of us all, deign to regard our vines, which, following
thine example, we have cultivated hitherto; and, while thou beholdest them
languishing and blighted by that disastrous visitation, which, before the
vintage, destroys the fruit (in severe punishment for many blasphemies and
other enormous sins we have committed), have compassion on us, and, prostrate
before the lofty throne of God, who has promised to His children the fruits of
the earth, and an abundance of corn and wine, entreat Him on our behalf;
promise Him in our name, that, with the aid of Divine grace, we will forsake
the ways of vice and sin, that we will no longer abuse His sacred gifts, and will
scrupulously observe His holy law, and that of our holy Mother, the Catholic
Church,’ &c. The collection concludes with a new prayer, addressed to the
Virgin Mary, who is invoked in these words: ‘O immaculate Mary, behold our
fields and vineyards! and, should it seem to thee that we merit so great a
favour, stay, we beseech thee, this terrible plague, which, inflicted for our
sins, renders our fields unfruitful, and deprives our vines of the honours of
the vintage,’ &c. The work contains a vignette, representing the patriarch
Noah presiding over the operations of the vintage, as well as a notification
from the Archbishop, granting an indulgence of forty days to all who shall
devoutly recite the prayers in question.–Christian Times” In view of such rank
Paganism as this, well may the noble Lord already referred to remark, that
surely here is the world turned backwards, and the worship of the old god
Bacchus unmistakably restored!
Now, this god of the sea, when his worship had been firmly re-established,
and all formidable opposition had been put down, was worshipped also as the
great god of war, who, though he had died for the good of mankind, now that he
had risen again, was absolutely invincible. In memory of this new incarnation,
the 25th of December, otherwise Christmas Day, was, as we have already seen,
celebrated in Pagan Rome as ”Natalis Solis invicti,” ”the birth-day of the
Unconquered Sun.” We have equally seen that the very name of the Roman god of
war is just the name of Nimrod; for Mars and Mavors, the two well-known names
of the Roman war-god, are evidently just the Roman forms of the Chaldee ”Mar”
or ”Mavor,” the Rebel. Thus terrible and invincible was Nimrod when he
reappeared as Dagon, the beast from the sea. If the reader looks at what is said
in Revelation 13:3, he will see precisely the same thing: ”And I saw one of his
heads as it were wounded unto death; and his deadly wound was healed: and all
the world wondered after the beast. And they worshipped the dragon, which gave
power unto the beast, and they worshipped the beast, saying, Who is like unto
the beast? who is able to make war with him?” Such, in all respects, is the
analogy between the language of the prophecy and the ancient Babylonian type.
Do we find, then, anything corresponding to this in the religious history
of the Roman empire after the fall of the old Paganism of that empire? Exactly
in every respect. No sooner was Paganism legally abolished, the eternal fire of
Vesta extinguished, and the old serpent cast down from the seat of power, where
so long he had sat secure, than he tried the most vigorous means to regain his
influence and authority. Finding that persecution of Christianity, as such, in
the meantime would not do to destroy the church symbolised by the sun-clothed
Woman, he made another tack (Rev 12:15): ”And the serpent cast out of his mouth
a flood of water after the woman, that he might cause her to be carried away of
the flood.” The symbol here is certainly very remarkable. If this was the
dragon of fire, it might have been expected that it would have been
represented, according to popular myths, as vomiting fire after the woman. But
it is not so. It was a flood of water that he cast out of his mouth. What could
this mean? As the water came out of the mouth of the dragon–that must mean
doctrine, and of course, false doctrine. But is there nothing more specific
than this? A single glance at the old Babylonian type will show that the water
cast out of the mouth of the serpent must be the water of baptismal regeneration.
Now, it was precisely at this time, when the old Paganism was suppressed, that
the doctrine of regenerating men by baptism, which had been working in the
Christian Church before, threatened to spread like a deluge over the face of
the Roman empire. *
* From about AD 360, to the time of the Emperor Justinian, about 550, we
have evidence both of the promulgation of this doctrine, and also of the deep
hold it came at last to take of professing Christians.
It was then precisely that our Lord Jesus Christ began to be popularly
called Ichthys, that is, ”the Fish,” manifestly to identify him with Dagon. At
the end of the fourth century, and from that time forward, it was taught, that
he who had been washed in the baptismal font was thereby born again, and made pure
as the virgin snow.
This flood issued not merely from the mouth of Satan, the old serpent, but
from the mouth of him who came to be recognised by the Pagans of Rome as the
visible head of the old Roman Paganism. When the Roman fire-worship was
suppressed, we have seen that the office of Pontifex Maximus, the head of that
Paganism, was abolished. That was ”the wounding unto death” of the head of the
Fiery Dragon. But scarcely had that head received its deadly wound, when it
began to be healed again. Within a few years after the Pagan title of Pontifex
had been abolished, it was revived, and that by the very Emperor that had
abolished it, and was bestowed, with all the Pagan associations clustering
around it, upon the Bishop of Rome, who, from that time forward, became the
grand agent in pouring over professing Christendom, first the ruinous doctrine
of baptismal regeneration, and then all the other doctrines of Paganism derived
from ancient Babylon. When this Pagan title was bestowed on the Roman bishop, it
was not as a mere empty title of honour it was bestowed, but as a title to
which formidable power was annexed. To the authority of the Bishop of Rome in
this new character, as Pontifex, when associated ”with five or seven other
bishops” as his counsellors, bishops, and even metropolitans of foreign
churches over extensive regions of the West, in Gaul not less than in Italy,
were subjected; and civil pains were attached to those who refused to submit to
his pontifical decisions. Great was the danger to the cause of truth and
righteousness when such power was, by imperial authority, vested in the Roman
bishop, and that a bishop so willing to give himself to the propagation of
false doctrine. Formidable, however, as the danger was, the true Church, the
Bride, the Lamb’s wife (so far as that Church was found within the bounds of
the Western Empire), was wonderfully protected from it. That Church was for a
time saved from the peril, not merely by the mountain fastnesses in which many
of its devoted members found an asylum, as Jovinian, Vigilantius, and the
Waldenses, and such-like faithful ones, in the wilderness among the Cottian
Alps, and other secluded regions of Europe, but also not a little, by a signal
interposition of Divine Providence in its behalf. That interposition is
referred to in these words (Rev 12:16): ”The earth opened her mouth and
swallowed up the flood, which the dragon cast out of his mouth.” What means the
symbol of the ”earth’s opening its mouth”? In the natural world, when the earth
opens its mouth, there is an earthquake; and an ”earthquake,” according to the
figurative language of the Apocalypse, as all admit, just means a great
political convulsion. Now, when we examine the history of the period in
question, we find that the fact exactly agrees with the prefiguration; that
soon after the Bishop of Rome because Pontiff, and, as Pontiff, set himself so
zealously to bring in Paganism into the Church, those political convulsions
began in the civil empire of Rome, which never ceased till the framework of
that empire was broken up, and it was shattered to pieces. But for this the
spiritual power of the Papacy might have been firmly established over all the
nations of the West, long before the time it actually was so. It is clear, that
immediately after Damasus, the Roman bishop, received his pontifical power, the
predicted ”apostacy” (1 Tim 4:3), so far as Rome was concerned, was broadly
developed. Then were men ”forbidden to marry,” * and ”commanded to abstain from
meats.”
* The celibacy of the clergy was enacted by Syricius, Bishop of Rome, AD
385. (GIESELER)
Then, with a factitious doctrine of sin, a factitious holiness also was
inculcated, and people were led to believe that all baptised persons were
necessarily regenerated. Had the Roman Empire of the West remained under one
civil head, backed by that civil head, the Bishop of Rome might very soon have
infected all parts of that empire with the Pagan corruption he had evidently
given himself up to propagate. Considering the cruelty with which Jovinian, and
all who opposed the Pagan doctrines in regard to marriage and abstinence, were
treated by the Pontifex of Rome, under favour of the imperial power, it may
easily be seen how serious would have been the consequences to the cause of
truth in the Western Empire had this state of matters been allowed to pursue
its natural course. But now the great Lord of the Church interfered. The
”revolt of the Goths,” and the sack of Rome by Alaric the Goth in 410, gave
that shock to the Roman Empire which issued, by 476, in its complete upbreaking
and the extinction of the imperial power. Although, therefore, in pursuance of
the policy previously inaugurated, the Bishop of Rome was formally recognised,
by an imperial edict in 445, as ”Head of all the Churches of the West,” all
bishops being commanded ”to hold and observe as a law whatever it should please
the Bishop of Rome to ordain or decree”; the convulsions of the empire, and the
extinction, soon thereafter, of the imperial power itself, to a large extent
nullified the disastrous effects of this edict. The ”earth’s opening its
mouth,” then–in other words, the breaking up of the Roman Empire into so many
independent sovereignties–was a benefit to true religion, and prevented the
flood of error and corruption, that had its source in Rome, from flowing as
fast and as far as it would otherwise have done. When many different wills in
the different countries were substituted for the one will of the Emperor, on
which the Sovereign Pontiff leaned, the influence of that Pontiff was greatly
neutralised. ”Under these circumstances,” says Gieseler, referring to the
influence of Rome in the different kingdoms into which the empire was divided,
”under these circumstances, the Popes could not directly interfere in
ecclesiastical matters; and their communications with the established Church of
the country depended entirely on the royal pleasure.” The Papacy at last
overcame the effects of the earthquake, and the kingdoms of the West were
engulfed in that flood of error that came out of the mouth of the dragon. But
the overthrow of the imperial power, when so zealously propping up the
spiritual despotism of Rome, gave the true Church in the West a lengthened
period of comparative freedom, which otherwise it could not have had. The Dark
Ages would have come sooner, and the darkness would have been more intense, but
for the Goths and Vandals, and the political convulsions that attended their
irruptions. They were raised up to scourge an apostatising community, not to
persecute the saints of the Most High, though these, too, may have occasionally
suffered in the common distress. The hand of Providence may be distinctly seen,
in that, at so critical a moment, the earth opened its mouth and helped the
woman.
To return, however, to the memorable period when the pontifical title was
bestowed on the Bishop of Rome. The circumstances in which that Pagan title was
bestowed upon Pope Damasus, were such as might have been not a little trying to
the faith and integrity of a much better man than he. Though Paganism was
legally abolished in the Western Empire of Rome, yet in the city of the Seven
Hills it was still rampant, insomuch that Jerome, who knew it well, writing of
Rome at this very period, calls it ”the sink of all superstitions.” The consequence
was, that, while everywhere else throughout the empire the Imperial edict for
the abolition of Paganism was respected, in Rome itself it was, to a large
extent, a dead letter. Symmachus, the prefect of the city, and the highest
patrician families, as well as the masses of the people, were fanatically
devoted to the old religion; and, therefore, the Emperor found it necessary, in
spite of the law, to connive at the idolatry of the Romans. How strong was the
hold that Paganism had in the Imperial city, even after the fire of Vesta was
extinguished, and State support was withdrawn from the Vestals, the reader may
perceive from the following words of Gibbon: ”The image and altar of Victory
were indeed removed from the Senate-house; but the Emperor yet spared the
statues of the gods which were exposed to public view; four hundred and
twenty-four temples or chapels still remained to satisfy the devotion of the
people, and in every quarter of Rome the delicacy of the Christians was
offended by the fumes of idolatrous sacrifice.” Thus strong was Paganism in
Rome, even after State support was withdrawn about 376. But look forward only
about fifty years, and see what has become of it. The name of Paganism has
almost entirely disappeared; insomuch that the younger Theodosius, in an edict
issued AD 423, uses these words: ”The Pagans that remain, although now we may
believe there are none.” The words of Gibbon in reference to this are very
striking. While fully admitting that, notwithstanding the Imperial laws made against
Paganism, ”no peculiar hardships” were imposed on ”the sectaries who
credulously received the fables of Ovid, and obstinately rejected the miracles
of the Gospel,” he expresses his surprise at the rapidity of the revolution
that took place among the Romans from Paganism to Christianity. ”The ruin of
Paganism,” he says–and his dates are from AD 378, the year when the Bishop of
Rome was made Pontifex, to 395–”The ruin of Paganism, in the age of Theodosius,
is perhaps the only example of the total extirpation of any ancient and popular
superstition; and may therefore deserve to be considered as a singular event in
the history of the human mind.”…After referring to the hasty conversion of the
senate, he thus proceeds: ”The edifying example of the Anician family [in
embracing Christianity] was soon imitated by the rest of the nobility…The
citizens who subsisted by their own industry, and the populace who were
supported by the public liberality, filled the churches of the Lateran and
Vatican with an incessant throng of devout proselytes. The decrees of the
senate, which proscribed the worship of idols, were ratified by the general
consent of the Romans; the splendour of the capitol was defaced, and the
solitary temples were abandoned to ruin and contempt. Rome submitted to the
yoke of the Gospel…The generation that arose in the world, after the
promulgation of Imperial laws, was ATTRACTED within the pale of the Catholic
Church, and so RAPID, yet so GENTLE was the fall of Paganism, that only
twenty-eight years after the death of Theodosius [the elder], the faint and
minute vestiges were no longer visible to the eye of the legislator.” Now, how
can this great and rapid revolution be accounted for? Is it because the Word of
the Lord has had free course and been glorified? Then, what means the new
aspect that the Roman Church has now begun to assume? In exact proportion as
Paganism has disappeared from without the Church, in the very same proportion
it appears within it. Pagan dresses for the priests, Pagan festivals for the
people, Pagan doctrines and ideas of all sorts, are everywhere in vogue. The
testimony of the same historian, who has spoken so decisively about the rapid
conversion of the Romans to the profession of the Gospel, is not less decisive
on this point. In his account of the Roman Church, under the head of
”Introduction of Pagan Ceremonies,” he thus speaks: ”As the objects of religion
were gradually reduced to the standard of the imagination, the rites and
ceremonies were introduced that seemed most powerfully to effect the senses of
the vulgar. If, in the beginning of the fifth century, Tertullian or Lactantius
had been suddenly raised from the dead, to assist at the festival of some
popular saint or martyr, they would have gazed with astonishment and indignation
on the profane spectacle which had succeeded to the pure and spiritual worship
of a Christian congregation. As soon as the doors of the church were thrown
open, they must have been offended by the smoke of incense, the perfume of
flowers, and the glare of lamps and tapers, which diffused at noon-day a gaudy,
superfluous, and, in their opinion, sacrilegious light.” Gibbon has a great
deal more to the same effect. Now, can any one believe that this was
accidental? No. It was evidently the result of that unprincipled policy, of
which, in the course of this inquiry, we have already seen such innumerable
instances on the part of the Papacy. *
* Gibbon distinctly admits this. ”It must ingenuously be confessed,” says
he, ”that the ministers of the Catholic Church imitated the profane model they
were so impatient to destroy.”
Pope Damasus saw that, in a city pre-eminently given to idolatry, if he was
to maintain the Gospel pure and entire, he must be willing to bear the cross,
to encounter hatred and ill-will, to endure hardness as a good soldier of Jesus
Christ. On the other hand, he could not but equally see, that if bearing the
title, around which, for so many ages, all the hopes and affections of Paganism
had clustered, he should give its votaries reason to believe that he was
willing to act up to the original spirit of that title, he might count on
popularity, aggrandisement and glory. Which alternative, then, was Damasus
likely to choose? The man that came into the bishopric of Rome, as a thief and
a robber, over the dead bodies of above a hundred of his opponents, could not
hesitate as to the election he should make. The result shows that he had acted
in character, that, in assuming the Pagan title of Pontifex, he had set himself
at whatever sacrifice of truth to justify his claims to that title in the eyes
of the Pagans, as the legitimate representative of their long line of pontiffs.
There is no possibility of accounting for the facts on any other supposition.
It is evident also that he and his successors were ACCEPTED in that character
by the Pagans, who, in flocking into the Roman Church, and rallying around the
new Pontiff, did not change their creed or worship, but brought both into the
Church along with them. The reader has seen how complete and perfect is the
copy of the old Babylonian Paganism, which, under the patronage of the Popes,
has been introduced into the Roman Church. He has seen that the god whom the
Papacy worships as the Son of the Highest, is not only, in spite of a Divine
command, worshipped under the form of an image, made, as in the days of avowed
Paganism, by art and man’s device, but that attributes are ascribed to Him
which are the very opposite of those which belong to the merciful Saviour, but
which attributes are precisely those which were ascribed to Moloch, the
fire-god, or Ala Mahozim, ”the god of fortifications.” He has seen that, about
the very time when the Bishop of Rome was invested with the Pagan title of
Pontifex, the Saviour began to be called Ichthys, or ”the Fish,” thereby
identifying Him with Dagon, or the Fish-god; and that, ever since, advancing
step by step, as circumstances would permit, what has gone under the name of
the worship of Christ, has just been the worship of that same Babylonian
divinity, with all its rites and pomps and ceremonies, precisely as in ancient
Babylon. Lastly, he has seen that the Sovereign Pontiff of the so-called
Christian Church of Rome has so wrought out the title bestowed upon him in the
end of the fourth century, as to be now dignified, as for centuries he has
been, with the very ”names of blasphemy” originally bestowed on the old
Babylonian pontiffs. *
* The reader who has seen the first edition of this work, will perceive
that, in the above reasoning, I found nothing upon the formal appointment by
Gratian of the Pope as Pontifex, with direct authority over the Pagans, as was
done in that edition. That is not because I do not believe that such an
appointment was made, but because, at the present moment, some obscurity rests
on the subject. The Rev. Barcroft Boake, a very learned minister of the Church
of England in Ceylon, when in this country, communicated to me his researches
on the subject, which have made me hesitate to assert that there was any formal
authority given to the Bishop of Rome over the Pagans by Gratian. At the same
time, I am still convinced that the original statement was substantially true.
The late Mr. Jones, in the Journal of Prophecy, not only referred to the
Appendix to the Codex Theodosianus, in proof of such an appointment, but, in
elucidation of the words of the Codex, asserted in express terms that there was
a contest for the office of Pontifex, and that there were two candidates, the
one a Pagan, Symmachus, who had previously been Valentinian’s deputy, and the
other the Bishop of Rome. (Quarterly Journal of Prophecy, Oct. 1852) I have not
been able to find Mr. Jones’s authority for this statement; but the statement
is so circumstantial, that it cannot easily be called in question without
impugning the veracity of him that made it. I have found Mr. Jones in error on
divers points, but in no error of such a nature as this; and the character of
the man forbids such a supposition. Moreover, the language of the Appendix
cannot easily admit of any other interpretation. But, even though there were no
formal appointment of Bishop Damasus to a pontificate extending over the
Pagans, yet it is clear that, by the rescript of Gratian (the authenticity of
which is fully admitted by the accurate Gieseler), he was made the supreme
spiritual authority in the Western Empire in all religious questions. When,
therefore, in the year 400, Pagan priests were, by the Christian Emperor of the
West, from political motives, ”acknowledged as public officers” (Cod. Theod.,
ad POMPEJANUM, Procons), these Pagan priests necessarily came under the
jurisdiction of the Bishop of Rome, as there was then no other tribunal but his
for determining all matters affecting religion. In the text, however I have
made no allusion to this. The argument, as I think the reader will admit, is
sufficiently decisive without it.
Now, if the circumstance in which the Pope has risen to all this height of
power and blasphemous assumption, be compared with a prediction in Daniel,
which, for want of the true key has never been understood, I think the reader
will see how literally in the history of the Popes of Rome that prediction has
been fulfilled. The prediction to which I allude is that which refers to what
is commonly called the ”Wilful King” as described in Daniel 11:36, and
succeeding verses. That ”Wilful King” is admitted on all hands to be a king
that arises in Gospel times, and in Christendom, but has generally been
supposed to be an Infidel Antichrist, not only opposing the truth but opposing
Popery as well, and every thing that assumed the very name of Christianity. But
now, let the prediction be read in the light of the facts that have passed in
review before us, and it will be seen how very different is the case (v 36):
”And the king shall do according to his will; and he shall exalt himself and
magnify himself above every god, and shall speak marvellous things against the
God of gods, and shall prosper till the indignation be accomplished: for that
that is determined shall be done. Neither shall he regard the god of his
fathers, nor the desire of women, nor regard any god: for he shall magnify
himself above all.” So far these words give an exact description of the Papacy,
with its pride, its blasphemy, and forced celibacy and virginity. But the words
that follow, according to any sense that the commentators have put upon them,
have never hitherto been found capable of being made to agree either with the
theory that the Pope was intended, or any other theory whatever. Let them,
however, only be literally rendered, and compared with the Papal history, and
all is clear, consistent, and harmonious. The inspired seer has declared that,
in the Church of Christ, some one shall arise who shall not only aspire to a
great height, but shall actually reach it, so that ”he shall do according to
his will”; his will shall be supreme in opposition to all law, human and
Divine. Now, if this king is to be a pretended successor of the fisherman of
Galilee, the question would naturally arise, How could it be possible that he
should ever have the means of rising to such a height of power? The words that
follow give a distinct answer to that question: ”He shall not REGARD * any god,
for he shall magnify himself above all. BUT, in establishing himself, shall he
honour the god of fortifications (Ala Mahozim), and a god, whom his fathers
knew not, shall he honour with gold and silver, and with precious stones and
pleasant things. Thus shall he make into strengthening bulwarks ** [for
himself] the people of a strange god, whom he shall acknowledge and increase
with glory; and he shall cause them to rule over many, and he shall divide the
land for gain.”
* The reader will observe, it is not said he shall not worship any god; the
reverse is evident; but that he shall not regard any, that his own glory is his
highest end.
** The word here is the same as above rendered ”fortifications.”
Such is the prophecy. Now, this is exactly what the Pope did.
Self-aggrandisement has ever been the grand principle of the Papacy; and, in
”establishing” himself, it was just the ”god of Fortifications” that he
honoured. The worship of that god he introduced into the Roman Church; and, by
so doing, he converted that which otherwise would have been a source of
weakness to him, into the very tower of his strength–he made the very Paganism
of Rome by which he was surrounded the bulwark of his power. When once it was
proved that the Pope was willing to adopt Paganism under Christian names, the
Pagans and Pagan priests would be his most hearty and staunch defenders. And
when the Pope began to wield lordly power over the Christians, who were the men
that he would recommend–that he would promote–that he would advance to honour
and power? Just the very people most devoted to ”the worship of the strange
god” which he had introduced into the Christian Church. Gratitude and
self-interest alike would conspire to this. Jovinian, and all who resisted the
Pagan ideas and Pagan practices, were excommunicated and persecuted. Those only
who were heartily attached to the apostacy (and none could now be more so than
genuine Pagans) were favoured and advanced. Such men were sent from Rome in all
directions, even as far as Britain, to restore the reign of Paganism–they were
magnified with high titles, the lands were divided among them, and all to
promote ”the gain” of the Romish see, to bring in ”Peter’s pence” from the ends
of the earth to the Roman Pontiff. But it is still further said, that the
self-magnifying king was to ”honour a god, whom his fathers knew not, with gold
and silver and precious stones.” The principle on which transubstantiation was
founded is unquestionably a Babylonian principle, but there is no evidence that
that principle was applied in the way in which it has been by the Papacy.
Certain it is, that we have evidence that no such wafer-god as the Papacy
worships was ever worshipped in Pagan Rome. ”Was any man ever so mad,” says
Cicero, who himself was a Roman augur and a priest–”was any man ever so mad as
to take that which he feeds on for a god?” Cicero could not have said this if
anything like wafer-worship had been established in Rome. But what was too
absurd for Pagan Romans is no absurdity at all for the Pope. The host, or
consecrated wafer, is the great god of the Romish Church. That host is
enshrined in a box adorned with gold and silver and precious stones. And thus
it is manifest that ”a god” whom even the Pope’s Pagan ”fathers knew not,” he
at this day honours in the very way that the terms of the prediction imply that
he would. Thus, in every respect, when the Pope was invested with the Pagan
title of Pontifex, and set himself to make that title a reality, he exactly
fulfilled the prediction of Daniel recorded more than 900 years before.
But to return to the Apocalyptic symbols. It was out of the mouth of the ”Fiery
Dragon” that ”the flood of water” was discharged. The Pope, as he is now, was
at the close of the fourth century the only representative of Belshazzar, or
Nimrod, on the earth; for the Pagans manifestly ACCEPTED him as such. He was
equally, of course, the legitimate successor of the Roman ”Dragon of fire.”
When, therefore, on being dignified with the title of Pontifex, he set himself
to propagate the old Babylonian doctrine of baptismal regeneration, that was
just a direct and formal fulfilment of the Divine words, that the great Fiery
Dragon should ”cast out of his mouth a flood of water to carry away the Woman
with the flood.” He, and those who co-operated with him in this cause, paved
the way for the erecting of that tremendous civil and spiritual despotism which
began to stand forth full in the face of Europe in AD 606, when, amid the
convulsions and confusions of the nations tossed like a tempestuous sea, the
Pope of Rome was made Universal Bishop; and when the ten chief kingdoms of
Europe recognised him as Christ’s Vicar upon earth, the only centre of unity,
the only source of stability to their thrones. Then by his own act and deed,
and by the consent of the UNIVERSAL PAGANISM of Rome, he was actually the
representative of Dagon; and as he bears upon his head at this day the mitre of
Dagon, so there is reason to believe he did then. *
* It is from this period only that the well-known 1260 days can begin to be
counted; for not before did the Pope appear as Head of the ten-horned beast,
and head of the Universal Church. The reader will observe that though the beast
above referred to has passed through the sea, it still retains its primitive
characteristic. The head of the apostacy at first was Kronos, ”The Horned One.”
The head of the apostacy is Kronos still, for he is the beast ”with seven head
and ten horns.”
Could there, then, be a more exact fulfilment of chapter 13:1 ”And I stood
upon the sand of the sea, and saw a beast rise up out of the sea, having seven
heads and ten horns, and upon his horns ten crowns, and upon his heads the
names of blasphemy…And I saw one of his heads as it had been wounded to death;
and his deadly wound was healed, and all the world wondered after the beast”?
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VII
Section III
The Beast from the Earth
This beast is presented to our notice (Rev 13:11): ”And I beheld another
beast coming up out of the earth; and he had two horns like a lamb, and he
spake as a serpent.” Though this beast is mentioned after the beast from the
sea, it does not follow that he came into existence after the sea-beast. The
work he did seems to show the very contrary; for it is by his instrumentality
that mankind are led (v 12) ”to worship the first beast” after that beast had
received the deadly wound, which shows that he must have been in existence
before. The reason that he is mentioned second, is just because, as he
exercises all the powers of the first beast, and leads all men to worship him,
so he could not properly be described till that beast had first appeared on the
stage. Now, in ancient Chaldea there was the type, also, of this. That god was
called in Babylon Nebo, in Egypt Nub or Num, * and among the Romans Numa, for
Numa Pompilius, the great priest-king of the Romans, occupied precisely the
position of the Babylonian Nebo.
* In Egypt, especially among the Greek-speaking population, the Egyptian b
frequently passed into an m.
Among the Etrurians, from whom the Romans derived the most of their rites,
he was called Tages, and of this Tages it is particularly recorded, that just
as John saw the beast under consideration ”come up out of the earth,” so Tages
was a child suddenly and miraculously born out of a furrow or hole in the
ground. In Egypt, this God was represented with the head and horns of a ram. In
Etruria he seems to have been represented in a somewhat similar way; for there
we find a Divine and miraculous child exhibited wearing the ram’s horns. The
name Nebo, the grand distinctive name of this god, signifies ”The Prophet,” and
as such, he gave oracles, practised augury, pretended to miraculous powers, and
was an adept in magic. He was the great wonder-worker, and answered exactly to
the terms of the prophecy, when it is said (v 13), ”he doeth great wonders, and
causeth fire to come down from heaven in the sight of men.” It was in this very
character that the Etrurian Tages was known; for it was he who was said to have
taught the Romans augury, and all the superstition and wonder-working jugglery
connected therewith. As in recent times, we hear of weeping images and winking
Madonnas, and innumerable prodigies besides, continually occurring in the
Romish Church, in proof of this papal dogma or that, so was it also in the
system of Babylon. There is hardly a form of ”pious fraud” or saintly imposture
practised at this day on the banks of the Tiber, that cannot be proved to have
had its counterpart on the banks of the Euphrates, or in the systems that came
from it. Has the image of the Virgin been seen to shed tears? Many a tear was
shed by the Pagan images. To these tender-hearted idols Lucan alludes, when,
speaking of the prodigies that occurred during the civil wars, he says:–
”Tears shed by gods, our
country’s patrons,
And sweat from Lares, told the city’s woes.”
Virgil also refers to the same, when he says:–
”The weeping statues did the
wars foretell,
And holy sweat from brazen idols fell.”
When in the consulship of Appius Claudius, and Marcus Perpenna, Publius
Crassus was slain in a battle with Aristonicus, Apollo’s statue at Cumae shed
tears for four days without intermission. The gods had also their merry moods,
as well as their weeping fits. If Rome counts it a divine accomplishment for
the sacred image of her Madonna to ”wink,” it was surely not less becoming in
the sacred images of Paganism to relax their features into an occasional grin.
That they did so, we have abundant testimony. Psellus tells us that, when the
priests put forth their magic powers, ”then statues laughed, and lamps were
spontaneously enkindled.” When the images made merry, however, they seemed to
have inspired other feelings than those of merriment into the breasts of those
who beheld them. ”The Theurgists,” says Salverte, ”caused the appearance of the
gods in the air, in the midst of gaseous vapour, disengaged from fire. The
Theurgis Maximus undoubtedly made use of a secret analogous to this, when, in
the fumes of the incense which he burned before the statue of Hecate, the image
was seen to laugh so naturally as to fill the spectators with terror.” There
were times, however, when different feelings were inspired. Has the image of
the Madonna been made to look benignantly upon a favoured worshipper, and send
him home assured that his prayer was heard? So did the statues of the Egyptian
Isis. They were so framed, that the goddess could shake the silver serpent on
her forehead, and nod assent to those who had preferred their petitions in such
a way as pleased her. We read of Romish saints that showed their miraculous
powers by crossing rivers or the sea in most unlikely conveyances. Thus, of St.
Raymond it is written that he was transported over the sea on his cloak.
Paganism is not a whit behind in this matter; for it is recorded of a Buddhist
saint, Sura Acharya, that, when ”he used to visit his flocks west of the Indus,
he floated himself across the stream upon his mantle.” Nay, the gods and high priests
of Paganism showed far more buoyancy than even this. There is a holy man, at
this day, in the Church of Rome, somewhere on the Continent, who rejoices in
the name of St. Cubertin, who so overflows with spirituality, that when he
engages in his devotions there is no keeping his body down to the ground, but,
spite of all the laws of gravity, it rises several feet into the air. So was it
also with the renowned St. Francis of Assisi, Petrus a Martina, and Francis of
Macerata, some centuries ago. But both St. Cubertin and St. Francis and his
fellows are far from being original in this superhuman devotion. The priests
and magicians in the Chaldean Mysteries anticipated them not merely by
centuries, but by thousands of years. Coelius Rhodiginus says, ”that, according
to the Chaldeans, luminous rays, emanating from the soul, do sometimes divinely
penetrate the body, which is then of itself raised above the earth, and that
this was the case with Zoroaster.” The disciples of Jamblichus asserted that
they had often witnessed the same miracle in the case of their master, who,
when he prayed was raised to the height of ten cubits from the earth. The
greatest miracle which Rome pretends to work, is when, by the repetition of
five magic words, she professes to bring down the body, blood, soul, and
divinity of our Lord Jesus Christ from heaven, to make Him really and
corporeally present in the sacrament of the altar. The Chaldean priests
pretended, by their magic spells, in like manner, to bring down their
divinities into their statues, so that their ”real presence” should be visibly
manifested in them. This they called ”the making of gods”; and from this no
doubt comes the blasphemous saying of the Popish priests, that they have power
”to create their Creator.” There is no evidence, so far as I have been able to
find, that, in the Babylonian system, the thin round cake of wafer, the
”unbloody sacrifice of the mass,” was ever regarded in any other light than as
a symbol, that ever it was held to be changed into the god whom it represented.
But yet the doctrine of transubstantiation is clearly of the very essence of
Magic, which pretended, on the pronunciation of a few potent words, to change
one substance into another, or by a dexterous juggle, wholly to remove one
substance, and to substitute another in its place. Further, the Pope, in
the plenitude of his power, assumes the right of wielding the lightnings of
Jehovah, and of blasting by his ”fulminations” whoever offends him. Kings, and
whole nations, believing in this power, have trembled and bowed before him,
through fear of being scathed by his spiritual thunders. The priests of
Paganism assumed the very same power; and, to enforce the belief of their
spiritual power, they even attempted to bring down the literal lightnings from
heaven; yea, there seems some reason to believe that they actually succeeded,
and anticipated the splendid discovery of Dr. Franklin. Numa Pompilius is said
to have done so with complete success. Tullus Hostilius, his successor,
imitating his example, perished in the attempt, himself and his whole family
being struck, like Professor Reichman in recent times, with the lightning he
was endeavouring to draw down. * Such were the wonder-working powers attributed
in the Divine Word to the beast that was to come up from the earth; and by the
old Babylonian type these very powers were all pretended to be exercised.
* The means appointed for drawing down the lightning were described in the
books of the Etrurian Tages. Numa had copied from these books, and had left
commentaries behind him on the subject, which Tallus had misunderstood, and
hence the catastrophe.
Now, in remembrance of the birth of the god out of a ”hole in the earth,”
the Mysteries were frequently celebrated in caves under ground. This was the
case in Persia, where, just as Tages was said to be born out of the ground,
Mithra was in like manner fabled to have been produced from a cave in the
earth. *
* JUSTIN MARTYR. It is remarkable that, as Mithra was born out of a cave,
so the idolatrous nominal Christians of the East represent our Saviour as
having in like manner been born in a a cave. (See KITTO’s Cyclopoedia,
”Bethlehem”) There is not the least hint of such a thing in the Scripture.
Numa of Rome himself pretended to get all his revelations from the Nymph
Egeria, in a cave. In these caves men were first initiated in the secret
Mysteries, and by the signs and lying wonders there presented to them, they
were led back, after the death of Nimrod, to the worship of that god in its new
form. This Apocalyptic beast, then, that ”comes up out of the earth,” agrees in
all respects with that ancient god born from a ”hole in the ground”; for no
words could more exactly describe his doing than the words of the prediction (v
13): ”He doeth great wonders, and causeth fire to come down from heaven in the
sight of men,…and he causeth the earth and them that dwell therein to worship
the first beast, whose deadly wound was healed.” This wonder-working beast,
called Nebo, or ”The Prophet,” as the prophet of idolatry, was, of course, the
”false prophet.” By comparing the passage before us with Revelation 19:20, it
will be manifest that this beast that ”came up out of the earth” is expressly
called by that very name: ”And the beast was taken, and with him the false prophet
that wrought miracles before him, with which he deceived them that received the
mark of the beast, and them that worshipped his image.” As it was the ”beast
from the earth” that ”wrought miracles” before the first beast, this shows that
”the beast from the earth” is the ”false prophet”; in other words, is ”Nebo.”
If we examine the history of the Roman empire, we shall find that here also
there is a precise accordance between type and antitype. When the deadly wound
of Paganism was healed, and the old Pagan title of Pontiff was restored, it
was, through means of the corrupt clergy, symbolised, as is generally believed,
and justly under the image of a beast with horns, like a lamb; according to the
saying of our Lord, ”Beware of false prophets, that shall come to you in
sheep’s clothing, but inwardly they are ravening wolves.” The clergy, as a
corporate body, consisted of two grand divisions–the regular and secular clergy
answering to the two horns or powers of the beast, and combining also, at a
very early period, both temporal and spiritual powers. The bishops, as heads of
these clergy, had large temporal powers, long before the Pope gained his
temporal crown. We have the distinct evidence of both Guizot and Gibbon to this
effect. After showing that before the fifth century, the clergy had not only
become distinct from, but independent of the people, Guizot adds: ”The
Christian clergy had moreover another and very different source of influence.
The bishops and priests became the principal municipal magistrates…If you open
the code, either of Theodosius or Justinian, you will find numerous regulations
which remit municipal affairs to the clergy and the bishops.” Guizot makes
several quotations. The following extract from the Justinian code is sufficient
to show how ample was the civil power bestowed upon the bishops: ”With respect
to the yearly affairs of cities, whether they concern the ordinary revenues of
the city, either from funds arising from the property of the city, or from
private gifts or legacies, or from any other source; whether public works, or
depots of provisions or aqueducts, or the maintenance of baths or ports, or the
construction of walls or towers, or the repairing of bridges or roads, or
trials, in which the city may be engaged in reference to public or private
interests, we ordain as follows:–The very pious bishop, and three notables,
chosen from among the first men of the city, shall meet together; they shall
each year examine the works done; they shall take care that those who conduct
them, or who have conducted them, shall regulate them with precision, render
their accounts, and show that they have duly performed their engagements in the
administration, whether of the public monuments, or of the sums appointed for
provisions or baths, or of expenses in the maintenance of roads, aqueducts, or
any other work.” Here is a large list of functions laid on the spiritual
shoulders of ”the very pious bishop,” not one of which is even hinted at in the
Divine enumeration of the duties of a bishop, as contained in the Word of God.
(See 1 Timothy 3:1-7; and Titus 1:5-9.) How did the bishops, who were
originally appointed for purely spiritual objects, contrive to grasp at such a
large amount of temporal authority? From Gibbon we get light as to the real
origin of what Guizot calls this ”prodigious power.” The author of the Decline
and Fall shows, that soon after Constantine’s time, ”the Church” [and
consequently the bishops, especially when they assumed to be a separate order
from the other clergy] gained great temporal power through the right of asylum,
which had belonged to the Pagan temples, being transferred by the Emperors to
the Christian churches. His words are: ”The fugitive, and even the guilty, were
permitted to implore either the justice or mercy of the Deity and His
ministers.” Thus was the foundation laid of the invasion of the rights of the
civil magistrate by ecclesiastics, and thus were they encouraged to grasp at
all the powers of the State. Thus, also, as is justly observed by the authoress
of Rome in the 19th Century, speaking of the right of asylum, were ”the altars
perverted into protection towards the very crimes they were raised to banish
from the world.” This is a very striking thing, as showing how the temporal
power of the Papacy, in its very first beginnings, was founded on
”lawlessness,” and is an additional proof to the many that might be alleged,
that the Head of the Roman system, to whom all bishops are subject is indeed
”The Lawless One” (2 Thess 2:8), predicted in Scripture as the recognised Head
of the ”Mystery of Iniquity.” All this temporal power came into the hands of
men, who, while professing to be ministers of Christ, and followers of the
Lamb, were seeking simply their own aggrandisement, and, to secure that aggrandisement,
did not hesitate to betray the cause which they professed to serve. The
spiritual power which they wielded over the souls of men, and the secular power
which they gained in the affairs of the world, were both alike used in
opposition to the cause of pure religion and undefiled. At first these false
prophets, in leading men astray, and seeking to unite Paganism and
Christianity, wrought under-ground, mining like the mole in the dark, and
secretly perverting the simple, according to the saying of Paul, ”The Mystery
of Iniquity doth already work.” But by-and-by, towards the end of the fourth
century, when the minds of men had been pretty well prepared, and the aspects
of things seemed to be favourable for it, the wolves in sheep’s clothing
appeared above ground, brought their secret doctrines and practices, by little
and little, into the light of day, and century after century, as their power
increased, by means of all ”deceivableness of unrighteousness,” and ”signs and
lying wonders,” deluded the minds of the worldly Christians, made them believe
that their anathema was equivalent to the curse of God; in other words, that
they could ”bring down fire from heaven,” and thus ”caused the earth, and them
that dwelt therein, to worship the beast whose deadly wound was healed.” *
* Though the Pope be the great Jupiter Tonans of the Papacy, and
”fulminates” from the Vatican, as his predecessor was formerly believed to do
from the Capitol, yet it is not he in reality that brings down the fire from
heaven, but his clergy. But for the influence of the clergy in everywhere
blinding the minds of the people, the Papal thunders would be but ”bruta
fulmina” after all. The symbol, therefore, is most exact, when it attributes
the ”bringing down of the fire from heaven,” to the beast from the earth,
rather than to the beast from the sea.
When ”the deadly wound” of the Pagan beast was healed, and the beast from
the sea appeared, it is said that this beast from the earth became the
recognised, accredited executor of the will of the great sea beast (v 12), ”And
he exerciseth all the power of the first beast before him,” literally ”in his
presence”–under his inspection. Considering who the first beast is, there is
great force in this expression ”in his presence.” The beast that comes up from
the sea, is ”the little horn,” that ”has eyes like the eyes of man” (Dan 7:8);
it is Janus Tuens, ”All-seeing Janus,” in other words, the Universal Bishop or
”Universal Overseer,” who, from his throne on the seven hills, by means of the
organised system of the confessional, sees and knows all that is done, to be
the utmost bounds of his wide dominion. Now, it was just exactly about the
time that the Pope became universal bishop, that the custom began of
systematically investing the chief bishops of the Western empire with the Papal
livery, the pallium, ”for the purpose,” says Gieseler, ”of symbolising and
strengthening their connection with the Church of Rome.” *
* GIESELER. From Gieseler we learn that so early as 501, the Bishop of Rome
had laid the foundation of the corporation of bishops by the bestowal of the
pallium; but, at the same time, he expressly states that it was only about 602,
at the `63 ascent of Phocas to the imperial throne–that Phocas that made the
Pope Universal Bishop–that the Popes began to bestow the pallium, that is, of
course, systematically, and on a large scale.
That pallium, worn on the shoulders of the bishops, while on the one hand
it was the livery of the Pope, and bound those who received it to act as the
functionaries of Rome, deriving all their authority from him, and exercising it
under his superintendence, as the ”Bishop of bishops,” on the other hand, was
in reality the visible investiture of these wolves with the sheep’s clothing.
For what was the pallium of the Papal bishop? It was a dress made of wool,
blessed by the Pope, taken from the holy lambs kept by the nuns of St. Agnes,
and woven by their sacred hands, that it might be bestowed on those whom the
Popes delighted to honour, for the purpose, as one of themselves expressed it,
of ”joining them to our society in the one pastoral sheepfold.” *
* GIESELER, ”Papacy”). The reader who peruses the early letters of the
Popes in bestowing the pallium, will not fail to observe the wide difference of
meaning between ”the one pastoral sheepfold” above referred to, and ”the one
sheepfold” of our Lord. The former really means a sheepfold consisting of
pastors or shepherds. The papal letters unequivocally imply the organisation of
the bishops, as a distinct corporation, altogether independent of the Church,
and dependent only on the Papacy, which seems remarkably to agree with the
terms of the prediction in regard to the beast from the earth.
Thus commissioned, thus ordained by the universal Bishop, they did their
work effectually, and brought the earth and them that dwelt in it, ”to worship
the beast that received the wound by a sword and did live.” This was a part of
this beast’s predicted work. But there was another, and not less important,
which remains for consideration.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VII
Section IV
The Image of the Beast
Not merely does the beast from the earth lead the world to worship the
first beast, but (v 14) he prevails on them that dwell on the earth to make ”an
IMAGE to the beast, which had the wound by a sword, and did live.” In
meditating for many years on what might be implied in ”the image of the beast,”
I could never find the least satisfaction in all the theories that had ever
been propounded, till I fell in with an unpretending but valuable work, which I
have noticed already, entitled An Original Interpretation of the Apocalypse.
That work, evidently the production of a penetrating mind deeply read in the
history of the Papacy, furnished at once the solution of the difficulty. There
the image of the beast is pronounced to be the Virgin Mother, or the Madonna.
This at first sight may appear a very unlikely solution; but when it is brought
into comparison with the religious history of Chaldea, the unlikelihood
entirely disappears. In the old Babylonian Paganism, there was an image of the
Beast from the sea; and when it is known what that image was, the question
will, I think, be fairly decided. When Dagon was first set up to be worshipped,
while he was represented in many different ways, and exhibited in many
different characters, the favourite form in which he was worshipped, as the
reader well knows, was that of a child in his mother’s arms. In the natural
course of events, the mother came to be worshipped along with the child, yea,
to be the favourite object of worship. To justify this worship, as we have
already seen, that mother, of course, must be raised to divinity, and divine
powers and prerogatives ascribed to her. Whatever dignity, therefore, the son
was believed to possess a like dignity was ascribed to her. Whatever name of
honour he bore, a similar name was bestowed upon her. He was called Belus, ”the
Lord”; she, Beltis, ”My Lady.” He was called Dagon, ”the Merman”; she, Derketo,
”the Mermaid.” He, as the World-king, wore the bull’s horns; she, as we have
already seen, on the authority of Sanchuniathon, put on her own head a bull’s
head, as the ensign of royalty. *
* EUSEBIUS, Proeparatio Evangelii. This statement is remarkable, as showing
that the horns which the great goddess wore were really intended to exhibit her
as the express image of Ninus, or ”the Son.” Had she worn merely the cow’s
horns, it might have been supposed that these horns were intended only to
identify her with the moon. But the bull’s horns show that the intention was to
represent her as equal in her sovereignty with Nimrod, or Kronos, the ”Horned
one.”
He, as the Sun-god, was called Beel-samen, ”Lord of heaven”; she, as the
Moon-goddess, Melkat-ashemin, ”Queen of heaven.” He was worshipped in Egypt as
the ”Revealer of goodness and truth”; she, in Babylon, under the symbol of the
Dove, as the goddess of gentleness and mercy, the ”Mother of gracious
acceptance,” ”merciful and benignant to men.” He, under the name of
Mithra, was worshipped as Mesites, or ”the Mediator”; she, as Aphrodite, or the
”Wrath-subduer,” was called Mylitta, ”the Mediatrix.” He was represented as
crushing the great serpent under his heel; she, as bruising the serpent’s head
in her hand. He, under the name Janus, bore a key as the opener and shutter of
the gates of the invisible world. She, under the name of Cybele, was invested
with a like key, as an emblem of the same power. *
* TOOKE’S Pantheon. That the key of Cybele, in the esoteric story, had a
corresponding meaning to that of Janus, will appear from the character above
assigned to her as the Mediatrix.
He, as the cleanser from sin, was called the ”Unpolluted god”; she, too,
had the power to wash away sin, and, though the mother of the seed, was called
the ”Virgin, pure and undefiled.” He was represented as ”Judge of the dead”;
she was represented as standing by his side, at the judgment-seat, in the
unseen world. He, after being killed by the sword, was fabled to have risen
again, and ascended up to heaven. She, too, though history makes her to have
been killed with the sword by one of her own sons, * was nevertheless in the
myth, said to have been carried by her son bodily to heaven, and to have been
made Pambasileia, ”Queen of the universe.” Finally, to clench the whole, the
name by which she was now known was Semele, which, in the Babylonian language,
signifies ”THE IMAGE.” ** Thus, in every respect, to the very least jot and
tittle, she became the express image of the Babylonian ”beast that had the
wound by a sword, and did live.”
* In like manner, Horus, in Egypt, is said to have cut off his mother’s
head, as Bel in Babylon also cut asunder the great primeval goddess of the
Babylonians. (BUNSEN)
** Apollodorus states that Bacchus, on carrying his mother to heaven,
called her Thuone, which was just the feminine of his own name, Thuoenus–in
Latin Thyoneus. (OVID, Metam.) Thuoneus is evidently from the passive
participle of Thn, ”to lament,” a synonym for ”Bacchus,” ”The lamented god.”
Thuone, in like manner, is ”The lamented goddess.” The Roman Juno was evidently
known in this very character of the ”Image”; for there was a temple erected to
her in Rome, on the Capitoline hill, under the name of ”Juno Moneta.” Moneta is
the emphatic form of one of the Chaldee words for an ”image”; and that this was
the real meaning of the name, will appear from the fact that the Mint was
contained in the precincts of that temple. (See SMITH’S ”Juno”) What is the use
of a mint but just to stamp ”images”? Hence the connection between Juno and the
Mint.
After what the reader has already seen in a previous part of this work, it
is hardly necessary to say that it is this very goddess that is now worshipped
in the Church of Rome under the name of Mary. Though that goddess is called by
the name of the mother of our Lord, all the attributes given to her are derived
simply from the Babylonian Madonna, and not from the Virgin Mother of Christ. *
* The very way in which the Popish Madonna is represented is plainly copied
from the idolatrous representations of the Pagan goddess. The great god used to
be represented as sitting or standing in the cup of a Lotus-flower. In India,
the very same mode of representation is common; Brahma being often seen seated
on a Lotus-flower, said to have sprung from the navel of Vishnu. The great
goddess, in like manner, must have a similar couch; and, therefore, in India,
we find Lakshmi, the ”Mother of the Universe,” sitting on a Lotus, borne by a
tortoise. Now, in this very thing, also Popery has copied from its Pagan model;
for, in the Pancarpium Marianum the Virgin and child are represented sitting in
the cup of a tulip.
There is not one line or one letter in all the Bible to countenance the
idea that Mary should be worshipped, that she is the ”refuge of sinners,” that
she was ”immaculate,” that she made atonement for sin when standing by the
cross, and when, according to Simeon, ”a sword pierced through her own soul
also”; or that, after her death, she was raised from the dead and carried in
glory to heaven. But in the Babylonian system all this was found; and all this
is now incorporated in the system of Rome. The ”sacred heart of Mary” is
exhibited as pierced through with a sword, in token, as the apostate Church
teaches, that her anguish at the crucifixion was as true an atonement as the
death of Christ;–for we read in the Devotional office or Service-book, adopted
by the ”Sodality of the sacred heart,” such blasphemous words as these, ”Go,
then, devout client! go to the heart of Jesus, but let your way be through the
heart of Mary; the sword of grief which pierced her soul opens you a passage;
enter by the wound which love has made”; *–again we hear one expounder of the
new faith, like M. Genoude in France, say that ”Mary was the repairer of the
guilt of Eve, as our Lord was the repairer of the guilt of Adam”; and
another–Professor Oswald of Paderbon–affirm that Mary was not a human creature
like us, that she is ”the Woman, as Christ is the Man,” that ”Mary is
co-present in the Eucharist, and that it is indisputable that, according to the
Eucharistic doctrine of the Church, this presence of Mary in the Eucharist is
true and real, not merely ideal or figurative”; and, further, we read in the
Pope’s decree of the Immaculate Conception, that that same Madonna, for this
purpose ”wounded with the sword,” rose from the dead, and being assumed up on
high, became Queen of Heaven. If all this be so, who can fail to see that in
that apostate community is to be found what precisely answers to the making and
setting up in the heart of Christendom, of an ”Image to the beast that had the
wound by a sword and did live”?
* Memoir of Rev. Godfrey Massy. In the Paradisus sponsi et sponsoe, by the
author of Pancarpium Marianum, the following words, addressed to the Virgin,
occur in illustration of a plate representing the crucifixion, and Mary, at the
foot of the Cross, with the sword in her breast, ”Thy beloved son did sacrifice
his flesh; thou thy soul–yea, both body and soul.” This does much more than put
the sacrifice of the Virgin on a level with that of the Lord Jesus, it makes it
greater far. This, in 1617, was the creed only of Jesuitism; now there is
reason to believe it to be the general creed of the Papacy.
If the inspired terms be consulted, it will be seen that this was to be
done by some public general act of apostate Christendom; (v 14), ”Saying to
them that dwell on the earth, that they should make an image to the beast”; and
they made it. Now, here is the important fact to be observed, that this never
was done, and this never could have been done, till eight years ago; for this
plain reason, that till then the Madonna of Rome was never recognised as
combining all the characters that belonged to the Babylonian ”IMAGE of the
beast.” Till then it was not admitted even in Rome, though this evil leaven had
been long working, and that strongly, that Mary was truly immaculate, and
consequently she could not be the perfect counterpart of the Babylonian Image.
What, however, had never been done before, was done in December, 1854. Then
bishops from all parts of Christendom, and representatives from the ends of the
earth, met in Rome; and with only four dissentient voices, it was decreed that
Mary, the mother of God, who died, rose from the dead, and ascended into
heaven, should henceforth be worshipped as the Immaculate Virgin, ”conceived
and born without sin.” This was the formal setting up of the Image of the
beast, and that by the general consent of ”the men that dwell upon the earth.”
Now, this beast being set up, it is said, that the beast from the earth gives
life and speech to the Image, implying, first, that it has neither life nor
voice in itself; but that, nevertheless, through means of the beast from the
earth, it is to have both life and voice, and to be an effective agent of the
Papal clergy, who will make it speak exactly as they please. Since the Image
has been set up, its voice has been everywhere heard throughout the Papacy.
Formerly decrees ran less or more in the name of Christ. Now all things are
pre-eminently done in the name of the Immaculate Virgin. Her voice is
everywhere heard–her voice is supreme. But, be it observed, when that voice is
heard, it is not the voice of mercy and love, it is the voice of cruelty and
terror. The decrees that come forth under the name of the Image, are to this
effect (v 17), that ”no man might buy or sell, save he that had the mark, or
the name of the beast, or the number of his name.” No sooner is the image set
up than we see this very thing begun to be carried out. What was the Concordat
in Austria, that so speedily followed, but this very thing? That concordat,
through the force of unexpected events that have arisen, has not yet been
carried into effect; but if it were, the results would just be what is
predicted–that no man in the Austrian dominions should ”buy or sell” without
the mark in some shape or other. And the very fact of such an intolerant
concordat coming so speedily on the back of the Decree of the Immaculate
Conception, shows what is the natural fruit of that decree. The events that
soon thereafter took place in Spain showed the powerful working of the same persecuting
spirit there also. During the last few years, the tide of spiritual despotism
might have seemed to be effectually arrested; and many, no doubt, have indulged
the persuasion that, crippled as the temporal sovereignty of the Papacy is, and
tottering as it seems to be, that power, or its subordinates, could never
persecute more. But there is an amazing vitality in the Mystery of Iniquity;
and no one can ever tell beforehand what apparent impossibilities it may
accomplish in the way of arresting the progress of truth and liberty, however
promising the aspect of things may be. Whatever may become of the temporal
sovereignty of the Roman states, it is by no means so evident this day, as to
many it seemed only a short while ago, that the overthrow of the spiritual
power of the Papacy is imminent, and that its power to persecute is finally
gone. I doubt not but that many, constrained by the love and mercy of God, will
yet obey the heavenly voice, and flee out of the doomed communion, before the
vials of Divine wrath descend upon it. But if I have been right in the
interpretation of this passage, then it follows that it must yet become more
persecuting than ever it has been, and that that intolerance, which,
immediately after the setting up of the Image, began to display itself in
Austria and Spain, shall yet spread over all Europe; for it is not said that
the Image of the beast should merely decree, but should ”cause that as many as
would not worship the Image of the beast should be killed” (v 15). When this takes
place, that evidently is the time when the language of verse 8 is fulfilled,
”And all that dwell on the earth shall worship the beast, whose names are not
written in the book of life of the Lamb slain from the foundation of the
world.” It is impossible to get quit of this by saying, ”This refers to the
Dark Ages; this was fulfilled before Luther.” I ask, had the men who dwelt on
the earth set up the Image of the beast before Luther’s days? Plainly not. The
decree of the Immaculate Conception was the deed of yesterday. The prophecy,
then, refers to our own times–to the period on which the Church is now
entering. In other words, the slaying of the witnesses, the grand trial of the
saints, IS STILL TO COME. (see note below)
____________________
The Slaying of the Witnesses
Is it past, or is it still to come? This is a vital question. The favourite
doctrine at this moment is, that it is past centuries ago, and that no such
dark night of suffering to the saints of God can ever come again, as happened
just before the era of the Reformation. This is the cardinal principle of a
work that has just appeared, under the title of The Great Exodus, which
implies, that however much the truth may be assailed, however much the saints
of God may be threatened, however their fears may be aroused, they have no real
reason to fear, for that the Red Sea will divide, the tribes of the Lord will
pass through dry shod, and all their enemies, like Pharaoh and his host, shall
sink in overwhelming ruin. If the doctrine maintained by many of the soberest
interpreters of Scripture for a century past, including such names as Brown of
Haddington, Thomas Scott, and others, be well founded-viz., that the putting
down of the testimony of the witnesses is till to come, this theory must not only
be a delusion, but a delusion of most fatal tendency–a delusion that by
throwing professors off their guard, and giving them an excuse for taking their
ease, rather than standing in the high places of the field, and bearing bold
and unflinching testimony for Christ, directly paves the way for that very
extinction of the testimony which is predicted. I enter not into any historical
disquisition as to the question, whether, as a matter of fact, it was true that
the witnesses were slain before Luther appeared. Those who wish to see an
historical argument on the subject may see it in the Red Republic, which I
venture to think has not yet been answered. Neither do I think it worth while
particularly to examine the assumption of Dr. Wylie, and I hold it to be a pure
and gratuitous assumption, that the 1260 days during which the saints of God in
Gospel times were to suffer for righteousness’ sake, has any relation whatever,
as a half period, to a whole, symbolised by the ”Seven times” that passed over
Nebuchadnezzar when he was suffering and chastened for his pride and blasphemy,
as the representative of the ”world power.” *
* The author does not himself make the humiliation of the Babylonian king a
type of the humiliation of the Church. How then can he establish any typical
relation between the ”seven times” in the one case, and the ”seven times” in
the other? He seems to think it quite enough to establish that relation, if he
can find one point of resemblance between Nebuchadnezzar, the humbled despot,
and the ”world-power” that oppresses the Church during the two periods of
”seven times” respectively. That one point is the ”madness” of the one and the
other. It might be asked, Was, then, the ”world-power” in its right mind before
”the seven times” began? But waiving that, here is the vital objection to this
view: The madness in the case of Nebuchadnezzar was simply an affliction; in
the other it was sin. The madness of Nebuchadnezzar did not, so far as we know,
lead him to oppress a single individual; the madness of the ”world-power,”
according to the theory, is essentially characterised by the oppression of the
saints. Where, then, can there be the least analogy between the two cases? The
”seven times” of the Babylonian king were seven times of humiliation, and humiliation
alone. The suffering monarch cannot be a type of the suffering Church; and
still less can his ”seven times” of deepest humiliation, when all power and
glory was taken from him, be a type of the ”seven times” of the ”world-power,”
when that ”world-power” was to concentrate in itself all the glory and grandeur
of the earth. This is one fatal objection to this theory. Then let the reader
only look at the following sentence from the work under consideration, and
compare it with historical fact, and he will see still more how unfounded the
theory is: ”It follows undeniably,” says the author, ”that as the Church is to
be tyrannised over by the idolatrous power throughout the whole of the seven
times, she will be oppressed during the first half of the ‘seven times,’ by
idolatry in the form of Paganism, and during the last half by idolatry in the
form of Popery.” Now, the first half, or 1260 years, during which the Church
was to be oppressed by Pagan idolatry, ran out exactly, it is said, in AD 530
or 532; when suddenly Justinian changed the scene, and brought the new
oppressor on the stage. But I ask where was the ”world-power” to be found up to
530, maintaining ”idolatry in the form of Paganism”? From the time of Gratian
at least, who, about 376, formally abolished the worship of the gods, and
confiscated their revenues, where was there any such Pagan power to persecute?
There is certainly a very considerable interval between 376 and 532. The
necessities of the theory require that Paganism, and that avowed Paganism, be
it observed, shall be persecuting the Church straight away till 532; but for
156 years there was no such thing as a Pagan ”world-power” in existence to
persecute the Church. ”The legs of the lame,” says Solomon, ”are not equal”;
and if the 1260 years of Pagan persecution lack no less that 156 years of the
predicted period, surely it must be manifest that the theory halts very much on
one side at least. But I ask, do the facts agree with the theory, even in
regard to the running out of the second 1260 years in 1792, at the period of
the French Revolution? If the 1260 years of Papal oppression terminated then,
and if then the Ancient of days came to begin the final judgment on the beast,
He came also to do something else. This will appear from the language of Daniel
7:21, 22: ”I beheld, and the same horn made war with the saints, and prevailed
against them; until the Ancient of days came, and judgment was given to the
saints of the Most High; and the time came that the saints possessed the
kingdom.” This language implies that the judgment on the little horn, and the
putting of the saints in possession ”of the kingdom” are contemporaneous
events. Long has the rule of the kingdoms of this world been in the hands of
worldly men, that knew not God nor obeyed Him; but now, when He to whom the
kingdom belongs comes to inflict judgment on His enemies, He comes also to
transfer the rule of the kingdoms of this world from the hands of those who
have abused it, into the hand of those that fear God and govern their public
conduct by His revealed will. This is evidently the meaning of the Divine
statement. Now, on the supposition that 1792 was the predicted period of the
coming of the Ancient of days, it follows that, ever since, the principles of
God’s Word must have been leavening the governments of Europe more and more,
and good and holy men, of the spirit of Daniel and Nehemiah, must have been
advanced to the high places of power. But has it been so in point of fact? Is
there one nation in all Europe that acts on Scriptural principles at this day?
Does Britain itself do so? Why, it is notorious that it was just three years
after the reign of righteousness, according to this theory, must have commenced
that that unprincipled policy began that has left hardly a shred of appearance
of respect for the honour of the ”Prince of the Kings of the earth” in the
public rule of this nation. It was in 1795 that Pitt, and the British
Parliament, passed the Act for the erecting of the Roman Catholic College of
Maynooth, which formed the beginning of a course that, year by year, has lifted
the Man of Sin into a position of power in this land, that threatens, if Divine
mercy do not miraculously interfere, to bring us speedily back again under
complete thraldom to Antichrist. Yet, according to the theory of The Great
Exodus, the very opposite of this ought to have been the case.
But to this only I call the reader’s attention, that even on the theory of
Dr. Wylie himself, the witnesses of Christ could not possibly have finished
their testimony before the Decree of the Immaculate Conception came forth. The
theory of Dr. Wylie, and those who take the same general view as he, is, that
the ”finishing of the testimony,” means ”completing the elements” of the
testimony, bearing a full and complete testimony against the errors of Rome.
Dr. Wylie himself admits that ”the dogma of the ‘Immaculate Conception’ [which
was given forth only during the last few years] declares Mary truly ‘divine,’
and places her upon the altars of Rome as practically the sole and supreme
object of worship” (The Great Exodus). This was NEVER done before, and
therefore the errors and blasphemies of Rome were not complete until that
decree had gone forth, if even then. Now, if the corruption and blasphemy of
Rome were ”incomplete” up to our own day, and if they have risen to a height
which was never witnessed before, as all men instinctively felt and declared,
when that decree was issued, how could the testimony of the witnesses be
”complete” before Luther’s day! It is nothing to say that the principle and the
germ of this decree were in operation long before. The same thing may be said
of all the leading errors of Rome long before Luther’s day. They were all in
essence and substance very broadly developed, from near the time when Gregory
the Great commanded the image of the Virgin to be carried forth in the
processions that supplicated the Most High to remove the pestilence from Rome,
when it was committing such havoc among its citizens. But that does in no wise
prove that they were ”complete,” or that the witnesses of Christ could then
”finish their testimony” by bearing a full and ”complete testimony” against the
errors and corruptions of the Papacy. I submit this view of the matter to every
intelligent reader for his prayerful consideration. If we have not
”understanding of the times,” it is vain to expect that we ”shall know what
Israel ought to do.” If we are saying ”Peace and safety,” when trouble is at
hand, or underrating the nature of that trouble, we cannot be prepared for the
grand struggle when that struggle shall come.
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Chapter VII
Section V
The Name of the Beast, the Number of His Name–
The Invisible Head of the Papacy
Dagon and the Pope being now identified, this brings us naturally and
easily to the long-sought name and number of the beast, and confirms, by
entirely new evidence, the old Protestant view of the subject. The name
”Lateinos” has been generally accepted by Protestant writers, as having many
elements of probability to recommend it. But yet there has been always found a
certain deficiency, and it has been felt that something was wanting to put it
beyond all possibility of doubt. Now, looking at the subject from the
Babylonian point of view, we shall find both the name and number of the beast
brought home to us in such a way as leaves nothing to be desired on the point
of evidence. Osiris, or Nimrod, whom the Pope represents, was called by many
different titles, and therefore, as Wilkinson remarks, he was much in the same
position as his wife, who was called ”Myrionymus,” the goddess with ”ten
thousand names.” Among these innumerable names, how shall we ascertain the name
at which the Spirit of God points in the enigmatical language that speaks of
the name of the beast, and the number of his name? If we know the Apocalyptic
name of the system, that will lead us to the name of the head of the system.
The name of the system is ”Mystery” (Rev 17:5). Here, then, we have the key
that at once unlocks the enigma. We have now only to inquire what was the name
by which Nimrod was known as the god of the Chaldean Masteries. That name, as
we have seen, was Saturn. Saturn and Mystery are both Chaldean words, and they
are correlative terms. As Mystery signifies the Hidden system, so Saturn
signifies the Hidden god. *
* In the Litany of the Mass, the worshippers are taught thus to pray: ”God
Hidden, and my Saviour, have mercy upon us.” (M’GAVIN’S Protestant) Whence can
this invocation of the ”God Hidden” have come, but from the ancient worship of
Saturn, the ”Hidden God”? As the Papacy has canonised the Babylonian god by the
name of St. Dionysius, and St. Bacchus, the ”martyr,” so by this very name of
”Satur” is he also enrolled in the calendar; for March 29th is the festival of
”St. Satur,” the martyr. (CHAMBER’S Book of Days)
To those who were initiated the god was revealed; to all else he was
hidden. Now, the name Saturn in Chaldee is pronounced Satur; but, as every
Chaldee scholar knows, consists only of four letters, thus–Stur. This name
contains exactly the Apocalyptic number 666:–
S = 060
T = 400
U = 006
R = 200
If the Pope is, as we have seen, the legitimate representative of Saturn,
the number of the Pope, as head of the Mystery of Iniquity, is just 666. But
still further it turns out, as shown above, that the original name of Rome
itself was Saturnia, ”the city of Saturn.” This is vouched alike by Ovid, by
Pliny, and by Aurelius Victor. Thus, then, the Pope has a double claim to the
name and number of the beast. He is the only legitimate representative of the
original Saturn at this day in existence, and he reigns in the very city of the
seven hills where the Roman Saturn formerly reigned; and, from his residence in
which, the whole of Italy was ”long after called by his name,” being commonly
named ”the Saturnian land.” But what bearing, it may be said, has this upon the
name Lateinos, which is commonly believed to be the ”name of the beast”? Much.
It proves that the common opinion is thoroughly well-founded. Saturn and
Lateinos are just synonymous, having precisely the same meaning, and belonging
equally to the same god. The reader cannot have forgotten the lines of Virgil,
which showed that Lateinos, to whom the Romans or Latin race traced back their
lineage, was represented with a glory around his head, to show that he was a
”child of the Sun.” Thus, then, it is evident that, in popular opinion, the
original Lateinos had occupied the very same position as Saturn did in the
Mysteries, who was equally worshipped as the ”offspring of the Sun.” Moreover,
it is evident that the Romans knew that the name ”Lateinos” signifies the
”Hidden One,” for their antiquarians invariably affirm that Latium received its
name from Saturn ”lying hid” there. On etymological grounds, then, even on the
testimony of the Romans, Lateinos is equivalent to the ”Hidden One”; that is,
to Saturn, the ”god of Mystery.” *
* Latium Latinus (the Roman form of the Greek Lateinos), and Lateo, ”to lie
hid,” all alike come from the Chaldee ”Lat,” which has the same meaning. The
name ”lat,” or the hidden one, had evidently been given, as well as Saturn, to
the great Babylonian god. This is evident from the name of the fish Latus,
which was worshipped along with the Egyptian Minerva, in the city of Latopolis
in Egypt, now Esneh (WILKINSON), that fish Latus evidently just being another
name for the fish-god Dagon. We have seen that Ichthys, or the Fish, was one of
the names of Bacchus; and the Assyrian goddess Atergatis, with her son Ichthys
is said to have been cast into the lake of Ascalon. That the sun-god Apollo had
been known under the name of Lat, may be inferred from the Greek name of his
mother-wife Leto, or in Doric, Lato, which is just the feminine of Lat. The
Roman name Latona confirms this, for it signifies ”The lamenter of Lat,” as
Bellona signifies ”The lamenter of Bel.” The Indian god Siva, who, as we have
seen, is sometimes represented as a child at the breast of its mother, and has
the same bloody character as Moloch, or the Roman Saturn, is called by this
very name, as may be seen from the following verse made in reference to the image
found in his celebrated temple at Somnaut:
”This image grim, whose name
was LAUT,
Bold Mahmoud found when he took Sumnaut.”
BORROW’S Gypsies in Spain, or Zincali
As Lat was used as a synonym for Saturn, there can be little doubt that
Latinus was used in the same sense.
The deified kings were called after the gods from whom they professed to
spring, and not after their territories. The same, we may be sure, was the case
with Latinus.
While Saturn, therefore, is the name of the beast, and contains the mystic
number, Lateinos, which contains the same number, is just as peculiar and
distinctive an appellation of the same beast. The Pope, then, as the head of
the beast, is equally Lateinos or Saturn, that is, the head of the Babylonian
”Mystery.” When, therefore, the Pope requires all his services to be performed
in the ”Latin tongue,” that is as much as to say that they must be performed in
the language of ”Mystery”; when he calls his Church the Latin Church, that is
equivalent to a declaration that it is the Church of ”Mystery.” Thus, by this
very name of the Pope’s own choosing, he has with his own hands written upon
the very forehead of his apostate communion its divine Apocalyptic designation,
”MYSTERY–Babylon the great.” Thus, also, by a process of the purest induction,
we have been led on from step to step, till we find the mystic number 666
unmistakably and ”indelibly marked” on his own forehead, and that he who has
his seat on the seven hills of Rome has exclusive and indefeasible claims to be
regarded as the Visible head of the beast.
The reader, however, who has carefully considered the language that speaks
of the name and number of the Apocalyptic beast, must have observed that, in
the terms that describe that name and number, there is still an enigma that
ought not to be overlooked. The words are these: ”Let him that hath
understanding count the number of the beast–for it is the number of a man” (Rev
13:18). What means the saying, that the ”number of the beast is the number of a
man”? Does it merely mean that he has been called by a name that has been borne
by some individual man before? This is the sense in which the words have been
generally understood. But surely this would be nothing very distinctive–nothing
that might not equally apply to innumerable names. But view this language in
connection with the ascertained facts of the case, and what a Divine light at
once beams from the expression. Saturn, the hidden god,–the god of the
Mysteries, whom the Pope represents, whose secrets were revealed only to the
initiated,–was identical with Janus, who was publicly known to all Rome, to the
uninitiated and initiated alike, as the grand Mediator, the opener and the
shutter, who had the key of the invisible world. Now, what means the name
Janus? That name, as Cornificius in Macrobius shows, was properly Eanus; and in
ancient Chaldee, E-anush signifies ”the Man.” By that very name was the
Babylonian beast from the sea called, when it first made its appearance. *
* The name, as given in Greek by Berosus, is O-annes; but this is just the
very way we might expect ”He-anesth,” ”the man,” to appear in Greek. He-siri,
in Greek, becomes Osiris; and He-sarsiphon, Osarsiphon; and, in like manner,
He-anesh naturally becomes Oannes. In the sense of a ”Man-god,” the name Oannes
is taken by Barker (Lares and Penates). We find the conversion of the H’ into
O’ among our own immediate neighbours, the Irish; what is now O’Brien and
O’Connell was originally H’Brien and H’Connell (Sketches of Irish History).
The name E-anush, or ”the Man,” was applied to the Babylonian Messiah, as
identifying him with the promised seed of the Woman. The name of ”the Man,” as
applied to a god, was intended to designate him as the ”god-man.” We have seen
that in India the Hindoo Shasters bear witness, that in order to enable the
gods to overcome their enemies, it was needful that the Sun, the supreme
divinity, should be incarnate, and born of a Woman. The classical nations had a
legend of precisely the same nature. ”There was a current tradition in heaven,”
says Apollodorus, ”that the giants could never be conquered except by the help
of a man.” That man, who was believed to have conquered the adversaries of the
gods, was Janus, the god-man. In consequence of his assumed character and
exploits, Janus was invested with high powers, made the keeper of the gates of
heaven, and arbiter of men’s eternal destinies. Of this Janus, this Babylonian
”man,” the Pope, as we have seen, is the legitimate representative; his key,
therefore, he bears, with that of Cybele, his mother-wife; and to all his
blasphemous pretensions he at this hour lays claim. The very fact, then, that
the Pope founds his claim to universal homage on the possession of the keys of
heaven, and that in a sense which empowers him, in defiance of every principle
of Christianity, to open and shut the gates of glory, according to his mere
sovereign will and pleasure, is a striking and additional proof that he is that
head of the beast from the sea, whose number, as identified with Janus, is the
number of a man, and amounts exactly to 666.
But there is something further still in the name of Janus or Eanus, not to
be passed over. Janus, while manifestly worshipped as the Messiah or god-man,
was also celebrated as ”Principium Decorum,” the source and fountain of all the
Pagan gods. We have already in this character traced him backward through Cush
to Noah; but to make out his claim to this high character, in its proper
completeness, he must be traced even further still. The Pagans knew, and could
not but know, at the time the Mysteries were concocted, in the days of Shem and
his brethren, who, through the Flood, had passed from the old world to the new,
the whole story of Adam, and therefore it was necessary, if a deification of
mankind there was to be, that his pre-eminent dignity, as the human ”Father of
gods and men,” should not be ignored. Nor was it. The Mysteries were full of
what he did, and what befel him; and the name E-anush, or, as it appeared in
the Egyptian form, Ph’anesh, ”The man,” was only another name for that of our
great progenitor. The name of Adam in the Hebrew of Genesis almost always
occurs with the article before it, implying ”The Adam,” or ”The man.” There is
this difference, however–”The Adam” refers to man unfallen, E-anush, ”The man,”
to ”fallen man.” E-anush, then, as ”Principium decorum,” ”The fountain and
father of the gods,” is ”FALLEN Adam.” *
* Anesh properly signifies only the weakness or frailty of fallen humanity;
but any one who consults OVID, Fashti, as to the character of Janus, will see
that when E-anush was deified, it was not simply as Fallen man with his
weakness, but Fallen man with his corruption.
The principle of Pagan idolatry went directly to exalt fallen humanity, to
consecrate its lusts, to give men license to live after the flesh, and yet,
after such a life, to make them sure of eternal felicity. E-anus, the ”fallen
man,” was set up as the human Head of this system of corruption–this ”Mystery
of Iniquity.” Now, from this we come to see the real meaning of the name,
applied to the divinity commonly worshipped in Phrygia along with Cybele in the
very same character as this same Janus, who was at once the Father of the gods,
and the Mediatorial divinity. That name was Atys, or Attis, or Attes, * and the
meaning will evidently appear from the meaning of the well-known Greek word
Ate, which signifies ”error of sin,” and is obviously derived from the Chaldean
Hata, ”to sin.”
* SMITH’S Classical Dictionary, ”Atys.” The identification of Attes with
Bacchus or Adonis, who was at once the Father of the gods, and the Mediator, is
proved from divers considerations. 1. While it is certain that the favourite
god of the Phrygian Cybele was Attes, whence he was called ”Cybelius Attes,”
from Strabo, we learn that the divinity worshipped along with Cybele in
Phrygia, was called by the very name of Dionusos or Bacchus. 2. Attes was
represented in the very same way as Bacchus. In Bryant there is an inscription
to him along with the Idaean goddess, that is Cybele, under the name of ”Attis
the Minotaur” (Mythol.). Bacchus was bull-horned; it is well known that the
Minotaur, in like manner, was half-man, half-bull. 3. He was represented in the
exoteric story, as perishing in the same way as Adonis by a wild boar (PAUSAN).
4. In the rites of Magna Mater or Cybele, the priests invoked him as the ”Deus
propitius, Deus sanctus,” ”the merciful God, the holy God” (ARNOBIUS in Maxima
Biblioth. Patrum), the very character which Bacchus or Adonis sustained as the
mediatorial god.
Atys or Attes, formed from the same verb, and in a similar way, signifies
”The Sinner.” The reader will remember that Rhea or Cybele was worshipped in
Phrygia under the name of Idaia Mater, ”The mother of knowledge,” and that she
bore in her hand, as her symbol, the pomegranate, which we have seen reason to
conclude to have been in Pagan estimation the fruit of the ”forbidden tree.”
Who, then, so likely to have been the contemplar divinity of that ”Mother of
knowledge” as Attes, ”The sinner,” even her own husband, whom she induced to
share with her in her sin, and partake of her fatal knowledge, and who thereby
became in true and proper sense, ”The man of sin,”–”the man by whom sin entered
the world, and death by sin, and so death passed upon all, because all have
sinned.” *
* The whole story of Attes can be proved in detail to be the story of the
Fall. Suffice it here only to state that, even on the surface, this sin was
said to be connected with undue love for ”a nymph, whose fate depended on a
tree” (OVID, Fasti). The love of Attes for this nymph was in one aspect an
offence to Cybele, but, in another, it was the love of Cybele herself; for
Cybele has two distinct fundamental characters–that of the Holy Spirit, and
also that of our mother Eve. ”The nymph whose fate depended on a tree” was
evidently Rhea, the mother of mankind.
Now to Attes, this ”Man of sin,” after passing through those sorrows and
sufferings, which his worshippers yearly commemorated, the distinguishing
characteristics and glories of the Messiah were given. He was identified with
the sun, * the only god; he was identified with Adonis; and to him as thus
identified, the language of the Sixteenth Psalm, predicting the triumph of our
Saviour Christ over death and the grave, was in all its greatness applied: ”Thou
wilt not leave my soul in hell, nor suffer thine Holy One to see corruption.”
BRYANT. The ground of the Identification of Attis with the sun evidently
was, that as Hata signifies to sin, so Hatah, which signifies to burn, is in
pronunciation nearly the same. (see note below)
It is sufficiently known that the first part of this statement was applied
to Adonis; for the annual weeping of the women for Tammuz was speedily turned
into rejoicings, on account of his fabled return from Hades, or the infernal
regions. But it is not so well known that Paganism applied to its mediatorial
god the predicted incorruption of the body of the Messiah. But that this was
the fact, we learn from the distinct testimony of Pausanias. ”Agdistis,” that
is Cybele, says he, ”obtained from Jupiter, that no part of the body of Attes
should either become putrid or waste away.” Thus did Paganism apply to Attes
”the sinner,” the incommunicable honour of Christ, who came to ”save His people
from their sins”–as contained in the Divine language uttered by the ”sweet
psalmist of Israel,” a thousand years before the Christian era. If, therefore,
the Pope occupies, as we have seen, the very place of Janus ”the man,” how clear
is it, that he equally occupies the place of Attes, ”the sinner,” and then how
striking in this point of view the name ”Man of sin,” as divinely given by
prophecy (2 Thess 2:3) to him who was to be the head of the Christian apostacy,
and who was to concentrate in that apostacy all the corruption of Babylonian
Paganism?
The Pope is thus on every ground demonstrated to be the visible head of the
beast. But the beast has not only a visible, but an invisible head that governs
it. That invisible head is none other than Satan, the head of the first grand
apostacy that began in heaven itself. This is put beyond doubt by the language
of Revelation 13:4 ”And they worshipped the Dragon which gave power unto the
beast, saying, Who is like unto the beast? Who is able to make war with him?”
This language shows that the worship of the dragon is commensurate with the
worship of the beast. That the dragon is primarily Satan, the arch-fiend
himself, is plain from the statement of the previous chapter (Rev 12:9) ”And the
Dragon was cast out, that old serpent, called the Devil, and Satan, which
deceiveth the whole world.” If, then, the Pope be, as we have seen, the visible
head of the beast, the adherents of Rome, in worshipping the Pope, of necessity
worship also the Devil. With the Divine statement before us, there is no
possibility of escaping from this. And this is exactly what we might expect on
other grounds. Let it be remembered that the Pope, as the head of the Mystery
of Iniquity, is ”the son of perdition,” Iscariot, the false apostle, the
traitor. Now, it is expressly stated, that before Judas committed his treason,
”Satan,” the prince of the Devils, ”entered into him,” took complete and entire
possession of him. From analogy, we may expect the same to have been the case
here. Before the Pope could even conceive such a scheme of complicated
treachery to the cause of his Lord, as has been proved against him, before he
could be qualified for successfully carrying that treacherous scheme into
effect, Satan himself must enter into him. The Mystery of Iniquity was to
practise and prosper according ”to the working”–i.e., literally, ”according to
the energy or mighty power of Satan” (2 Thess 2:9). *
* The very term ”energy” here employed, is the term continually used in the
Chaldean books, describing the inspiration coming from the gods and demons to
their worshippers. (TAYLOR’S Jamblichus)
Therefore Satan himself, and not any subordinate spirit of hell, must
preside over the whole vast system of consecrated wickedness; he must
personally take possession of him who is its visible head, that the system may
be guided by his diabolical subtlety, and ”energised” by his super-human power.
Keeping this in view, we see at once how it is that, when the followers of the
Pope worship the beast, they worship also the ”dragon that gave power to the
beast.”
Thus, altogether independent of historical evidence on this point, we are
brought to the irresistible conclusion that the worship of Rome is one vast
system of Devil-worship. If it be once admitted that the Pope is the head of
the beast from the sea, we are bound, on the mere testimony of God, without any
other evidence whatever, to receive this as a fact, that, consciously or
unconsciously, those who worship the Pope are actually worshipping the Devil.
But, in truth, we have historical evidence, and that of a very remarkable kind,
that the Pope, as head of the Chaldean Mysteries, is as directly the
representative of Satan, as he is of the false Messiah of Babylon. It was long
ago noticed by Irenaeus, about the end of the second century, that the name
Teitan contained the Mystic number 666; and he gave it as his opinion that
Teitan was ”by far the most probable name” of the beast from the sea. *
* IRENAEUS. Though the name Teitan was originally derived from Chaldee, yet
it became thoroughly naturalised in the Greek language. Therefore, to give the
more abundant evidence on this important subject, the Spirit of God seems to
have ordered it, that the number of Teitan should be found according to the
Greek computation, while that of Satur is found by the Chaldee.
The grounds of his opinion, as stated by him, do not carry much weight; but
the opinion itself he may have derived from others who had better and more
valid reasons for their belief on this subject. Now, on inquiry, it will
actually be found, that while Saturn was the name of the visible head, Teitan
was the name of the invisible head of the beast. Teitan is just the Chaldean
form of Sheitan, * the very name by which Satan has been called from time
immemorial by the Devil-worshippers of Kurdistan; and from Armenia or
Kurdistan, this Devil-worship embodied in the Chaldean Mysteries came westward
to Asia Minor, and thence to Etruria and Rome.
* The learned reader has no need of examples in proof of this frequent
Chaldean transformation of the Sh or S into T; but for the common reader, the
following may be adduced: Hebrew, Shekel, to weigh, becomes Tekel in Chaldee;
Hebrew, Shabar, to break–Chaldee, Tabar; Hebrew, Seraphim–Chaldee, Teraphim, the
Babylonian counterfeit of the Divine Cherubim or Seraphim; Hebrew, Asar, to be
rich–Chaldee, Atar; Hebrew, Shani, second–Chaldee, Tanin, &c.
That Teitan was actually known by the classic nations of antiquity to be
Satan, or the spirit of wickedness, and originator of moral evil, we have the
following proofs: The history of Teitan and his brethren, as given in Homer and
Hesiod, the two earliest of all the Greek writers, although later legends are
obviously mixed up with it, is evidently the exact counterpart of the
Scriptural account of Satan and his angels. Homer says, that ”all the gods of
Tartarus,” or Hell, ”were called Teitans.” Hesiod tells us how these Teitans,
or ”gods of hell,” came to have their dwelling there. The chief of them having
committed a certain act of wickedness against his father, the supreme god of
heaven, with the sympathy of many others of the ”sons of heaven,” that father
”called them all by an opprobrious name, Teitans,” pronounced a curse upon
them, and then, in consequence of that curse, they were ”cast down to hell,”
and ”bound in chains of darkness” in the abyss. While this is the earliest
account of Teitan and his followers among the Greeks, we find that, in the
Chaldean system, Teitan was just a synonym for Typhon, the malignant Serpent or
Dragon, who was universally regarded as the Devil, or author of all wickedness.
It was Typhon, according to the Pagan version of the story, that killed Tammuz,
and cut him in pieces; but Lactantius, who was thoroughly acquainted with the subject,
upbraids his Pagan countrymen for ”worshipping a child torn in pieces by the
Teitans.” It is undeniable, then, that Teitan, in Pagan belief, was identical
with the Dragon, or Satan. *
* We have seen that Shem was the actual slayer of Tammuz. As the grand
adversary of the Pagan Messiah, those who hated him for his deed called him for
that very deed by the name of the Grand Adversary of all, Typhon, or the Devil.
”If they called the Master of the house Beelzebub,” no wonder that his servant
was called by a similar name.
In the Mysteries, as formerly hinted, an important change took place as
soon as the way was paved for it. First, Tammuz was worshipped as the bruiser
of the serpent’s head, meaning thereby that he was the appointed destroyer of
Satan’s kingdom. Then the dragon himself, or Satan, came to receive a certain
measure of worship, to ”console him,” as the Pagans said, ”for the loss of his
power,” and to prevent him from hurting them; and last of all the dragon, or
Teitan or Satan, became the supreme object of worship, the Titania, or rites of
Teitan, occupying a prominent place in the Egyptian Mysteries, and also in
those of Greece. How vitally important was the place that these rites of Teitan
or Satan occupied, may be judged of from the fact that Pluto, the god of Hell
(who, in his ultimate character, was just the grand Adversary), was looked up
to with awe and dread as the great god on whom the destinies of mankind in the
eternal world did mainly depend; for it was said that to Pluto belonged ”to
purify souls after death.” Purgatory having been in Paganism, as it is in
Popery, the grand hinge of priestcraft and superstition, what a power did this
opinion attribute to the ”god of Hell”! No wonder that the serpent, the Devil’s
grand instrument in seducing mankind, was in all the earth worshipped with such
extraordinary reverence, it being laid down in the Octateuch of Ostanes, that
”serpents were the supreme of all gods and the princes of the Universe.” No
wonder that it came at last to be firmly believed that the Messiah, on whom the
hopes of the world depended, was Himself the ”seed of the serpent”! This was
manifestly the case in Greece; for the current story there came to be, that the
first Bacchus was brought forth in consequence of a connexion on the part of
his mother with the father of the gods, in the form of a ”speckled snake.” *
* OVID, Metam. So deeply was the idea of ”the seed of the serpent” being
the great World-king imprinted on the Pagan mind, that when a man set up to be
a god upon earth, it was held essential to establish his title to that
character, that he prove himself to be the ”serpent’s seed.” Thus, when
Alexander the Great claimed divine honours, it is well known that his mother
Olympias, declared that he was not sprung from King Philip, her husband, but
from Jupiter, in the form of a serpent. In like manner, says the authoress of
Rome in the 19th Century, the Roman emperor, ”Augustus, pretended that he was
the son of Apollo, and that the god had assumed the form of a serpent for the
purpose of giving him birth.”
That ”father of the gods” was manifestly ”the god of hell”; for Proserpine,
the mother of Bacchus, that miraculously conceived and brought forth the
wondrous child–whose rape by Pluto occupied such a place in the Mysteries–was
worshipped as the wife of the god of Hell, as we have already seen, under the
name of the ”Holy Virgin.” The story of the seduction of Eve * by the serpent
is plainly imported into this legend, as Julius Firmicus and the early
Christian apologists did with great force cast in the teeth of the Pagans of
their day; but very different is the colouring given to it in the Pagan legend
from that which it has in the Divine Word.
* We find that Semele, the mother of the Grecian Bacchus, had been
identified with Eve; for the name of Eve had been given to her, as Photius
tells us that ”Pherecydes called Semele, Hue.” Hue is just the Hebrew name for
Eve, without the points.
Thus the grand Thimblerigger, by dexterously shifting the peas, through
means of men who began with great professions of abhorrence of his character,
got himself almost everywhere recognised as in very deed ”the god of this
world.” So deep and so strong was the hold that Satan had contrived to get of
the ancient world in this character, that even when Christianity had been
proclaimed to man, and the true light had shone from Heaven, the very doctrine
we have been considering raised its head among the professed disciples of
Christ. Those who held this doctrine were called Ophiani or Ophites, that is,
serpent-worshippers. ”These heretics,” says Tertullian, ”magnify the serpent to
such a degree as to prefer him even to Christ Himself; for he, say they, gave
us the first knowledge of good and evil. It was from a perception of his power
and majesty that Moses was induced to erect the brazen serpent, to which
whosoever looked was healed. Christ Himself, they affirm, in the Gospel
imitates the sacred power of the serpent, when He says that, ‘As Moses lifted
up the serpent in the wilderness even so must the Son of Man be lifted up.’
They introduce it when they bless the Eucharist.” These wicked heretics
avowedly worshipped the old serpent, or Satan, as the grand benefactor of
mankind, for revealing to them the knowledge of good and evil. But this doctrine
they had just brought along with them from the Pagan world, from which they had
come, or from the Mysteries, as they came to be received and celebrated in
Rome. Though Teitan, in the days of Hesiod and in early Greece, was an
”opprobrious name,” yet in Rome, in the days of the Empire and before, it had
become the very reverse. ”The splendid or glorious Teitan” was the way in which
Teitan was spoken of at Rome. This was the title commonly given to the Sun,
both as the orb of day and viewed as a divinity. Now, the reader has seen
already that another form of the sun-divinity, or Teitan, at Rome, was the
Epidaurian snake, worshipped under the name of ”Aesculapius,” that is, ”the
man-instructing serpent.” *
* Aish-shkul-ape, from Aish, ”man”; shkul, ”to instruct”; and Aphe, or Ape,
”a serpent.” The Greek form of this name, Asklepios, signifies simply ”the
instructing snake,” and comes from A, ”the,” skl, ”to teach,” and hefi, ”a
snake,” the Chaldean words being thus modified in Egypt. The name Aselepios,
however, is capable of another sense, as derived from Aaz, ”strength,” and
Khlep, ”to renew”; and, therefore, in the exoteric doctrine, Aselepios was
known simply as ”the strength-restorer,” or the Healing God. But, as identified
with the serpent, the true meaning of the name seems to be that which is first
stated. Macrobius, giving an account of the mystic doctrine of the ancients,
says that Aesculapius was that beneficent influence of the sun which pervaded
the souls of men. Now the Serpent was the symbol of the enlightening sun.
Here, then, in Rome was Teitan, or Satan, identified with the ”serpent that
taught mankind,” that opened their eyes (when, of course, they were blind), and
gave them ”the knowledge of good and evil.” In Pergamos, and in all Asia Minor,
from which directly Rome derived its knowledge of the Mysteries, the case was
the same. In Pergamos, especially, where pre-eminently ”Satan’s seat was,” the
sun-divinity, as is well known, was worshipped under the form of a serpent and
under the name of Aesculapius, ”the man-instructing serpent.” According to the
fundamental doctrine of the Mysteries, as brought from Pergamos to Rome, the
sun was the one only god. Teitan, or Satan, then, was thus recognised as the
one only god; and of that only god, Tammuz or Janus, in his character as the
Son, or the woman’s seed, was just an incarnation. Here, then, the grand secret
of the Roman Empire is at last brought to light–viz., the real name of the
tutelar divinity of Rome. That secret was most jealously guarded; insomuch that
when Valerius Soranus, a man of the highest rank, and, as Cicero declares, ”the
most learned of the Romans,” had incautiously divulged it, he was remorselessly
put to death for his revelation. Now, however, it stands plainly revealed. A
symbolical representation of the worship of the Roman people, from Pompeii,
strikingly confirms this deduction by evidence that appeals to the very senses.
We have seen already that it is admitted by the author of Pompeii, that the
serpents in the under compartment are only another way of exhibiting the dark
divinities represented in the upper compartment. Let the same principle be
admitted here, and it follows that the swallows, or birds pursuing the flies,
represent the same thing as the serpents do below. But the serpent, of which
there is a double representation, is unquestionably the serpent of Aesculapius.
The fly-destroying swallow, therefore, must represent the same divinity. Now,
every one knows what was the name by which ”the Lord of the fly,” or fly-destroying
god of the Oriental world was called. It was Beel-zebub. This name, as
signifying ”Lord of the Fly,” to the profane meant only the power that
destroyed the swarms of flies when these became, as they often did in hot
countries, a source of torment to the people whom they invaded. But this name,
as identified with the serpent, clearly reveals itself as one of the
distinctive names of Satan. And how appropriate is this name, when its mystic
or esoteric meaning is penetrated. What is the real meaning of this familiar
name? Baal-zebub just means ”The restless Lord,” * even that unhappy one who
”goeth to and fro in the earth, and walketh up and down in it,” who ”goeth
through dry places seeking rest, and finding none.” From all this, the
inference is unavoidable that Satan, in his own proper name, must have been the
great god of their secret and mysterious worship, and this accounts for the
extraordinary mystery observed on the subject. **
* See CLAVIS STOCKII, ”Zebub,” where it is stated that the word zebub, as
applied to the fly, comes from an Arabic root, which signifies to move from
place to place, as flies do, without settling anywhere. Baal-zebub, therefore,
in its secret meaning, signifies, ”Lord of restless and unsettled motion.”
** I find Lactantius was led to the conclusion that the Aesculapian servant
was the express symbol of Satan, for, giving an account of the bringing of the
Epidaurian snake to Rome, he says: ”Thither [i.e., to Rome] the Demoniarches
[or Prince of the Devils] in his own proper shape, without disguise, was
brought; for those who were sent on that business brought back with them a
dragon of amazing size.”
When, therefore, Gratian abolished the legal provision for the support of
the fire-worship and serpent-worship of Rome, we see how exactly the Divine
prediction was fulfilled (Rev 12:9) ”And the great dragon was cast out, that
old serpent called the DEVIL, and SATAN, which deceiveth the whole world; he
was cast out into the earth, and his angels were cast out with him.” *
* The facts stated above cast a very singular light on a well known
superstition among ourselves. Everybody has heard of St. Swithin’s day, on
which, if it rain, the current belief is, that it will rain in uninterrupted
succession for six weeks. And who or what was St. Swithin that his day should
be connected with forty days’ uninterrupted rain? for six weeks is just the
round number of weeks equivalent to forty days. It is evident, in the first
place, that he was no Christian saint, though an Archbishop of Canterbury in
the tenth century is said to have been called by his name. The patron saint of
the forty days’ rain was just Tammuz or Odin, who was worshipped among our
ancestors as the incarnation of Noah, in whose time it rained forty days and
forty nights without intermission. Tammuz and St. Swithin, then, must have been
one and the same. But, as in Egypt, and Rome, and Greece, and almost everywhere
else, long before the Christian era, Tammuz had come to be recognised as an
incarnation of the Devil, we need not be surprised to find that St. Swithin is
no other than St. Satan. One of the current forms of the grand adversary’s name
among the Pagans was just Sytan or Sythan. This name, as applied to the Evil
Being, is found as far to the east as the kingdom of Siam. It had evidently
been known to the Druids, and that in connection with the flood; for they say
that it was the son of Seithin that, under the influence of drink, let in the
sea over the country so as to overwhelm a large and populous district. (DAVIES,
Druids) The Anglo-Saxons, when they received that name, in the very same way as
they made Odin into Wodin, would naturally change Sythan into Swythan; and
thus, in St. Swithin’s day and the superstition therewith connected, we have at
once a striking proof of the wide extent of Devil-worship in the heathen world,
and of the thorough acquaintance of our Pagan ancestors with the great
Scriptural fact of the forty days’ incessant rain at the Deluge.
If any one thinks it incredible that Satan should thus be canonised by the
Papacy in the Dark Ages, let me call attention to the pregnant fact that, even
in comparatively recent times, the Dragon–the Devil’s universally recognised
symbol–was worshipped by the Romanists of Poictiers under the name of ”the good
St. Vermine”!! (Notes of the Society of the Antiquaries of France, SALVERTE)
Now, as the Pagan Pontifex, to whose powers and prerogatives the Pope had
served himself heir, was thus the High-priest of Satan, so, when the Pope
entered into a league and alliance with that system of Devil-worship, and
consented to occupy the very position of that Pontifex, and to bring all its
abominations into the Church, as he has done, he necessarily became the Prime
Minister of the Devil, and, of course, came as thoroughly under his power as
ever the previous Pontiff had been. *
* This gives a new and darker significance to the mystic Tau, or sign of
the cross. At first it was the emblem of Tammuz, at last it became the emblem
of Teitan, or Satan himself.
How exact the fulfilment of the Divine statement that the coming of the Man
of Sin was to be ”after the working or energy of Satan.” Here, then, is the
grand conclusion to which we are compelled, both on historical and Scriptural
grounds, to come: As the mystery of godliness is God manifest in the flesh, so
the mystery of iniquity is–so far as such a thing is possible–the Devil
incarnate.
Note
Attes, the Sinner
We have seen that the name Pan signifies ”to turn aside,” and have
concluded that as it is a synonym for Hata, ”to sin,” the proper generic
meaning of which is ”to turn aside from the straight line,” that name was the
name of our first parent, Adam. One of the names of Eve, as the primeval goddess,
worshipped in ancient Babylon, while it gives confirmation to this conclusion,
elucidates also another classical myth in a somewhat unexpected way. The name
of that primeval goddess, as given by Berosus, is Thalatth, which, as we have
seen, signifies ”the rib.” Adam’s name, as her husband, would be
”Baal-Thalatth,” ”Husband of the rib”; for Baal signifies Lord in the sense
frequently of ”Husband.” But ”Baal-Thalatth,” according to a peculiar Hebrew
idiom already noticed, signifies also ”He that halted or went sideways.” *
* The Chaldee Thalatth, ”a rib” or a ”side,” comes from the verb Thalaa,
the Chaldee form of Tzalaa, which signifies ”to turn aside,” ”to halt,” ”to
sidle,” or ”to walk sideways.”
This is the remote origin of Vulcan’s lameness; for Vulcan, as the ”Father
of the gods,” needed to be identified with Adam, as well as the other ”fathers
of the gods,” to whom we have already traced him. Now Adam, in consequence of
his sin and departure from the straight line of duty, was, all his life after, in
a double sense ”Baal-Thalatth,” not only the ”Husband of the rib,” but ”The man
that halted or walked sideways.” In memory of this turning aside, no doubt it
was that the priests of Baal (1 Kings 18:26) ”limped at the altar,” when
supplicating their god to hear them (for that is the exact meaning in the
original of the word rendered ”leaped”–see KITTO’s Bib. Cyclop), and that the
Druidic priests went sideways in performing some of their sacred rites, as
appears from the following passage of Davies: ”The dance is performed with
solemn festivity about the lakes, round which and the sanctuary the priests
move sideways, whilst the sanctuary is earnestly invoking the gliding king,
before whom the fair one retreats upon the veil that covers the huge stones” (Druids).
This Davies regards as connected with the story of Jupiter, the father of the
gods, violating his own daughter in the form of a serpent. Now, let the reader
look at what is on the breast of the Ephesian Diana, as the Mother of the gods,
and he will see a reference to her share in the same act of going aside; for
there is the crab, and how does a crab go but sideways? This, then, shows the
meaning of another of the signs of the Zodiac. Cancer commemorates the fatal
turning aside of our first parent from the paths of righteousness, when the
covenant of Eden was broken.
The Pagans knew that this turning aside or going sideways, implied
death–the death of the soul–(”In the day thou eatest thereof, thou shalt surely
die”); and, therefore, while at the spring festival of Cybele and Attes, there
were great lamentations for the death of Attes, so on the Hilaria or rejoicing
festival of the 25th of March–that is, Lady-day, the last day of the
festival–the mourning was turned into joy, ”on occasion of the dead god being
restored to life again” (DUPUIS, Origine de tous les Cultes). If Attes was he
that by ”his turning aside” brought sin and death into the world, what could
the life be to which he was so speedily restored, but just that new and divine
life which enters every soul when it is ”born again,” and so ”passes from death
unto life.” When the promise was given that the seed of the woman should bruise
the serpent’s head, and Adam grasped it by faith, that, there can be no doubt,
was evidence that the divine life was restored, and that he was born again. And
thus do the very Mysteries of Attes, which were guarded with special jealousy,
and the secret meaning of which Pausanias declares that he found it impossible,
notwithstanding all his efforts to discover (Achaica), bear their distinct
testimony, when once the meaning of the name of Attes is deciphered, to the
knowledge which paganism itself had of the real nature of the Fall, and of the
essential character of that death, which was threatened in the primeval covenant.
This new birth of Attes laid the foundation for his being represented as a
little child, and so being identified with Adonis, who, though he died a
full-grown man, was represented in that very way. In the Eleusinian Mysteries,
that commemorated the rape of Proserpine, that is, the seduction of Eve, the
lamented god, or Bacchus, was represented as a babe, at the breast of the great
Mother, who by Sophocles is called Deo (Antigone). As Deo or Demete, applied to
the Great Mother, is evidently just another form of Idaia Mater, ”The Mother of
Knowledge” (the verb ”to know” being either Daa or Idaa), this little child, in
one of his aspects, was no doubt the same as Attes, and thus also Deoius, as
his name is given. The Hilaria, or rejoicing festival of the 25th of March, or
Lady-day, owed its gladness to the Annunciation of a birth yet to come, even
the birth of the woman’s seed; but, at the same time, the joy of that festival
was enhanced by the immediate new birth that very day of Attes, ”The sinner,” or
Adam, who, in consequence of his breach of the covenant, had become dead in
”trespasses and sins.”
The Two Babylons
Alexander Hislop
Conclusion
I have now finished the task I proposed to myself. Even yet the evidence is
not nearly exhausted; but, upon the evidence which has been adduced, I appeal
to the reader if I have not proved every point which I engaged to demonstrate.
Is there one, who has candidly considered the proof that has been led, that now
doubts that Rome is the Apocalyptic Babylon? Is there one who will venture to
deny that, from the foundation to the topmost stone, it is essentially a system
of Paganism? What, then, is to be the practical conclusion from all this?
1. Let every Christian henceforth and for ever treat it as an
outcast from the pale of Christianity. Instead of speaking of it as a Christian
Church, let it be recognised and regarded as the Mystery of Iniquity, yea, as
the very Synagogue of Satan. With such overwhelming evidence of its
real character, it would be folly–it would be worse–it would be treachery to
the cause of Christ–to stand merely on the defensive, to parley with its
priests about the lawfulness of Protestant orders, the validity of Protestant
sacraments, or the possibility of salvation apart from its communion. If Rome
is now to be admitted to form a portion of the Church of Christ, where is the
system of Paganism that has ever existed, or that now exists, that could not
put in an equal claim? On what grounds could the worshippers of the original
Madonna and child in the days of old be excluded ”from the commonwealth of
Israel,” or shown to be ”strangers to the covenants of promise”? On what
grounds could the worshippers of Vishnu at this day be put beyond the bounds of
such wide catholicity? The ancient Babylonians held, the modern Hindoos still
hold, clear and distinct traditions of the Trinity, the Incarnation, the
Atonement. Yet, who will venture to say that such nominal recognition of the
cardinal articles of Divine revelation could relieve the character of either
the one system or the other from the brand of the most deadly and God-dishonouring
heathenism? And so also in regard to Rome. True, it nominally admits Christian
terms and Christian names; but all that is apparently Christian in its system
is more than neutralised by the malignant Paganism that it embodies. Grant that
the bread the Papacy presents to its votaries can be proved to have been
originally made of the finest of the wheat; but what then, if every particle of
that bread is combined with prussic acid or strychnine? Can the excellence of
the bread overcome the virus of the poison? Can there by anything but death,
spiritual and eternal death, to those who continue to feed upon the poisoned
food that it offers? Yes, here is the question, and let it be fairly faced. Can
there be salvation in a communion in which it is declared to be a fundamental
principle, that the Madonna is ”our greatest hope; yea, the SOLE GROUND OF OUR
HOPE”? *
* The language of the late Pope Gregory, substantially endorsed by the
present Pontiff.
The time is come when charity to the perishing souls of men, hoodwinked by
a Pagan priesthood, abusing the name of Christ, requires that the truth in this
matter should be clearly, loudly, unflinchingly proclaimed. The beast and the
image of the beast alike stand revealed in the face of all Christendom; and now
the tremendous threatening of the Divine Word in regard to their worship fully
applies (Rev 14:9,10): ”And the third angel followed them, saying, ‘If any man
worship the beast and his image, and receive his mark in his forehead, or in
his hand, the same shall drink of the wine of the wrath of God, poured without
mixture into the cup of His indignation; and he shall be tormented with fire
and brimstone in the presence of the holy angels, and in the presence of the
Lamb.’” These words are words of awful import; and woe to the man who is found
finally under the guilt which they imply. These words, as has already been
admitted by Elliott, contain a ”chronological prophecy,” a prophecy not
referring to the Dark Ages, but to a period not far distant from the consummation,
when the Gospel should be widely diffused, and when bright light should be cast
on the character and doom of the apostate Church of Rome (vv 6-8). They come,
in the Divine chronology of events, immediately after an angel has proclaimed,
”BABYLON IS FALLEN, IS FALLEN.” We have, as it were, with our own ears heard
this predicted ”Fall of Babylon” announced from the high places of Rome itself,
when the seven hills of the ”Eternal City” reverberated with the guns that
proclaimed, not merely to the citizens of the Roman republic, but to the wide
world, that ”PAPACY HAD FALLEN, de facto and de jure, from the temporal throne
of the Roman State.” *
* The Apocalypse announces two falls of Babylon. The fall referred to above
is evidently only the first. The prophecy clearly implies, that after the first
fall it rises to a greater height than before; and therefore the necessity of
the warning.
Now, it is in the order of the prophecy, after this fall of Babylon, that
this fearful threatening comes. Can there, then, be a doubt that this
threatening specially and peculiarly applies to this very time? Never till now
was the real nature of the Papacy fully revealed; never till now was the Image
of the beast set up. Till the Image of the beast was erected, till the blasphemous
decree of the Immaculate Conception was promulged, no such apostacy had taken
place, even in Rome, no such guilt had been contracted, as now lies at the door
of the great Babylon. This, then, is a subject of infinite importance to every
one within the pale of the Church of Rome–to every one also who is looking, as
so many at present are doing, towards the City of the Seven Hills. If any one
can prove that the Pope does not assume all the prerogatives and bear
substantially all the blasphemous titles of that Babylonian beast that ”had the
wound by a sword, and did live,” and if it can be shown that the Madonna, that
has so recently with one consent been set up, is not in every essential respect
the same as the Chaldean ”Image” of the beast, they may indeed afford to
despise the threatening contained in these words. But if neither the one nor
the other can be proved (and I challenge the strictest scrutiny in regard to
both), then every one within the pale of the Papacy may well tremble at such a
threatening. Now, then, as never before, may the voice Divine, and that a voice
of the tenderest love, be heard sounding from the Eternal throne to every
adherent of the Mystic Babylon, ”Come out of her, My people, that ye be not
partakers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues.”
2. But if the guilt and danger of those who adhere to the Roman Church,
believing it to be the only Church where salvation can be found, be so great,
what must be the guilt of those who, with a Protestant profession, nevertheless
uphold the doomed Babylon? The constitution of this land requires our Queen to
swear, before the crown can be put upon her head, before she can take her seat
on the throne, that ”she believes” that the essential doctrines of Rome are
”idolatrous.” All the Churches of Britain, endowed and unendowed, alike with
one voice declare the very same. They all proclaim that the system of Rome is a
system of blasphemous idolatry…And yet the members of these Churches can endow
and uphold, with Protestant money, the schools, the colleges, the chaplains of
that idolatrous system. If the guilt of Romanists, then, be great, the guilt of
Protestants who uphold such a system must be tenfold greater. That guilt has
been greatly accumulating during the last three or four yeas. While the King of
Italy, in the very States of the church–what but lately were the Pope’s own
dominions–has been suppressing the monasteries (and in the space of two years
no less than fifty-four were suppressed, and their property confiscated), the
British Government has been acting on a policy the very reverse, has not only
been conniving at the erection of monasteries, which are prohibited by the law
of the land, but has actually been bestowing endowment on these illegal
institutions under the name of Reformatories. It was only a short while ago,
that it was stated, on authority of the Catholic Directory, that in the space
of three years, fifty-two new converts were added to the monastic system of
Great Britain, almost the very number that the Italians had confiscated, yet
Christian men and Christian Churches look on with indifference. Now, if ever
there was an excuse for thinking lightly of the guilt contracted by our
national support of idolatry, that excuse will no longer avail. The God of Providence,
in India, has been demonstrating that He is the God of Revelation. He has been
proving, to an awe-struck world, by events that made every ear to tingle, that
every word of wrath, written three thousand years ago against idolatry, is in
as full force at this day as when He desolated the covenanted people of Israel
for their idols, and sold them into the hands of their enemies. If men begin to
see that it is a dangerous thing for professing Christians to uphold the Pagan
idolatry of India, they must be blind indeed if they do not equally see that it
must be as dangerous to uphold the Pagan idolatry of Rome. Wherein does the
Paganism of Rome differ from that of Hindooism? Only in this, that the Roman
Paganism is the more complete, more finished, more dangerous, more insidious
Paganism of the two.
I am afraid, that after all that has been said, not a few will revolt from
the above comparative estimate of Popery and undisguised Paganism. Let me,
therefore, fortify my opinion by the testimonies of two distinguished writers,
well qualified to pronounce on this subject. They will, at least, show that I
am not singular in the estimate which I have formed. The writers to whom I
refer, are Sir George Sinclair of Ulbster, and Dr. Bonar of Kelso. Few men have
studied the system of Rome more thoroughly than Sir George, and in his Letters
to the Protestants of Scotland he has brought all the fertility of his genius,
the curiosa felicitas of his style, and the stores of his highly cultivated
mind, to bear upon the elucidation of his theme. Now, the testimony of Sir
George is this: ”Romanism is a refined system of Christianised heathenism, and
chiefly differs from its prototype in being more treacherous, more cruel, more
dangerous, more intolerant.” The mature opinion of Dr. Bonar is the very same,
and that, too, expressed with the Cawnpore massacre particularly in view: ”We
are doing for Popery at home,” says he, ”what we have done for idolaters
abroad, and in the end the results will be the same; nay, worse; for Popish cruelty,
and thirst for the blood of the innocent, have been the most savage and
merciless that the earth has seen. Cawnpore, Delhi, and Bareilly, are but dust
in comparison with the demoniacal brutalities perpetrated by the Inquisition,
and by the armies of Popish fanaticism.” These are the words of truth and
soberness, that no man acquainted with the history of modern Europe can
dispute. There is great danger of their being overlooked at this moment. It
will be a fatal error if they be. Let not the pregnant fact be overlooked,
that, while the Apocalyptic history runs down to the consummation of all
things, in that Divine foreshadowing all the other Paganisms of the world are
in a manner cast into the shade by the Paganism of Papal Rome. It is against
Babylon that sits on the seven hills that the saints are forewarned; it is for
worshipping the beast and his image pre-eminently, that ”the vials of the wrath
of God, that liveth and abideth for ever,” are destined to be outpoured upon
the nations. Now, if the voice of God has been heard in the late Indian
calamities, the Protestantism of Britain will rouse itself to sweep away at
once and for ever all national support, alike from the idolatry of Hindoostan
and the still more malignant idolatry of Rome. Then, indeed, there would be a
lengthening of our tranquility, then there would be hope that Britain would be
exalted, and that its power would rest on a firm and stable foundation. But if
we will not ”hear the voice, if we receive not correction, if we refuse to return,”
if we persist in maintaining, at the national charge, ”that image of jealousy
provoking to jealousy,” then, after the repeated and ever INCREASING strokes
that the justice of God has laid on us, we have every reason to fear that the
calamities that have fallen so heavily upon our countrymen in India, may fall
still more heavily upon ourselves, within our own borders at home; for it was
when ”the image of jealousy” was set up in Jerusalem by the elders of Judah,
that the Lord said, ”Therefore will I also deal in fury; mine eye shall not
spare, neither will I have pity; and though they cry in mine ears with a loud
voice, yet will I not hear them.” He who let loose the Sepoys, to whose
idolatrous feelings and antisocial propensities we have pandered so much, to
punish us for the guilty homage we had paid to their idolatry, can just as
easily let loose the Papal Powers of Europe, to take vengeance upon us for our
criminal fawning upon the Papacy.
3. But, further, if the views established in this work be correct, it is
time that the Church of God were aroused. Are the witnesses still to be slain,
and has the Image of the Beast only within the last year or two been set up, at
whose instigation the bloody work is to be done? Is this, then, the time for
indifference, for sloth, for lukewarmness in religion? Yet, alas! how few are
they who are lifting up their voice like a trumpet, who are sounding the alarm
in God’s holy mountain–who are bestirring themselves according to the greatness
of the emergency–to gather the embattled hosts of the Lord to the coming
conflict? The emissaries of Rome for years have been labouring unceasingly
night and day, in season and out of season, in every conceivable way, to
advance their Master’s cause, and largely have they succeeded. But ”the
children of light” have allowed themselves to be lulled into a fatal security;
they have folded their hands; they have got to sleep as soundly as if Rome had
actually disappeared from the face of the earth–as if Satan himself had been
bound and cast into the bottomless pit, and the pit had shut its mouth upon
him, to keep him fast for a thousand years. How long shall this state of things
continue? Oh, Church of God, awake, awake! Open your eyes, and see if there be
not dark and lowering clouds on the horizon that indicate an approaching
tempest. Search the Scriptures for yourselves; compare them with the facts of
history, and say, if there be not reason after all to suspect that there are
sterner prospects before the saints than most seem to wot of. If it may turn
out that the views opened up in these pages are Scriptural and well-founded,
they are at least worthy of being made the subjects of earnest and prayerful
inquiry. It never can tend to good to indulge an uninquiring and delusive
feeling of safety, when, if they be true, the only safety is to be found in a
timely knowledge of the danger and due preparation, by all activity, all zeal,
all spirituality of mind, to meet it. On the supposition that peculiar dangers
are at hand, and that God in His prophetic Word has revealed them, His goodness
is manifest. He has made known the danger, that, being forewarned, we may be
forearmed; that, knowing our own weakness, we may cast ourselves on His
Almighty grace; that we may feel the necessity of a fresh baptism of the Holy
Ghost; that the joy of the Lord being our strength, we may be thorough and
decided for the Lord, and for the Lord alone, that we may work, every one in
his own sphere, with increased energy and diligence, in the Lord’s vineyard,
and save all the souls we can, while yet opportunity lasts, and the dark
predicted night has not come, wherein no man can work. Though there be dark
prospects before us, there is no room for despondency; no ground for any one to
say that, with such prospects, effort is vain. The Lord can bless and prosper
to His own glory, the efforts of those who truly gird themselves to fight His
battles in the most hopeless circumstances; and, at the very time when the
enemy cometh in like a flood, He can, by His Spirit, lift up a standard against
him. Nay, not only is this a possible thing, there is reason, from the
prophetic word, to believe that so it shall actually be; that the last triumph
of the Man of Sin shall not be achieved without a glorious struggle first, on
the part of those who are leal-hearted to Zion’s King. But if we would really
wish to do anything effectual in this warfare, it is indispensable that we
know, and continually keep before our eyes, the stupendous character of that
Mystery of Iniquity embodied in the Papacy that we have to grapple with. Popery
boasts of being the ”old religion”; and truly, from what we have seen, it
appears that it is ancient indeed. It can trace its lineage far beyond the era
of Christianity, back over 4000 years, to near the period of the Flood and the
building of the Tower of Babel. During all that period its essential elements
have been nearly the same, and these elements have a peculiar adaptation to the
corruption of human nature. Most seem to think that Popery is a system merely
to be scouted and laughed at; but the Spirit of God everywhere characterises it
in quite a different way. Every statement in the Scripture shows that it was
truly described when it was characterised as ”Satan’s Masterpiece”–the
perfection of his policy for deluding and ensnaring the world. It is not the
state-craft of politicians, the wisdom of philosophers, or the resources of
human science, that can cope with the wiles and subtleties of the Papacy.
Satan, who inspires it, has triumphed over all these again and again. Why, the
very nations where the worship of the Queen of Heaven, with all its attendant
abominations, has flourished most in all ages, have been precisely the most
civilised, the most polished, the most distinguished for arts and sciences.
Babylon, where it took its rise, was the cradle of astronomy. Egypt, that
nursed it in its bosom, was the mother of all the arts; the Greek cities of
Asia Minor, where it found a refuge when expelled from Chaldea, were famed for
their poets and philosophers, among the former Homer himself being numbered;
and the nations of the European Continent, where literature has long been
cultivated, are now prostrate before it. Physical force, no doubt, is at
present employed in its behalf; but the question arises, How comes it that this
system, of all others, can so prevail as to get that physical force to obey its
behests? No answer can be given but this, that Satan, the god of this world,
exerts his highest power in its behalf. Physical force has not always been on
the side of the Chaldean worship of the Queen of Heaven. Again and again has
power been arrayed against it; but hitherto every obstacle it has surmounted,
every difficulty it has overcome. Cyrus, Xerxes, and many of the Medo-Persian
kings, banished its priests from Babylon, and laboured to root it out of their
empire; but then it found a secure retreat in Pergamos, and ”Satan’s seat” was
erected there. The glory of Pergamos and the cities of Asia Minor departed; but
the worship of the Queen of Heaven did not wane. It took a higher flight, and
seated itself on the throne of Imperial Rome. That throne was subverted. The
Arian Goths came burning with fury against the worshippers of the Virgin Queen;
but still that worship rose buoyant above all attempts to put it down, and the
Arian Goths themselves were soon prostrate at the feet of the Babylonian
goddess, seated in glory on the seven hills of Rome. In more modern times, the
temporal powers of all the kingdoms of Europe have expelled the Jesuits, the
chief promoters of this idolatrous worship, from their dominions. France,
Spain, Portugal, Naples, Rome itself have all adopted the same measures, and
yet what do we see at this hour? The same Jesuitism and the worship of the
Virgin exalted above almost every throne on the Continent. When we look over
the history of the last 4000 yeas, what a meaning in the words of inspiration,
that ”the coming of the Man of Sin” is with the energy, ”the mighty power of
Satan.” Now, is this the system that, year by year, has been rising into power
in our own empire? And is it for a moment to be imagined that lukewarm,
temporising, half-hearted Protestants can make any head against such a system?
No; the time is come when Gideon’s proclamation must be made throughout the
camp of the Lord: ”Whosoever is fearful and afraid, let him return and depart
early from Mount Gilead.” Of the old martyrs it is said, ”They overcame by the
blood of the Lamb and the word of their testimony, and they loved not their
lives unto the death.” The same self-denying, the same determined spirit, is
needed now as much as ever it was. Are there none who are prepared to stand up,
and in that very spirit to gird themselves for the great conflict that must
come, before Satan shall be bound and cast into his prison-house? Can any one
believe that such an event can take place without a tremendous struggle–that
”the god of this world” shall quietly consent to resign the power that for
thousands of years he has wielded, without stirring up all his wrath, and
putting forth all his energy and skill to prevent such a catastrophe. Who,
then, is on the Lord’s side? If there be those who, within the last few years,
have been revived and quickened–stirred up, not by mere human excitement, but
by the Almighty grace of God’s Spirit, what is the gracious design of this? Is
it merely that they themselves may be delivered from the wrath to come? No; it
is that, zealous for the glory of their Lord, they may act the parts of true
witnesses, contend earnestly for the faith once delivered to the saints, and
maintain the honour of Christ in opposition to him who blasphemously usurps his
prerogatives. If the servants of Antichrist are faithful to their master, and
unwearied in promoting his cause, shall it be said that the servants of Christ
are less faithful to theirs? If none else will bestir themselves, surely to the
generous hearts of the young and rising ministry of Christ, in the kindness of
their youth, and the love of their espousals, the appeal shall not be made in
vain, when the appeal is made in the name of Him whom their souls love, that in
this grand crisis of the Church and of the world, they should ”come to the help
of the Lord–the help of the Lord against the mighty,” that they should do what
in them lies to strengthen the hands and encourage the hearts of those who are
seeking to stem the tide of apostacy, and to resist the efforts of the men who
are labouring with such zeal, and with so much of infatuated patronage on the
part of ”the powers that be,” to bring this land back again under the power of
the Man of Sin. To take such a part, and steadily and perseveringly to pursue
it, amid so much growing lukewarmness, it is indispensable that the servants of
Christ set their faces as a flint. But if they have grace so to do, they shall
not do so without a rich reward at last; and in time they have the firm and
faithful promise that ”as their day is, so shall their strength be.” For all
who wish truly to perform their part as good soldiers of Jesus Christ, there is
the strongest and richest encouragement. With the blood of Christ on the
conscience, with the Spirit of Christ warm and working in the heart, with our
Father’s name on our forehead, and our life, as well as our lips, consistently
bearing ”testimony” for God, we shall be prepared for every event. But it is
not common grace that will do for uncommon times. If there be indeed such
prospects before us, as I have endeavoured to prove there are, then we must
live, and feel, and act as if we heard every day resounding in our ears the
words of the great Captain of our Salvation, ”To him that overcometh will I
grant to sit with Me on My throne, even as I also overcame, and am set down
with My Father on His throne. Be thou faithful unto death, and I will give thee
a crown of life.”
Lastly, I appeal to every reader of this work, if it does not contain an
argument for the divinity of the Scriptures, as well as an exposure of the
impostures of Rome. Surely, if one thing more than another be proved in the
previous pages, it is this, that the Bible is no cunningly devised fable, but
that holy men of God of old spake and wrote as they were moved by the Holy
Ghost. What can account for the marvellous unity in all the idolatrous systems
of the world, but that the facts recorded in the early chapters of Genesis were
real transactions, in which, as all mankind were involved, so all mankind have
preserved in their various systems, distinct and undeniable memorials of them,
though those who have preserved them have long lost the true key to their meaning?
What, too, but Omniscience could have foreseen that a system, such as that of
the Papacy, could ever effect an entrance into the Christian Church, and
practise and prosper as it has done? How could it ever have entered into the
heart of John, the solitary exile of Patmos, to imagine, that any of the
professed disciples of that Saviour whom he loved, and who said, ”My kingdom is
not of this world,” should gather up and systematise all the idolatry and
superstition and immorality of the Babylon of Belshazzar, introduce it into the
bosom of the Church, and, by help of it, seat themselves on the throne of the
Caesars, and there, as the high-priests of the queen of Heaven, and gods upon
earth, for 1200 years, rule the nations with a rod of iron? Human foresight
could never have done this; but all this the exile of Patmos has done. His pen,
then, must have been guided by Him who sees the end from the beginning, and who
calleth the things that be not as though they were. And if the wisdom of God
now shines forth so brightly from the Divine expression ”Babylon the Great,”
into which such an immensity of meaning has been condensed, ought not that to
lead us the more to reverence and adore the same wisdom that is in reality
stamped on every page of the inspired Word? Ought it not to lead us to say with
the Psalmist, ”Therefore, I esteem all Thy commandments concerning all things
to be right”? The commandments of God, to our corrupt and perverse minds, may
sometimes seem to be hard. They may require us to do what is painful, they may
require us to forego what is pleasing to flesh and blood. But, whether we know
the reason of these commandments or no, if we only know that they come from
”the only wise God, our Saviour,” we may be sure that in the keeping of them there
is great reward; we may go blindfold wherever the Word of God may lead us, and
rest in the firm conviction that, in so doing, we are pursuing the very path of
safety and peace. Human wisdom at the best is but a blind guide; human policy
is a meter that dazzles and leads astray; and they who follow it walk in
darkness, and know not whither they are going; but he ”that walketh uprightly,”
that walks by the rule of God’s infallible Word, will ever find that ”he
walketh surely,” and that whatever duty he has to perform, whatever danger he
has to face, ”great peace have all they that love God’s law, and nothing shall
offend them.”